Old
stories told by travelers, Great songs that bards have sung, Of Mossflower
summers, faded, gone, When Redwall's stones were young. Great Hall fires on
winter nights, The legends, who remembers, Battles, banquets, comrades, quests,
Recalled midst glowing embers. Draw close now, little woodlander, Take this to
sleep with you, My tale of dusty far-off times, When warrior hearts were true.
Then store it in your memory, And be the sage who says To young ones in the
years to come: "Ah yes, those were the days."
BOOK
ONE
The
Maid from the Sea
Abbot
Bernard folded his paws deep into the wide sleeves of his garb.
From a
viewpoint on the threshold of Redwall Abbey's west ramparts he watched the hot
midsummer day drawing to a glorious close. Late evening light mellowed the red
sandstone Abbey walls, turning them to dusty scarlet; across the flatlands,
cloud layers striped the horizon in long billows of purple, amber, rose and
cerise. Bernard turned to his friend Simeon, the blind herbalist.
"The
sun is sinking, like the tip of a sugar plum dipping into honey. A perfect
summer evening, eh, Simeon?"
The two
mice stood silent awhile before Simeon turned his sightless face toward the
Abbot.
"Father
Abbot, how is it that you see so much yet feel so little? Do you not know there
is a mighty storm coming tonight?"
The
Abbot shook his head, disbelieving, yet unwilling to deny Simeon's unerring
instinct. "A storm? Surely not!"
Simeon
chided Abbot Bernard gently. "Perhaps you have other things on your mind,
my friend. Maybe you have not felt the cooling breezes die away. The air has
3
become
still and hot, the birds stopped their evensong much earlier than usual, even
the grasshoppers and the buzzing bees have ceased what little noise they make. Listen!"
The
Abbot cocked his head on one side, perplexed. "I hear nothing."
Simeon
chuckled dryly. "That is because you are hearing the sound of silence,
Bernard. One thing I have learned in my life is to listen to the sounds of
Mossflower country. Every sound carries information; so does every silence.
This is going to be a mighty storm, one that we have not seen the like of in
many a long season."
Taking
Simeon by the paw, Abbot Bernard led his blind companion down the rampart steps
and across the lawn toward the main Abbey building.
Simeon
sniffed the air. "Mmmm! I smell hot apple pie and raspberry cream pudding,
and scones, fresh from the oven too, with damson preserve spread on them. We'd
best hurry before the moles get here or there'll be none left."
The
Abbot quickened his pace. "How d'you know the moles are coming?"
"Bernard,
Bernard, did you ever know Sister Sage to serve raspberry cream pudding and no
moles to arrive?"
"Right
again, Simeon. Your powers of observation leave me in the shade. Oh, I must
tell young Dandin to beat the log alarm. It'll warn anybeast still outdoors to
come in."
Simeon
grimaced. "Oh dear, do we have to suffer that noise again? Young Dandin is
a bit overenthusiastic at beating a hollow log with two clubs."
Abbot
Bernard smiled reflectively. "Yes, he does rather put his heart into it,
doesn't he. Still, I wish everyone were as willing in their duties as our
Dandin. If ever Redwall Abbey gets a bell, I'll be the first to vote him as
bellringer."
The two
mice made their way between the flowerbeds which dotted the dark greensward. An
ominous grumble of thunder muffled its way over the far horizon to the
northwest. Abbot Bernard turned in the doorway of the Abbey, attempting to
conjure up his powers of smell.
"Hmmm,
cider poured cold from the cask, eh, Simeon?"
The
blind herbalist wrinkled his nose. "Wrong, it's pear cordial."
The
Father Abbot of all Redwall tried not to look amazed. Even though Simeon could
not see him, he might sense his Abbot's expression.
oo
Far,
far over the horizon, far to the northwest, far across the oily blue green
billows which were rising, lashing their tops into rippling white peaks of
foam, far over the abysses and deeps of the heaving seas, far from the peace
and calm of Redwall Abbey, stood Gabool the Wild.
Clouds
of jet black and slate gray boiled down out of the sky to meet the lashing
waves. A blast of hot wind like the gust from hell-furnace doors set Gabool's
scarlet cape fluttering as he stood on the high cliffs of his island, defying
the elements. Thunder boomed out, forked lightning ripped through the lowering
vault of the sky. Gabool drew his jewel-hilted sword and waved it at the storm
as he roared and laughed in exultation. The deadly curved blade with its sharp
double edges hummed and sang against the wind.
Gabool
the Wild ruled the seas, he was the dread Lord of Terramort Island, King of the
Searats, Warlord of all Rodent Corsairs, Captain of Captains. No creature alive
was a fiercer fighter than Gabool. From the lowly position of a young scullyrat
he had fought his way up to be the biggest, the most savage, the cruelest and
the most ruthless. In all the seas and oceans there had never been a rat like
Gabool the Wild. Huge gold hoops
dangled
from his ears, his fangs (which he had lost long ago in hard-fought combat)
were replaced by sharp jutting gold canines, each one set with a glinting green
emerald. Below his weird yellow blood-flecked eyes, an enormous dark beard
sprouted and curled, spilling down to his broad chest, silk ribbons of blue and
red woven through it. Whenever Gabool moved, his rings, bracelets, medals and
buckles jangled. Gold, turquoise, silver, ivory—plunder from the far places of
the high seas. Strange weapons with shimmering twisted blades were thrust into
the purple sash about his waist. Dangerous to serve and deadly to trust, he
stood laughing in the teeth of the gale, satisfied that the creature who had
dared go against him was now fish bait on the seabed, Thunder crashed overhead
as the skies released a deluge of whipping, lashing rain. Lightning crackled
around the rocky tor, illuminating the barbaric figure as if even the high
heavens were challenging him.
The
Warlord of all Waters threw back his huge head and shrieked out his battle cry
to the storm.
"Gaaaabooooool!"
oo
The
pitifully tiny figure of a mousemaid was hurled about like a chip of bark in
the eastward rush of high roaring seas. Tormented rolling waves, whipped to a
frenzy by the screeching wind, billowed and swelled, long combing chariots
pulled fiercely along by tossing white stallions of foam and spray.
The
mousemaid, partially stunned, dared not even let one paw free to undo the rope
about her neck. Her numbed paws clung grimly to a jagged spar of driftwood as
she plunged wildly about in the maddened waters, now on top of a wave high as a
castle, hurtling down blue green valleys into a trough that yawned like a deep,
dark monster mouth, now being spun sideways with the spume, now being flung
backwards from greater heights to vaster depths.
The
rope became tangled around the wooden spar; painfully the little maid tried to
bite at the hemp. Seawater gushed into her mouth, and she retched as the water
threatened to choke her. A flailing end of rope struck her across the eyes.
Unthinkingly she let go of the spar; it whipped off in a different direction
from her. With both paws tearing feebly at the rope circling her neck, she was
shaken about like a small fish upon rod and line.
All
consciousness was finally beaten from her body when the spar struck her across
the head, and the helpless figure was lost amid the pounding crashing seas.
Obscured by the boiling cloud curtains above the maelstrom, not even the stars
or moon were witness to the fate of the little mousemaid, victim of Gabool's
cruel whim.
Close
to the north side of the Abbey building, a new construction was under way.
Astride
the wooden scaffolding of a half-finished bell tower, young Dandin pounded
doggedly away at the hollow beech log.
Thonkthonkthonkthonk!
Though
he was a sturdily built little mouse, he felt himself driven aback by the
blasting wind. Shaking rainwater from his eyes, he bent his head against the
onslaught of the storm and continued stubbornly thwacking the log with two
hefty yew clubs. Whenever Dandin raised his gaze slightly he could see the
fringe of surrounding Mossflower Woods swaying and hissing, rustling and
sighing, like a restless ocean.
"Dandin,
come down, you'll catch your death up there!"
The
young mouse peered over the scaffold, shielding his eyes against the deluge.
Draped about with a clean worn-out floursack, Mother Mellus, the Redwall
badger, stamped a huge paw upon the wet sward.
"D'you
hear me, young mouse? I said down, this instant!"
Dandin
blew rainwater from his whiskers, smiling
roguishly
he called back, "Right this instant, marm, just like you say."
Without
a backward glance Dandin threw himself from the tower and came plunging
earthward to the accompaniment of the badger's startled growls. Not more than a
fraction from the ground, he stopped falling and swung there, dangling by a
strong vinerope harnessed about his waist. Dandin touched his nose with a wet
paw.
"Came
as quick as I could, marm ..."
A huge
paw cuffed him roughly about the ears as Mother Mellus freed him from the
encircling vinerope. Tucking him firmly in her elbow crook like a baby, she
hurried in out of the rain, scolding Dandin as he complained loud and long.
"Put
me down. I'm not a baby, I can walk ..."
"No,
you're not a baby, you're a young pickle, d'you hear, and you should know
better. Throwing yourself from a high tower like that! By the weasel's
whiskers, you scared me out of ten seasons' growth!"
"I
know what I'm doing; it was completely safe. Now will you put me down? I can
stand on my own paws, you know ..."
"I'll
put you down, you young rip. Next time I'll tan your hide so hard you won't be
able to sit down until berrypicking. Just let me catch you jumping from high
places like that again! What'd you do if the vines snapped, eh? Then we
wouldn't have to dig a grave. You'd go so far into the earth when you hit the
ground you'd be able to shake paws with the taproots of an oak. Be still, you
little blaggard, or you'll feel the back of my paw. Young Abbey beasts these
days, I don't know ..."
Scolding
and arguing by turns, the young mouse and the old badger went inside the Abbey.
Mother Mellus kicked the huge door shut behind her, leaving the storm to rage
on outside.
Across
Great Hall in the cozy surroundings of Cavern Hole, Abbot Bernard sat at head
of table with Brother Simeon on his left paw and Foremole, the mole leader, on
his right. Lanterns twinkled around the homely festive board, moles jostled
shoulders with mice, hedgehogs sat next to otters and squirrels. The Abbey
infants were allowed to sit at table with their elders; they were mainly
woodland orphans gathered in by Mother Mellus—baby mice, small hedgehogs, a
young squirrel and twin otters who had been brought by their parents. Little
ones who were known as Dibbuns, they were sat on the table edges, facing the
Brothers and Sisters of Redwall, the good mice who tended and cared for them.
Redwall
fare was famous throughout the length and breadth of Mossflower. The Abbey grew
all its own produce, and Redwall cooks were experts.
Foremole
had his nose buried in a raspberry cream pudding, speaking in the rustic mole
language through mouthfuls of his favorite sweet.
"Hohurr,
baint nuthen loik rabserry pudden, no zurr. Oi could eat this yurr pudden till
next moleday an' still ax furr more."
Gabe
Quill, the hedgehog cellar-keeper, held a noggin of pear cordial up to a
lantern, swishing it about as he inspected its bright amber color critically.
"Hmm,
what d'you think of that for a touch of good cellar-keepin'?"
A big
male otter named Flagg relieved Gabe of the drink and slurped it down in one
gulp.
"Very
nice, sir. Too good to swill cellars down with."
Gabe's
face was a picture of indignation. "Why you 'orrible otter!"
Grubb,
a baby mole, looked up at the general laughter. Wiping damson jam from his
snout, he shook a small digging paw at Gabe Quill.
"You'm
can 'ave an 'orrible owl, but otters is orful, buhurr aye."
10
Sister
Serena, a rotund mouse who ran the Abbey infirmary and sickbay, wiped the jam
from Grubb's whiskers and passed him a bowl of honeyed milk as she reprimanded
him.
"Hush
now, Grubb. Don't correct your elders."
Grubb
sucked noisily at the milk, coming up with a cream-coated chin.
"Burr
elders, Dandin says oi'm a liddle owd feller, that be maken oi an elder too.
Betcher oi'm elder'n they, an' woiser may'ap."
At the
head of the table the Abbot paused with a hot scone between paw and mouth.
"The log pounding's stopped. Where is Dandin?"
Simeon
took a sip from a foaming tankard of October ale. "In the kitchen. Can't
you hear him? He's getting a drying-down, dry clothes and a good telling-off
from Mellus."
The
reprimands of Mellus and the protests of Dandin echoed loudly down the corridor
between the kitchen and Cavern Hole.
"Keep
still, your ears are saturated!"
"Owow!
I won't have any ears left, the way you're going. Ouch! And I'm not wearing
that great big habit, it belongs to fatty Brother John."
"Ooh,
you ungrateful little scamp! How dare you call Brother John a fatty when he was
good enough to lend you his spare robe! Hey, come here, come back, I say ...
"
The
smack of wet paws on the floor of the passage to Cavern Hole announced the
culprit's escape. Dandin scampered in. He sat between Foremole and a squirrel
named Rufe Brush. Grabbing a wedge of speckled nut-cheese, he jammed it between
two slices of oat farl and began munching, pouring himself a beaker of cold
strawberry cordial as he did. Flagg, the big otter, winked at Dandin and passed
him a bowl of otters' hotroot sauce to dip his farl into.
11
"Aye
aye, matey, run a-foul of Ma Mellus again, have 'ee? Quick an' dip yer bows
now—yonder she comes."
Dandin
ducked beneath the table just in time. Mother Mellus came bustling by, a clean
linen bonnet tied about her great striped head. She nodded to the Abbot and
took her place at the far end of table in a large armchair. Sitting two young
mice on her lap and a baby mole on the arm of the chair, she soon forgot Dandin
as she occupied herself feeding the Dibbuns, wiping chins and generally taking
charge.
"Come
on now, little one, eat up your woodland salad. Pudding later."
"No,
don't lika sala', wanna pudden."
"Salad
first, pudding later. You want to grow up big and strong like me, don't
you?"
"No,
wanna stay lickle an' eat pudden alia time!"
Abbot
Bernard reached beneath the table and nudged Dandin.
"You
can come out now, young mouse. Mother Mellus has her paws full with those
Dibbuns. You did a fine job as log banger, Dandin, though there was no need to
stay out in the storm so long."
Dandin
sat up proudly and reached for a raspberry cream pudding.
"Thank
you, Father Abbot. I stayed out until I knew all our Abbey creatures were
inside, safe and dry. It's my job."
Blind
Simeon smiled. "Well done, young Dandin. You're just the type of mouse
Redwall Abbey needs. One day when the Abbey is fully built and completed, who
knows, you could be our next Abbot."
Dandin
wrinkled his nose, not too pleased with the idea. Abbot Bernard laughed
heartily.
"No
Abbotship for you, eh, young rip? It's easy to see that you come from the line
of Gonff the Mousethief. I wish that Martin the Warrior had left ancestors
behind."
Simeon
held up a paw. "Maybe he did, my friend—
12
not
direct descendants, but spiritual ones. Martin was a Warrior and the founder of
Redwall; his presence is all around us in these very stones. I have never
talked with a creature whom I felt was actually touched by Martin's spirit, but
then we have never needed such a one in this time of peace. However, I feel
that one day before my seasons have run, I will meet some creature whose life
has been touched by the shadow of our Warrior."
Rufe
Brush looked up from a plate of hazelnut cream and apple pie.
"Not
on a night like this you won't, Simeon. Listen to that rainstorm. Any creature
out on a night like this must be drowned by now."
Simeon
was about to answer when he suddenly turned his face aside and clasped a table
napkin to his nose.
"Whaaaw!
Somebeast's eating wild garlic!"
A fat
mole named Burgo several places down with a clothespin fitted snugly upon his
nose was tucking into a big basin with a spoon. He waved a paw at Simeon.
"Burr,
nor c'n oi stan' the smell o' garleck. Oi do dearly luvs the taste of it tho'.
'At's whoi oi keeps moi snowt pegged! Garleck woild soup! Nuthin' loik et,
zurr."
Amid
the laughter that followed, Dandin turned to Rufe Brush.
"By
the fur, Rufe, that rain sounds as if it were trying to knock our Abbey down.
You were right, anybeast out in this must be well drowned by now!"
13
3
Fort
Bladegirt stood at the edge of the high rocks which towered above Terramort
cove, the big window of its banqueting hall facing out to sea. It had a
courtyard and a high wall which ran around its perimeter where the ground was
open, though part of the actual fort building integrated with the outer wall
where it overhung the cove. The entire structure was built from solid rock with
heavy wooden doors at the entrances both to the fort and courtyard. On three
sides it was overlooked by hills. Gabool the Wild had taken it as his by right;
indeed whoever owned Bladegirt was absolute King of Searats, as long as he
could hold it. Inside the fort chaos and misrule were the order of the day.
Corsair rats left their ships to come ashore after long plundering voyages.
They made their way to Bladegirt in droves, leaving their ships at anchor in
the cove. Roistering, fighting, gambling and drinking, the searats enjoyed
their shore leave after the hardships of a life at sea.
In the
high banqueting chamber Gabool sprawled on a carved rock throne, which he had
made more comfortable by covering it with the skins of his slain enemies. He stared
with loving fascination at a great bell dominating the center of the floor;
monumental in its size the prize stood, reflecting the torchlights and
revelry
through its burnished sheen. Copper, silver, brass and gold had been used in
its casting. Heaving himself up, Gabool strode forward, sword in one claw, a
chalice of wine in the other as he traversed the perimeter of his greatest
prize. Grinning like a child with a new toy, he tapped his swordblade against
the marvel-ous bell; the soft musical note vibrated gently like a giant harp
strummed by the wind. As he walked, Gabool's restless eyes roved up and down,
from the strange figures embossed around the top to the intricate words ranging
around the wide base of the great bell.
Gabool
was puzzled as to their meaning, but they were pretty decorations which made
his prize all the more fascinating to look upon.
"Blood
'n' thunder, Cap'n. Give it a good belt an' let's hear it ring out!" A
burly drunken searat named Halfnose pulled a wooden cudgel from his belt and
thrust it toward Gabool. With lightning speed the Warlord grabbed the club and
crashed it down on Half-nose's skull, at the same time landing a thrusting kick
into the drunkard's belly, which sent him reeling into an open cask of wine.
Halfnose slumped across the wine, his head submerged. Gabool roared with
laughter.
"Drink
or drown, seascum. Nobeast comes near Gabool's bell!"
The
carousing searats shrieked their appreciation at his joke. Gabool pointed at
Halfnose with his sword.
"If
he ever gets out o' there, give him a cup of wine t' revive him."
This
caused further merriment, except from the table where Bludrigg, Captain of the
ship Greenfang, sat with his mates. Though Gabool laughed as heartily as the
others, Bludrigg had not escaped his notice. Everyone was laughing, but not
Bludrigg—Bludrigg the surly, Bludrigg the argumentative, Bludrigg the
trouble-causer, the seadeck lawyer. Gabool watched him
closely.
Bludrigg, who could sense the scheming mind behind his King's false merriment.
Things
between the King of Searats and his Captain had been building to a head for a
long time; Gabool decided to settle accounts with Bludrigg now. Gulping wine
from the chalice and allowing it to spill freely into his beard, Gabool pretended
to stagger drunkenly. He winked in a friendly manner and thrust his. sword
point down into a chest of booty. Tottering over to the table, Gabool banged
the half-empty chalice down in front of the Greenfang's Captain.
"Bludrigg,
me old matey, c'mon, drink up!"
Bludrigg'
s face was sullen as he thrust the chalice aside.
"Don't
want no wine. I can drink all I want aboard me ship."
All
around the hall they stopped drinking, singing and gambling; an air of
expectancy settled over the searats. Gabool blinked, as if trying to shake off
the effects of the wine, and swayed slightly.
"Food
then. Can't have my Captain starvin'. Roast meat, fruit, fish, sugared
preserves? Here, bring m' friend Bludrigg some vittles."
Bludrigg's
swordclaw fondled the hilt of his sheathed scimitar.
"Leave
the food, Gabool. I eat well enough."
Gabool
sighed, shaking his head as if in puzzlement. He sat next to Bludrigg and threw
a comradely claw about his shoulders.
"Hmmm,
no wine, no food, no smile on me old shipmate's face. What d'you want then,
bucko?"
Bludrigg
shook Gabool's claw off. He stood upright, knocking the chair over behind him,
his eyes blazing with suppressed rage at the drunken Warlord.
"I
want my share of the plunder. There's been none from the last three sailings.
I'm tellin' you, Gabool, I want my portion of the booty— an' I'll have it
tonight, come hell or high water!"
16
From
around the packed hall there were murmurs of agreement. Gabool spread his arms
wide and smiled.
"Blow
me down! Is that all? Why didn't you say so sooner?"
Bludrigg
was lost for words; the expected clash had not come. Now he felt slightly
foolish in front of his crew. He shrugged, mumbling halfheartedly; he tried
excusing himself as if he were complaining on behalf of his searats.
"Well,
I never thought. . . . It's just that my crew were startin' to complain, they
thought you'd forgotten us ..."
Gabool
looked injured. He went over to the chest of booty, where his sword stood
upright amid a heap of armlets, goblets, baubles and shiny stones. Drawing
forth the sword, he turned one or two items over with its point until he found
what he sought. Gabool flicked the sword up as a shiny gold coronet studded
with gems slid along its blade.
"Aharr,
friend Bludrigg, the best for you. A crown fit for a King!"
Bludrigg
felt a sudden rush of confidence; he had done it! Gabool was notoriously mean
with plunder, but he, Bludrigg, Captain of the Greenfang, had actually got the
better of Gabool. The King of Searats had backed down before him. Bludrigg's
chest swelled as he accepted the beautiful coronet from Gabool's sword-blade
and placed it on his head. A cheer rose from the company as Gabool spread his
arms wide. Extending the sword away from Bludrigg, he addressed them.
"See,
yer scurvy wave-riders. Pay attention, you jetsam of the oceans, I am Gabool
the Wild, this is how I repay me friends. ..." Without warning Gabool
swung a powerfully savage blow with his sword. "And reward my
enemies!"
Even
the hardened searats moaned in horror as the head of Bludrigg thudded to the
floor. The coronet
17
rolled
in front of Gabool. He picked it up on the dripping sword blade and held it
forth to the assembly. "Would anyone else like to wear the crown,
mateys?"
oo
Heralded
by the call of seabirds, eastern sunrays flooded warm and golden into a sky of
calm blue reflected in the millpond sea below. The angry storm had passed,
leaving summer serenity in its wake. The sun warmed the wet bundle on the
flotsam-strewn tide-line until it stirred. Seawater and bile flooded from the
mousemaid's mouth as she coughed feebly. The damp paw set tiny flies buzzing as
it reached for her throat and began weakly grappling with the knotted rope. The
wooden spar lay across her back. A seabird landed upon it; the added weight
caused the mousemaid to vomit more salt water forth with a gurgling groan.
Startled, the bird rose noisily into the air, cheated of the carcass it had
taken for dead. Other seabirds began to wheel and circle overhead. A tiny crab
tried nibbling at the maid's rough wet burlap dress, gave up and scuttled away.
Finally
undone, the rope fell away from her bruised neck. Painfully she shifted the
spar and rolled over onto her back. The mousemaid lay still awhile; some of the
more venturesome seabirds spiraled lower. Rubbing sand and grit from her face
with the back of a paw, she opened both eyes, immediately shutting them again
against the glare of sunlight. Small wavelets trickled and lapped gently away
from the shore; the tide was ebbing. The mousemaid ventured to explore the
wound that the spar had inflicted upon her head. She winced and left it alone.
Turning over again, she shielded her eyes with her paws and rested on the firm
damp sand, soaking up the life-giving rays of the comforting sun. A large
speckled gull landed close to her. Readying its dangerous beak, it stalked
slowly forward; the mouse-maid watched it from between her paws. Within a
neck-length of her prostrate body the sea gull stood upon
18
one
webbed foot and began bringing its beak down in an exploratory peck.
Thwack\
She
swung the wet-sand-weighted end of the rope. It was knotted and her aim was
good. The rope's end thudded solidly into the bird's right eye. With a squawk
of pain and distress the sea gull did an awkward running takeoff, flopping into
the air and dispersing its alarmed companions.
The
little mousemaid began dragging herself laboriously up the beach, her throat
parched, mouth dry, head aching, limbs battered almost numb by the pounding
seas. She reached a tussock of reedgrass in the dry sand above the tideline.
Pulling the grass about her, she lay down in the safety of its shelter. As
sleep descended upon her weary body, strange thoughts flooded her mind. She
could not remember who she was, she had no name she could recall; apart from
the stormy seas that had tossed her up, there was no memory of anything—it was
all a cloudy gray void. Where had she come from? Where was she now? What was
she doing here? Where was she going? Her last thought before sleep enveloped
her brain was that she was a fighter. She could beat off a large sea gull with
a rope's end, even lying stranded and half-dead from exhaustion, and she had
survived the sea.
She was
alive!
19
Dawn
arrived clad in hushed rosiness upon the wake of storm-torn night. Abbot
Bernard had not lain abed, he was up and about. Concern for his beloved Redwall
had driven sleep from his mind; the ravages of gale-force winds and rain would
need repairing. He made a swift tour of inspection, finishing up on the east
battlements. Leaning back upon the strongly hewn stones, Bernard allowed
himself a sigh of relief. There was not much that any weather conditions, no
matter how severe, could do to the Abbey. However, there were broken branches
and wrecked tree limbs overhanging the ramparts to the east and north, with
here and there some ill-fated sapling or hollow woodland monarch toppled
against the walls. Inside, the grounds had largely been protected by the outer
structure—a few crops flattened, fruit bushes in disarray and a loose window
shutter on the gatehouse blown awry. The Father Abbot descended the wallsteps
thankfully and went to summon Foremole to head a repair crew. They could attend
to the damage after breakfast.
The
calm after the storm also had its effect upon the inmates of Redwall Abbey.
Young creatures tumbled out of the Abbey building into the sunlit morning.
Whooping and shouting, they teemed into the orchard
20
to
gather fruit brought down by the winds of the gale. The otter twins Bagg and
Runn frisked and bounded around the apple and pear trees to the strawberry
patch, then lay on their backs, squeaking with laughter as they gobbled up the
juicy fruit, inventing fictitious reasons as to why the berries were lying
there.
"Heehee,
look what was blown down from the strawberry trees by the wind last night.
Heeheehee!"
Durry
Quill, Gabe Quill's little nephew, joined them. He sat in the strawberry patch,
trying to decide which was the biggest berry, eating all the possible
candidates as he listened to the otters. Durry was not at all sure whether he
should believe they had come from a strawberry tree.
"Strawb'rry
trees, 1 don't see no strawb'rry trees. Where be they?"
Bagg
coughed hard to stop himself tittering. He put on a serious face as he
explained the logic of fictitious strawberry trees to the puzzled little Durry.
"Teehee,
er harumph! What? You never see'd a strawb'rry tree. Dear oh dear. Why, they're
great giant things with blue speckly leaves, very light of course, only weigh
as much as two goosefeathers. That's why the wind blowed 'em all away. Whoosh!
Straight o'er the top of the Abbey walls."
The
gullible Durry looked from one to the other, half convinced.
Runn
nodded serious agreement and continued the story. "Sright, I see'd it
meself from the dormitory window. Way away they blowed, all those poor old
great strawb'rry trees, carried off by the wind to the Gongleboo mountains
where the Grunglypodds live."
A
half-eaten strawberry dropped from Durry's open mouth. "Grunglyboo's
mountain where Gronglepodds live, where be that?"
Under a
nearby pear tree Dandin stood paws on hips with his friend, young Saxtus the
harvest mouse. Both smiled as they listened to the two otters leading Durry
21
Quill
astray with their tall tales. Saxtus bit into a windfall pear and grimaced.
"Don't
know why we came out here to eat fruit. Most of these windfalls aren't even
ripe yet. Taste this pear, hard as a rock."
Dandin
sat down with the otters and Durry. "No, thanks, I'll try my luck with all
these berries that fell from the strawberry trees." He looked over the top
of a large strawberry at Bagg and Runn. "Strawberry trees indeed! You two
should be ashamed of yourselves, telling a poor little hedgehog such whopping
great fibs."
Saxtus
sat down with them, keeping his normally solemn face quite straight.
"Dandin's right, y'know. Otters that tell lies get carried off by the big
pink Water-bogle."
Bagg
tossed a strawberry into the air. It missed his mouth and bounced off his nose
as he remarked airily, "Oh the pink Waterbogle. We've been carried off
twice this summer by him, haven't we, Runn?"
Runn
giggled. "Teeheehee! I'll say we have. We told him so many whoppers he
said he's not carrying us off anymore."
From
the direction of the damson and plum trees Simeon's voice interrupted.
"Saxtus!
Dandin! Brother Hubert wants you for your Redwall history and recording
lessons. He is not getting any younger, and someday we will need a new
recorder; traditions must be upheld. Come on, young scamps, I know you're
there!"
The two
young mice dropped flat in the strawberry patch, Dandin holding a paw to his
lips.
"Shush!
It's Simeon. Lie low—he might go away."
The
steady pawsteps of the blind herbalist came nearer. Simeon called again.
"Come
on, you two. I know you're hiding in the strawberry patch."
Saxtus
tugged Bagg's tail and winked at the young
22
otter.
Bagg winked back as he called out, "It's Bagg and Runn, Simeon. We're the
only ones here."
Simeon
appeared, chuckling. "I'm going to count to three, and if you two otters
and that nephew of Quill's aren't off to the Abbey kitchen to help with the
chores, I'll tell Mother Mellus to come and fetch you with a hazel twig. As for
Saxtus and Dandin, unless you want me to give you an extra lecture on the value
of nightshade and campion as herbs, you'll come out now and stop lying there
trying to breathe lightly. I may not have eyesight but my ears and nose have
never deceived me yet."
Saxtus
and Dandin stood up ruefully, wiping away dew from their novices' habits.
Wordlessly they followed Simeon to the gatehouse at the entrance to the outer
walls. Simeon strode boldly ahead, a smile hovering about his lips.
"Hmm,
pity the strawberry trees got blown away in the storm. You could have climbed
up one and hidden in its branches."
Brother
Hubert sat at his desk in the gatehouse. Though Redwall Abbey was of no great
age, he was surrounded by old books, parchments and scrolls. Dust was
everywhere. It settled in layers on furniture and shelf alike, providing a fine
patina to the tomes and volumes piled willy-nilly, coating the yellowed
parchments and writing materials, lazily drifting in a slow swirl around the
morning sunlight shafts flooding through the window. Hubert Kept his head bent
to the task of recording the Abbey's daily life, the long feathered quill pen
waving back and forth as he wrote. Saxtus and Dandin stood in front of him,
listening to the scratch of quill on parchment, keeping a respectful silence
until Brother Hubert spoke to them. Looking over the top of his spectacles,
Hubert blinked severely. "What is punctuality?"
Saxtus
spoke out. "The respect we show other creatures by being on time."
"Hmm,
you two young Brothers have more respect for strawberries than you do for me,
is that not right?"
Saxtus
and Dandin stood in silence. Brother Hubert put aside his pen.
"Tell
me in turn our Abbey charter. Dandin, you may begin."
Dandin
swallowed hard, looked at the ceiling for inspiration, shuffled his paws and
began hesitantly.
"Er,
to be Brothers and Sisters of peace and goodwill, er, living together in
harmony under the protection of Redwall Abbey, er, er, forsaking all
unnecessary forms of violence, not only to Mossflower, its trees, grasses,
flowers and insects, but to all living creatures ..."
Brother
Hubert nodded at Saxtus to continue. He did so with much more confidence and
less hesitancy than Dandin.
"To
help and comfort the dispossessed, harbor orphans and waifs, offer shelter to
all creatures alike, give clothing, warmth and food to any beast or creature
that is deemed in need of such. To educate and learn, particularly in the
healing arts, comfort the sick, nurse the injured and help the wounded
..."
Dandin
received Brother Hubert's nod to continue from Saxtus.
"Er,
er, help the wounded. . . . Er, lessee now, er. . . . Oh yes! To take our food
from the earth and replenish the land by caring for it, er, husbanding crops
and living in harmony with the, er, seasons always. To honor and protect our
friends and brethren, only raising paw to do battle when our life at Redwall is
threatened by treachery and the shadow of war; at these times every Redwall
creature should show courage, fortitude and obedience to the Father Abbot.
Albeit the taking of another life must always be justified and never carried
out in a wanton manner." Brother Hubert came out from behind his desk.
24
"Well
done, Saxtus, and very clearly spoken. As for you, young Dandin, you stammer
and hesitate, you seem to have difficulty in remembering—except, that is, until
you come to the part that deals with treachery, war and battle."
Dandin
looked down at the floor, gnawing at the side hairs of his paw.
Brother
Hubert leaned back against the desk, took a beaker of cordial, blew some dust
from its rim and took a sip before continuing.
"Right,
Saxtus. Tell me what has been going on in Great Hall for three seasons
now."
Saxtus
stroked his chin thoughtfully.
"Going
on ... Great Hall . . . er, er. Oh, is it the making of some cloth picture? Is
that what you mean, Brother Hubert?"
Brother
Hubert polished his spectacles upon his habit sleeve.
"I
don't know, are you asking me or telling me? My my, what a pair of little
puddenheads. See if you can tell him, Dandin."
This
time it was Dandin's turn to brighten up.
"In
Great Hall for the past three seasons, actually it's three and a half, the
Brothers and Sisters, also many woodlanders, are combining their skills to make
a wonderful tapestry. This will depict our founder, Martin the Warrior, showing
how he battled with villainous vermin, foxes, rats, stoats, ferrets and
weasels, even a huge wildcat like that awful Tsarmina. Martin the Warrior
wasn't bothered by those evil beasts, oho no; he got his famous sword and
buckled on his bright armor, took up his shield and drove them from Mossflower
country. Wham! Blatt! He whirled his deadly blade, the rats screamed, the foxes
dived into hiding. Swishl Chop\ Martin was right after them and he whirled his
sword an-"
"Enough,
enough, you bloodthirsty young scamp. How do you know all this?"
Dandin
smiled. A reckless light burned in his bright eyes.
"Because
the father of my father's father was Gonff the Prince of Mousethieves, Martin
the Warrior's famous companion. He could steal the nose from under your eyes
while you were watching and he was a great ballad-maker."
Brother
Hubert nodded wisely. "Yes indeed, an unusual fellow, by all
accounts—thief, rogue, warrior, questor, but all for the good of other
creatures. He married the lovely Columbine, if my memory serves me rightly, so
he could not have been too bad a creature. Never let me catch you stealing,
young Dandin. Wait, there was something I meant to tell you. Ah yes, I have it
here somewhere."
He
began rummaging among piles of old records until the dust flew, finally coming
up with a small object. By this time all three were coughing and spluttering
amid the dust. Hubert shepherded them outside into the cool shadow of the
ramparts before he presented Dandin with the item. It was a small flute,
beautifully made from a piece of straight applewood, bored out by a red-hot
iron rod and wonderfully carved, and it had an ornamental letter "G"
near the mouthpiece.
"I
was looking through some ancient records," Brother Hubert explained.
"They said that the family of Gonff lived down at old Saint Ninian's
church for six generations. Before Gonff moved away from Redwall Abbey,
however, he was presented with a flute by Abbess Germaine, our first Abbey
Mother. But apparently Gonff thought it was far too splendid and fancy for
him—he preferred a reed flute —so he left this behind. I think this is the
flute; it carries his initial and looks very old. I'm sure it belongs rightly
to you, Dandin. Do you think you can play it?"
Dandin
gazed at the flute, his eyes shining. "I'll certainly try, Brother."
26
Hubert
dusted his habit before returning to the gatehouse.
"Good,
perhaps we'll hear you at the Abbot's Midsummer Jubilee feast?"
Saxtus
squinted at the sun. "When's that, Brother?"
"Three
days hence, though some of the older Brothers and Sisters have been planning it
for quite a while now. Our Father Abbot is very modest and does not want to
cause too much fuss, so we have kept it quiet; we didn't want to get you young
ones too excited. Still, I suppose you've got to know at some point ..."
Both
young mice leapt for joy, hugging each other and laughing aloud at the prospect
of the great event.
"Hurray!
Abbot Bernard's Jubilee feast. Redwaaaaaaalll!"
Brother
Hubert's dry, dusty old features broke into a wide grin.
"Go
on now, be off with the pair of you. No doubt you'll be needed to help with the
preparations."
Sister
Sage was not on duty serving breakfast that morning. She took herself off for a
breath of fresh air on the ramparts, enjoying the soft breeze that drifted over
Mossflower Woods.
She
came down from her morning stroll along the walltop to join Brother Hubert, and
together they watched the two young mice hopping and leaping like wild
crickets, across the sunlit lawns and flower beds, toward the Abbey kitchens.
Sister
Sage chuckled and shook her head. "Cowslips! Look at those two young 'uns,
would you! It makes you feel good to be alive on a summertide."
With
that, she hopped off after them, capering madly despite her long seasons.
Brother Hubert attempted a small caper, until dust arose from his habit and his
glasses fell off. He looked about quickly to see no creature had been watching,
then hurried into his gatehouse.
The
midday sun glinted off the waters of the far northwest sea as thick-headed
revelers from the previous night hauled anchors to sail out and scour the seas
or range the coasts in their constant search for plunder and booty, slaves and
trinkets. Gabool the Wild watched them from the high window of his banqueting
hall, Waveblade, Blacksail, Rathelm and Greenfang, four good craft laden with
the rakings and scrapings of seas and oceans, murderers all.
Gabool
had conferred captaincy of the Greenfang on Garrtail, an up-and-coming member
of the searat brethren, but dull and wholly servile to his master Gabool, Lord
of all Waters. Dull Garrtail might be, but Gabool knew that it would not stop
him gossiping to the master of the Darkqueen, Saltar, brother of Bludrigg.
Garrtail knew that the Darkqueen habitually ranged the seas to the south; he
would make sure his path crossed with Saltar. There was little doubt the
corsair master of Darkqueen would hear the tale of his brother's death, chapter
and verse.
Gabool
tore at a leg of roasted kittiwake and chewed reflectively. Saltar had the
reputation of being a hard searat to cross. Though they had never matched
blades, Gabool knew Saltar to be a corsair hook fighter, using
28
a
vicious metal hook to impale opponents before slaying them with his curved
sword. Gabool spat the meat away and hurled the kittiwake leg out of the
window, watching it bounce off rocks on the sheer face until it hit the sea
below.
He
laughed slyly. Two could play at that game!
Taking
a long dagger from his waist sash, Gabool went to the far end of the hall. A
colored cloth wall hanging, held outward by a wooden rail near the ceiling,
reached from on high down to the floor. Gabool pushed it to one side and found
the crack in the stonework behind it. He jammed the long dagger, handle first,
into the crack so that it was wedged, with the blade pointing outward, then let
the wall hanging fall back into place. Though he was a renowned fighter and a
fearless one, Gabool never took chances, particularly since the incident with
the mousemaid. Standing back, Gabool surveyed the trap. Good, the wall hanging
looked like any other in the hall, perfectly harmless.
Now his
restless eye was caught by the great bell. He wandered around its wide
perimeter, fascinated by the object. Surely no Searat King had ever taken such
a magnificent prize. Gabool pinged it with his long curving claws, sounded it
by banging his rings and bracelets upon its brazen surface, amazed by the clear
musical noises it made, tingling, humming and vibrating. He bared his lips.
Leaning close in, he bit lightly at it, making his gold teeth reverberate with
the echoes from the bell. Gabool stroked the cool curving object as he crooned
softly.
"Speak
to me, beauty, we must get to know each other well. I am Gabool the Wild, your
owner, but you need not fear me. Your voice will call to my fleet one day, your
tones will terrify my enemies. You will be the voice of Gabool when I set you
atop of my fort and let your tongue swing free. Then, ah then, you will boom
out across the waves so that all the seas will know Gabool is King."
29
On a
sudden impulse Gabool dashed off. Slamming the door behind him, he took the
downward stairs three at a time, deeper and deeper into the depths of his own
lair. Two guards were standing at the entrance to the prison cells. Gabool
whirled upon them with a snarl.
"Get
out of my sight and leave me alone here!"
As the
guards fled, Gabool made his way to a cell that was little more than a cage. He
lounged against the bars, grinning at the pitiful creature locked up inside.
"Well,
bellmaker, ready to work for me yet?"
Joseph
the Bellmaker was chained by his waist to the wall. The floor of the
subterranean cell was awash with sea water which seeped through from outside.
Joseph had once been a powerful, well-fleshed mouse, but now his cheeks were
sunken and dark circles formed around his eyes. Starvation and ill treatment
had taken their ruthless toll on the bellmaker, though as he raised his head,
both eyes burned with remorseless hatred for his captor.
"I
would sooner be eaten by the fishes of the sea than serve you, rat."
Gabool
continued as if he had not heard the prisoner. "You can do it, Joseph, I
know you can. A bell tower strong enough to hold the great bell, right on top
of my fort, where the whole world will hear it."
Joseph
pulled forward, straining at the chain in the enclosed space, his voice shaking
with pent-up rage.
"Never.
I would not soil my paws with your mad ideas and evil schemes. That bell was
made for the badger, the Lord of Salamandastron, enemy of all sea-scum. It will
never ring for you!"
Gabool
drew his sword and clashed it against the cell bars.
"Hell's
guts! D'you think I care who it was made for, you fool? The bell is mine now,
mine to do what I like with. Its voice will sound for me alone. I, Gabool,
Warlord of the Waves, say this!"
Joseph
slumped down, shaking his head in despair.
30
"You're
mad, completely insane and evil. Kill me, do what you want with me, I don't
care anymore."
Gabool
sheathed his sword. Drawing close to the bars he whispered low, "And your
daughter?"
The
bellmaker's face betrayed the agony his mind was suffering.
"No,
please! You wouldn't harm her, you couldn't! She's so young and, and. . . .
Don't you dare hurt my daughter!"
Gabool
now sorely regretted drowning the bellmaker's daughter. Still, if the old
buffoon thought she was alive, there might be a bit of fun here. Gabool decided
to toy with his victim.
"If
you build my bell tower I will let you see her again, but not until you've
carried out the work."
Joseph
tugged at the chain. He bit his lip until blood showed, torn by the decision he
knew he had to make.
"Gabool,
listen. I would not put a single stone atop another for you. Why? Because it
would mean death, torture or slavery for countless other good creatures. Don't
you understand, rat, my conscience would not let me, after I saw what they did
to the Captain and crew of our ship when searats captured us. I know it means
that I may never see my young one again. It tears my heart apart, but I must do
the right thing for the sake of others."
Gabool
summoned up all his cunning, his black soul driving him on to wickedness,
belying the smile on his face as he threw his claws wide.
"Haharr,
very stubborn, Joseph, but I can see that you're a good creature. Sometimes I
wish that I'd never been born wicked, but decent like you. I suppose I'll have
to think of somethin' else now. But hark, bellmaker, I'm sure you'd like to see
your daughter again, wouldn't you, matey?"
Tears
of gratitude beaded in the unsuspecting prisoner's eyes. "She means more
to me than anything. Please let me see her!"
Gabool
took the keys from a wallspike. "Hell's gates! I must be getting soft in
me old age. Come on, then."
They
stood in the banqueting hall, barbarian and bellmaker. Joseph looked around
him, dragging his chains as he did.
"Where
is she?"
Gabool
touched the great bell with his sword. "Not so fast, shipmate. If you
won't build me a bell tower, then at least tell me what these little pictures
and strange words round the top 'n' bottom of my bell mean."
Joseph
shuffled anxiously around the bell, his mind preoccupied with thoughts of his
daughter as he reluctantly read off the rhyme at its base.
"I
will ring for wedding times, when two hearts
unite.
I will toll the hours out, all daytime and through
night.
I will wake good creatures up, from their beds each
morning,
Or toll when they're in danger, a clear and brazen
warning.
For all the family, son and daughter, husband and
goodwife,
I will boom a sad farewell, when they must leave
this
life. For many great occasions, for many different
reasons,
Listen and my voice you'll hear, throughout the
changing
seasons. Though I may boom, clang, peal or toll, command
and use
me well. But hark, beware the evil ones who would misuse
this
bell."
Gabool
stared hard at Joseph. "Trash! I'll have it filed off one day. What about
the little drawin's an' pictures round the top, what do they mean,
bellmaker?"
32
Joseph
spread his shackled paws. "Only the Lord of Salamandastron knows that. He
gave me a parchment with those drawn upon it. Who knows what goes through the
minds of the great badger rulers of the fire mountain; they are creatures of
destiny. I've told you all I know, now can I see my daughter?"
Gabool
led him to the open window.
"Of
course, matey, I can't show you the exact spot where she lies, but I can show
you how to find her ..."
For
Gabool it was but the work of a moment, one swift push!
In the
late afternoon the mousemaid cast a long shadow as she wandered the deserted
beach alone. Hunger, thirst and attacks of myriad gnats and sandflies had
wakened and forced her to desert the hiding place. Over one shoulder she still
carried the knotted rope. A long line of pawprints in the sand behind her
emphasized the desolation of sea, sand and sky, seemingly inhabited only by
predatory seabirds. She had tried gnawing at some young seaweed washed up on
the tideline, but the heavy salt taste in the maiden's dry swollen mouth caused
her to spit it away. Swaying slightly, she shielded her eyes from the hot orb
of the sun and gazed about. Fresh water was nowhere to be had. Turning inland,
she made her weary way toward a large outcrop of sand dunes to the south.
Some
perverse dogged spirit drove the mousemaid onward, though often she would be
toppled over by the hot shifting sand of the dunes. Rolling downhill, she would
pick herself up, wipe grit from her eyes and begin climbing again. It was on
top of one difficult dune she encountered the first sign of life that was not a
seabird. It was a small lizard, eyes half-closed, basking in the heat. The
reptile did a sideways shuffle, watching her warily. The maiden tried several
times to communicate, managing only a croaking noise. The lizard's head
33
weaved
from side to side as it snapped bad-temperedly at her.
"You
norra frog, you make frognoise, wharra you
want?"
The mousemaid managed to gasp out a single word:
"Water."
The
small lizard moved its head up and down, its throat pulsating.
"Water
faraway. You norra lizard, you die soon, never make it to drinkwater, too far.
Soon now they
eat
you."
She
followed the creature's upward nod. Gulls were beginning to circle overhead;
the scavengers of the shore, sensing when a living thing was becoming weaker
and more defenseless. The maid grasped the knotted rope and swung it, calling
at the sky in a hoarse voice, "I'm not finished yet. You'll see!"
When
she looked down, the lizard had gone. Without a backward glance she descended
the other side of the dune, half stumbling, half falling. The foot of the dune
was in shadow. Before her lay a sandy flatland dotted with scrub and coarse
grass. The little mousemaid rested awhile in the welcoming shade. Idly her paw
sank into the sand as she leaned back. Suddenly she sat bolt upright. The sand
was firm and damp just beneath the surface. Realization that she was not on the
seaward side of the dunes brought with it the shining hope of one precious
thing. Water!
Scrabbling
dizzily, her strength failing rapidly, the maid began digging with all paws.
Soon she was rewarded by darker, damp sand. Her paws made a delicious scraping
noise as she tossed sand out of the shallow hole. Digging with the urgency of
desperation, she was finally rewarded with one wet paw. She sat sucking her paw
as the moisture seeped through the ground into the hole, forming a small muddy
pool. Throwing herself flat, the little mousemaid shoved her head into the hole
and drank greedily, disregarding the
34
gritty
sand and ooze, as life-giving water flowed down her throat. New vitality surged
through her. Gurgling with delight, she lifted her head and found herself
staring into the predatory eye of a gannet that had been sneaking up on her.
Thwackl
Thwopl
With
eye-blurring speed she belted the knotted rope twice into the bird's face. It
stumbled, fell over, sticklike legs buckling under it. The mousemaid advanced,
swinging her weapon, with battle light in her eyes and a clear angry voice.
"Come
on! What d'you want, the water or me? Come on. I'll fight you, you great
featherbed!"
The
twirling knot struck the gannet a further three times before it managed to flop
off into the air with a half-stunned squawk. The little mousemaid felt the
blood thrumming in her veins. She tore up a nearby plant and shook it at the
sky.
"That
goes for all of you. I'll kill the next one that comes after me. D'you
hear?"
She
found herself shouting at an empty evening sky. The birds had gone in search of
less ferocious prey. Inspecting the plant she had pulled from the ground, she
noticed that the root was attached to a fat white tuber. Without further
hesitation she began munching upon it. The tuber tasted good, something like
raw turnip.
Evening
gave way to night as the maid sat at the foot of the dune, bathing the wound on
her head with a corner of her burlap smock which she had soaked in water from
her newfound well. Dabbing at the cut with one paw and devouring a root held in
the other, the mousemaid talked aloud to herself, enjoying the sound of her own
voice.
"No
name, no memory, no idea where I am. Ha! I know, I'll call myself Storm,
because it was the storm that brought me here. Yes, Storm, I like that
..."
She
held the rope up and twirled it. "And you are
35
my
faithful Gullwhacker. There, we've both got new names now. This is good—I've
got you, the shade from my sandhill, water and food."
Storm
settled down in the sand as the warm summer night closed in on her. "Wish
I knew who I really was, though ..." Her voice sounded small and lonely
amid the scrub and desolation.
A pale
golden moon peeped over the dunes at the little mousemaid sleeping by the foot
of the hill, clutching a piece of knotted rope, for all the world like some
infant in slumber nursing a favorite toy.
The
famous kitchens of Redwall Abbey were abustle with activity that night. Friar
Alder, the thin, lanky mouse in charge of it all, added wild plumjuice to an
enormous hazelnut crumble he had just pulled from the oven. Alder blew on a
scorched paw, complaining loudly.
"Not
enough time. That's all I've been given, just not enough time. Who do they
think I arn, a magician? Less than three days hence and I've got to supervise a
fullblown Abbot's Midsummer Jubilee. Berry tarts, cream puddings, twelve
different kinds of breads, cheeses and salads, not to mention a surprise cake
..."
Bagg
and Runn, the otter twins, followed Alder, waving their paws and repeating his
every word in comic imitation.
"Breads,
cheeses and salads, not to mention a surprise cake. . . . Owch!"
Friar
Alder had turned quickly and dotted them both between the ears with a wooden
spoon. "I told you not to mention a surprise cake. Now off you pop, the
pair of you. Go and help Dandin and Saxtus."
Dandin
and Saxtus were being taught the art of woodland summercream pudding-making by
a charming little red squirrelmaid named Treerose, though they
37
were
paying far more attention to the pretty cook than to the recipe.
"Now,
to make woodland summercream pudding we need a deep earthenware bowl. Pass me
that one, please."
Dandin
and Saxtus fought each other to grab the bowl and give it to Treerose. Calmly
she took it from them with a disarming smile.
"Great
sillies, you nearly broke it, fighting like that. Right, now pay attention.
First a thick coating of redcur-rant jelly inside the bowl. Next, roll out your
sweet chestnut pastry very thin, like this. . . . Bagg! Runn! Stop eating those
blackberries—I need them for the pudding!"
The
twin otters bounded away to torment some other creature, their mouths stained
purple from the berries. They caught a young bankvole named Petunia and kissed
her cheeks until she was covered in purple otter-lip marks. Petunia's mother
grabbed them and set about them with a soggy dishcloth. Dandin and Saxtus
roared laughing, but Treerose merely pursed her mouth primly and reprimanded
them.
"There's
nothing funny about those two ruffians. Watch me, or you'll never learn. Now,
make sure the sweet chestnut pastry is well bedded into the redcurr-ant jelly
around the sides of the bowl, then we coat the pastry with an extra-thick layer
of yellow primrose cream. Having done that, we take the blackberries and,
starting from the bottom of the basin, we place them on the cream, pressing
just lightly enough to make them stick to the cream. Teh tch, you great clumsy
fellows, not like that. You'll burst the berries. Wipe your paws and watch
me."
Blushing
furiously, Dandin and Saxtus wiped their paws as the young charmer carried on
efficiently.
"Now
I'm going to coat these thick almond wafers with some light honeycream, like
so. ... You see how easily they stick to the blackberries when I use them as
38
the
next layer. There, that's that. All that remains now is for me to spoon the
applecream into the center until the basin is full. To finish off, cover the
whole thing with a short hazelnut pastry glazed with clear honey to give it a
nice shiny crust. Open that bottom oven door, please."
"Owch!
Ooch! Yagh! Woop!"
"Great
silly mice! Use oven cloths to protect your paws. Out of the way! I'll see to
it. You two are as much use as moles up a tree."
Dandin
and Saxtus sucked their scorched paws and stood watching, red with
embarrassment as Treerose, the perfect little Miss Efficiency, swung the oven
door wide, popped the pudding inside and shut the door with a few deft
movements.
Mother
Mellus wandered over, trimming the edges from a strawberry flan. "Hello,
Treerose. How are the two star pupils doing?"
"Clumsy
as ducks on an iced pond, Mother Mellus."
Treerose
turned and flounced off. The badger ruffled the ears of the crestfallen mice.
"Never
mind. Tell you what—if you get me some cider from Gabriel Quill to bake my
horse chestnuts in, I'll let you try one each."
The
pair dashed off happily to the wine cellars. Mellus chuckled as she helped
herself to a pawful of apple, cheese and nut salad that Sister Sage was
chopping.
"Poor
old Dandin and Saxtus. That young Treerose is enough to turn any novice's head
and set him on his tail. She does it all the time."
Sister
Sage topped the salad off with crushed mint dressing. "Yes, I can remember
a young mouse being like that about me when I was a snip of a mousemaid.
Brother Hubert, would you believe."
Mellus
chuckled deeply. "What? You mean old dusty drawers Hubert? Surely
not!"
"Oh,
he was quite a handsome young dog at one
39
time.
We studied together under Sister Verity. She was a stern old stickler; 'Hubert/
she'd say, 'stop staring like a hungry owl at Sage and get on with your work.'
" Sister Sage patted her rotund little waist. "That was when I fell
out of love with Hubert and into love with food. Ah well, that's the salad.
What's next? Pears in custard with wild cherries. Mmmm, my favorite!"
oo
In the
wine cellars, Dandin and Saxtus followed Gabe Quill. His nephew Durry carried
the lantern for them as Gabe pointed out some of his specialties.
"See
that liddle keg yonder—aye, that un. Well, that's the best wild plum brandy
ever fermented in these cellars. They do say it was made by big Brown-spike
O'Quill, my ancestor. Marvelous stuff it is, one tot of that'd cure a drownin'
fish. That's why Sister Sage or Simeon are the only beasts who use it—medicinal
purposes. That big tun barrel at the back now, that's dandelion beer. Very good
of a cold winter's night with toasted cheese. This one here, haha, you must try
this rascal. Funniest drink I ever did make. It was meant to be buttercup 'n'
honey cordial, but I made it too sweet, so I takes a herb here an' a plant
there an' chucks 'em in to bitter it a touch. Mercy me! It didn't go any less
sweet, no sir, it started a-fizzin' an' bubblin'. Little uns do love it dearly.
Here, try some."
Dandin,
Saxtus and Durry stood wide-eyed as Gabe Quill tapped the barrel and drew three
small beakers off. The bright yellow cordial popped, fizzed and gurgled as if
it were alive. Drinking it proved almost impossible. Gabe Quill stood by,
quaking with mirth as the three young ones tried.
"Whan!
Ooh, it's gone right up my nose!" "Heeheehee! It tickles all the way
down!" "Woogolly! It's like having a tummyful of mad
butterflies!"
Gabe
took a jug over to his cider barrels. "D'you want a drinkin' cider or a
cookin' cider?"
40
"Oh,
a cooking one, I s'pose. Whoops, heehee! Er, sorry. It's for Mother Mellus.
She's baking horse, teehee, chestnuts, whoo! For the Jubilee, phwaw! That stuff
could tickle you to death, Mr. Quill. Hahaha!"
"Well,
it's certainly got you young uns all of a-wiggle. You'd never make it upstairs
carryin' a jug o' cider. Siddown now an' sip some of this cold motherwort tea.
That'll
calm you a bit."
oo
Above
stairs in the kitchens, Friar Alder was at his wits' end. The Foremole and his
team had decided to make the biggest raspberry cream pudding ever seen in
Mossflower country. Alder threw his hat down and danced upon it.
"Flour,
raspberries, honey and cream everywhere. I can't stand it!"
Foremole
ignored him, but a fat mole named Buxton waved a reassuring paw at the harassed
Alder. "Burr, doant you a-froight yerself, maister. Us'ns knows wot we're
about."
A young
mole named Danty, white with flour from tail to tip, climbed into one of the
huge copper stock-pots.
"Hurr
aye, doant 'ee fret thoi whiskers, zurr Alder. Yurr, Burgo, tipple some o' they
rabserries in yurr, an' moind that garleck doant go near 'em."
Burgo
turned indignantly to Foremole, who blanched at the smell of the wild garlic
Burgo always carried. His voice sounded squeaky through the peg he wore at the
tip of his snout. "Yurr, wot's Danty rubblin' on about? Oi doant loik the
smell o' garleck noither. 'At's whoi oi allus pegs me nose up toight. Oh
lookit, liddle Grubb's fell in 'ee honey."
Foremole
fished Baby Grubb out of the panful of warm honey. "Gurr you'm toiny
racsal, wot do 'ee want ter fallen in honey furr?"
Grubb waved
a sticky carefree paw. "Hurr, better
fallen
in honey than mud, oi allus says. Baint nothen wrong wi' honey. Bees makes
et."
Foremole
wrinkled his button nose, nodding in agreement. "Ho urr, the choild be
roight, he'm be growen up wisely clever. Stan' o'er thurr an' lick thoi-self
off, liddle Grubb. Buxton, Drubber, see wot you'm c'n do for zurr Alder—he'm
fainted roight away. Doant leave 'im alyin' thurr in yon rabserry pudden
mixture."
From
the kitchen doors Abbot Bernard stood watching the proceedings, with Simeon
chuckling beside him.
"My
my, those moles are certainly teaching Friar Alder a thing or two, Bernard. His
kitchen will never be the same again."
"Indeed,
Simeon. Excuse me a moment, will you? Brother Ash, would you help those little
mice to roll that great cheese they're trying to move? If it falls on one of
them he'll be flattened. Oh, Treerose, I don't wish to interfere, but is that a
woodland summercream pudding I can smell beginning to burn in the ovens?"
Treerose
had been bustling about, efficiently attending to several things at once.
However, she had forgotten the woodland summercream pudding she had put in the
oven some time before. Panic-faced, she dashed off to attend to it.
Simeon
nodded in admiration. "Your sense of smell is getting better,
Bernard."
"Thank
you, Simeon, but I had a double motive. Treerose is very pretty but far too
efficient and snippy. It will teach her that even the best of us can make
mistakes. Also, I would hate a woodland summercream pudding to be burnt in the
ovens, especially hers. To tell the truth—and I wouldn't tell her—Treerose does
make the best woodland summercream I've ever tasted."
Treerose
arrived at the ovens, grabbed up a cloth and swung the door wide.
"My
pudding. . . . It's gone!"
"I
smelled the crust edges just begin to scorch so I pulled it out for you."
She
turned to see Rufe Brush standing by her pudding, which was set on the big flat
cooling slate. Rufe was a rough-looking squirrel, not given overmuch to hanging
about kitchens or joining the growing band of Treerose's admirers. He sniffed
at the pudding before sauntering off. "Looks all right to me."
Treerose
watched him go. What a fine bushy tail, well-pointed ears and powerful
shoulders . . .
Mother
Mellus banged a ladle upon a saucepan. "Come on, all you Dibbuns. Bedtime
now."
Abbot
Bernard yawned. "I think I'll join the Dibbuns, Simeon."
"Me
too, Bernard. It's been a long day and we're getting no younger, my friend.
I'll just take a stroll first and check that all the outer gates are
secured." Simeon the blind herbalist placed a paw on his friend's
shoulder.
"Right,
I'll come with you."
"No
you won't. I can sense your weariness. Besides, what could you see in the dark
that i could not feel ten times better? Day and night are alike to me."
"You
are right, of course. Good night, Simeon."
"Good
night, Bernard. Sleep well."
The
Abbot went off to his room, knowing that shortly the kitchen fires would be
damped for the night, the cooks would retire and peace would settle over his
beloved Redwall Abbey.
oo
As
Gabool predicted, the ship Greenfang had crossed bows with Darkqueen, the huge
black galley commanded by Saltar. Upon hearing of the death of his brother
Bludrigg, the corsair Captain put about, piling on sail and oars as he set
course for Terramort Isle. The whips cracked belowdecks as drivers flogged the
galley slaves on to greater efforts. The searat atop of the mizzenmast scoured
the waves for sight of land; below his claws
43
the
wide sails bellied out on the night breeze. Saltar stood in the bows putting a
fine edge to his curved sword on an oilstone. Bleak-eyed and grim-faced, the
searat muttered beneath his breath.
"I'll
send you down where the fish will eat your flesh and the sea water rot your
bones, Gabool the Wild. There was never any love lost between me and Blud-rigg,
but he was my brother, and blood must be repaid with blood."
"Terramort
rocks sighted off the starb'd bow, Cap'n," the lookout called down. "We
can drop anchor in the cove afore dawn with this wind behind us."
Saltar
sheathed his sword and began polishing the needletip of his cruel gaff hook,
scowling at the dark lump on the horizon which marked the black forbidding
rocks of Gabool's pirate kingdom.
"Ledder,
douse all lights. When we're close enough to harbor, furl in all sails. Tell
the crew to arm up and stand ready. There's killin' to be done tomorrow."
Saltar's
first mate Ledder went aft to carry out his orders.
With
the hook swinging from a neck cord and his sword at his side, Saltar stood
leaning on the forward rail. He had never lost a fight or left an enemy alive.
Gabool the Wild might rule Terramort and Fort Blade-girt, but Saltar had heard,
as had every other salty searat, the story of how he was nearly bested by a
mousemaid.
The
corsair spat viciously over the side at the curving bow wave. "Lord of all
Seas, King of Searats! Huh! You'll find out tomorrow, Gabool. You'll learn that
Saltar
the Corsair is no mousemaid!"
oo
In the
banqueting hall of Fort Bladegirt, Gabool stood giving instructions to three
fortslaves, dormice who had been captured in a land raid.
"Stand
on his shoulders, you. Polish up round the top where the ring is. You, be
still, and don't put yer
44
bare
paws on the metal—you'll have pawmarks all over me bell. Of course, you know
what that means, don't you?"
Doing
his best to stand still and not to touch the bell, the ragged slave called over
his shoulder, "Yes, Master. Pawmarks all over the bell mean whipmarks all
over our backs."
Gabool
slouched down on his throne. He picked idly at a dish of fruits crystallized in
sugared honey and poured a goblet of wine.
"That's
right, three lashes each for every pawmark. If I were you, I'd rip me shirt up
and wrap it round me paws—save yerself a lot of whipping."
The
three slaves hurried to comply with the suggestion, tearing up the pitiful
remnants of tattered shirts and bandaging their paws with the strips.
A thin
gray rat with a patch over one eye came running. "Lord, the Darkqueerirs
sails have been sighted."
"Where
away?"
"To
the north. She should drop anchor here by dawn."
Gabool
stroked his beard thoughtfully. "Good, are the troops standin' ready,
mate?"
"Aye,
Lord. Five score to board the Darkqueen and sail her off once Saltar and his
crew step ashore, fifty archers halfway up the cliff and a hundred more fully
armed with pikes and spears to form his reception committee, just as you
ordered."
"You've
done well, Graypatch. Have a cup o' wine and some of these sweetmeats with me.
Dawn will soon be here."
Graypatch
pulled out a mean-looking dagger and tested its edge. "Last dawn Saltar'll
ever see, eh, Lord."
"Aye,
he can go and visit his brother Bludrigg at Hellgates, and you, me old
shipmate, you can wear a velvet patch when you're Captain of the Darkqueen.
Hey, you! Polish harder, put your skinny back into it."
45
"Yes,
Master." The unfortunate slave polished harder.
Gabool
laughed. "Maybe you're hungry. D'you like eating fish?"
"Yes,
master. I like eating fish."
Gabool
winked at Graypatch as he called back to the dormouse slave. "Well, if you
don't rub harder, the fish'll like eating you. Hahaha!"
The
thin bodies of the slaves shook and quivered with effort as they rubbed and
polished at the great bell with all their might. Gabool's jokes were not to be
taken lightly.
Gabool
and Graypatch took their wine and sweetmeats over to the window, where they
could watch the Darkqueen sail in upon the tide.
Graypatch
watched the savage Searat Ruler and reflected as he sipped his wine that Gabool
was becoming more difficult to tread around. They had been ship-rats together
since their young days, Gabool commanding, Graypatch obeying—that was the way it
had always been. However, for some time now Graypatch had been looking more to
his own ends. When a Searat King began murdering his Captains on the slightest
pretext, times were becoming perilous; now the patch-eyed rat was sure of it.
Gabool was drunk with his own power and had become dangerous; anybeast could be
slain at his whim. But not Graypatch. Offers of Captaincy and velvet patches
did not impress him—such offers could easily turn into a blade between the ribs
if Gabool saw fit. In his fertile brain Graypatch began forming his own plans
as he laughed and joked with his unpredictable companion, while all the time
the Darkqueen rode the waves to Terramort.
46
7
Dawn
broke mistily over the dunes, promising another hot summer day. The mousemaid
Storm awoke to find herself surrounded by toads. During the night the well she
had dug had filled up with water, and all around Storm the toads were closing
in on her and the precious water. She closed her eyes again, feigning sleep.
Her paw grasped Gullwhacker, the knotted rope, as she watched them through
partially closed eyes. It was a dangerous situation; many of the toads were
armed with tridents. She waited until a large male natterjack was practically
standing over her before springing into action.
Whop!
Gullwhacker
came down with such a resounding force upon the toad's head that he was laid
out senseless. Storm whirled the rope, shouting aloud. "Back off,
slimyskins, or I'll whack you into the middle of next season!"
A huge
overweight speckled toad hopped heavily forward, flanked by two tough-looking
young ones armed with the fearsome three-pointed tridents. The fat one blinked
several times, his throat bulging and quivering.
"Grroikl!
This is our land, this is our water. Grrokk!
47
You are
not allowed to stop here. Go now or die, Oyka-mon has spoken. Rrrebb!"
Storm
was not about to go and she did not mince her words. "You can speak all
you want, fatface. This is my land and my water, this little bit right here. I
am called Storm Gullwhacker. I come from the sea and I'm going nowhere. But
I'll fight to stay here!"
Oykamon
puffed himself up to full swell. "Grriokk! You are very insolent for a
mouse. Krrrr! We are too many for you. If you fight you will die here.
Grakk!"
Storm
sprang forward with a yell, swinging her rope. The toads backed off slightly.
She laughed scornfully.
"Right
then, I'll die here, but I'll take a few of you with me. Well, come on,
froggies. Who's first? Or are you going to sit there clicking and grocking
until I die of old age!"
At a
signal from Oykamon the toads advanced. Storm dipped the knotted end of
Gullwhacker into the well water to make it heavier. Two toads sprang at her.
Recklessly she jumped upon one, knocking the wind completely out of him as she
scored a bull's-eye on his companion's snout with her weapon. Two more rushed
from behind her. Storm thwacked at them wildly. As she did, one young toad ran
in on her blind side and stabbed her footpaw with his trident. Maddened with
pain, she hurled herself upon him, throttling with one paw and belaboring with
the rope in the other. Now toads began hopping in on top of her, their weight
carrying her to the ground, although she fought ferociously every bit of the
way. Suddenly a cry rang from the dunetops.
"Eeeeuuulaliaaa!"
There
was a croak of alarm from the attackers, followed by the pounding of swift
paws. In the next moment toads were flying through the air like birds as three
hares attacked with lance butts. Teeth bared and eyes wide, the three tall
creatures moved with the practiced ease of natural fighters, their long ears
streaming
48
out
behind them as they skillfully kicked with big supple hindlegs, each a
sandy-colored seasoned warrior, brooking no nonsense from their flabby adversaries.
Thudding, thwacking and tossing with immense energy, they drove the toads from
Storm. Belaboring and punishing without once using their lance points, the
hares defeated the toad band swiftly. Storm sat up nursing her wounded paw as
the oldest of the hare trio strode lankily to the well.
"Good
egg! I say, young 'un, is this your water? May I?"
Storm
nodded dumbly. The hare drank his fill, spitting out the grit.
He
pulled a wry face, and made a leggy old-fashioned bow. "Pshaw! Tastes
pretty yucky, don't it. Allow me to introduce us. I am Colonel Clary, family
name's Meadowclary, of course, but you can call me Clary, everybeast does. This
young wag over here is none other than the celebrated Brigadier Thyme, and the
young gel is our ward the Honorable Rosemary, Hon Rosie to you. Capital! Now,
pray tell me whom I have the honor of addressing, marm, though you're a bit
young to be a marm, aren't you."
Storm
stood up, favoring her uninjured footpaw. She threw the rope across her
shoulders, squinting at the odd trio.
"My
name's Storm Gullwhacker. This is my Gullwhacker—d'you like it?"
"Hmph!"
Brigadier Thyme snorted through his stiffly waxed whiskers. "Adequate for
the purpose, I suppose, but there's nothing like a lance butt for dealing with
toads, young mouse—you take it from me."
The
toads had begun to regroup indignantly. Oykamon repuffed himself.
"Grrogg!
I will collect many more toads, we will be as many as the sands of the shore,
then you will all die. Krrrrik!"
49
Hon Rosie
had an earsplitting laugh; every creature present winced as she launched into
it.
"Whooyahahahah!
'Fraid we'll be long gone by then, you old frogwalloper. Sorry we can't stop
around and be slain, wot! Duty calls."
Oykamon
spat bad-temperedly. "Krroik! Go then. Death awaits you if you return to
this place!"
The
other toads shuffled forward aggressively, shaking their tridents.
Colonel
Clary strode decisively forward. He twirled his lancetip, disarming the leading
toad with a flick. Clary's eyes grew hard.
"Right,
pay attention, you slimy rabble! We are the long patrol from Lord Rawnblade of
Salamandastron. Nobeast stops us—we range where we please and when, carrying
out orders. If you take one more step forward, we will use our lancetips, not
the blunt ends. Then you will really see death visit this spot. Back off now,
marshspawn. You there, leader chappie, tell all ranks to retreat, or you'll be
the first to have your gizzard decorated by lancepoint."
Oykamon
croaked out some sullen orders, and the toads retreated hastily.
Hon
Rosie turned to Storm. "I say, can you walk on that bally hoof?"
Storm
tested her injured footpaw. "I'll be all right. Where are we going?"
"Somewhere
you can get proper fodder 'n' drink, old gel. You don't want to be hangin'
about this thumpin' great wasteland twiddlin' your paws."
Brigadier
Thyme inspected the paw. "Hmm. Not much wrong with that fetlock, young
mouse."
The
three hares carried satchels across their backs. Hon Rosie took hers off.
"Righto,
first-aider Rosie to the rescue, wot? Whoohahahahah! I can't resist bandaging
things, jolly good at it. Now, some hart's tongue fern, staghorn clubmoss, dab
of salt and bind the blinkin' lot up with
50
a few
strands of maidenhair fern. There! I'll bet you could trip a mouse mazurka with
that little lot on. Try it."
Storm
tested the footpaw. It felt very comfortable and easy. "Thank you, Rosie.
It feels as good as new."
Colonel
Clary had been pacing restlessly up and down. He shielded his eyes and took
some bearings from the sun.
"Good
egg, ladies. Got all the latest in shrubbery foot fashions sorted out now?
Top-hole, then we can get going. Actually I was thinking of heading nor'east
into the woodland fringes. We could have lunch there and visit old Pakatugg.
What d'you say, Thyme?"
"Hmmm,
yes, why ever not. Best idea under present circs, wot!"
It took
some time for Storm to fall in with the hares' mode of speech. They seemed to
treat everything in a very casual offpaw sort of way, but they were usually
correct in their judgments.
oo
By
early noon they had left the flatlands. Behind them the gritty expanses mottled
with sparse vegetation shimmered in the summer heat, with the dunes a hazy
half-mirage in the distance. More dunes stood out ahead, paw-sinking shifting
sand dunes that were difficult to surmount. Topping one such sandhill, they
found themselves facing a fringe of pine-clad woodland, dark green and shady, a
haven from the glare of the midday sun.
Brigadier
Thyme marked out a vast hornbeam and led them to it. He held up a cautionary
paw.
"Keep
mum, chaps. Old Pakatugg's close—I can feel it in m' whiskers."
A
pointed dart whistled past Thyme's ear, burying itself in the hornbeam. From
somewhere close by a gruff angry voice rang out.
"You're
a-trespassin' on Pakatugg's land. Who be yer?"
"Clary,
Thyme and Rosie, the long patrol of the foot 'n' fur Rangers," Colonel
Clary answered. "Oh, and we've got a young thingummy with us. ... A
mouse-gel."
Though
Storm tried to see who it was, she could make out no sign of a living creature,
"Thingummy
mousegel," the gruff voice answered. "What sorta thingummy? Anyhow,
how do I know you're you? What's the password?"
Clary
snorted impatiently. "Oh, come out, you old buffoon, you know it's us.
Listen, I'll even give you the bally password. Takatugg Treefleet, we bring you
good things to eat.' There, now come out, you old barkwal-loper."
Storm
had to bite her lip so as not to laugh at the odd creature who dropped down
from a nearby spruce.
Pakatugg
Treefleet was a fat old squirrel. He carried a long hollow blowpipe and a pouch
of darts. Sticking out of his ears, wound about his tail and paws and covering
all his body were leafy twigs. He resembled a small moving bush with eyes.
"Huh,
landotters, what've you brought Paka for lunch?" Pakatugg growled fiercely
through the two teeth remaining in his mouth.
Brigadier
Thyme sniffed. "We're not landotters, we're hares, and if your manners
don't improve, laddie, you won't be dining on oatscones and mountain cheese,
followed by berry 'n' barley bake."
Pakatugg
nearly tore the knapsack from Thyme's back. "Oatscones, mount'n cheese,
where?"
"Hoho,
not so fast, laddie buck. Take us to your hide-out first. We want to put the
old nosebag on in comfort, y'know."
Pakatugg
led them into the woodland to a small gurgling stream. Lilacs, wildrose, shrubs
and trees overhung the spot, turning it into a shady green grotto, and the
rocky outcrop which edged the stream was covered
in soft
moss. Gratefully they sat down. The old squirrel went to fetch them water.
"Real
son of the land, old Pakatugg," Colonel Clary whispered to Storm. "No
harm in the blighter as long as you feed him and obey his silly little rules.
The chap's an absolute fanatic on secrecy, passwords, blindfolds, secret
signs—the bally lot. We'll see if he can get you to Red wall."
Storm
echoed the strange word. "Redwall, what's that?"
"Oh,
it's a jolly place—you'd love it, all the best mice live there. Hush, here
comes Pakatugg."
The odd
squirrel set a steaming kettle and five beakers out.
"Rosebay
willow'erb tea. Put the kettle on when I saw you comin' a while back. Now, out
wi' the grub, landotters."
Digging
in their packs, the trio turned out the promised repast, together with some
extra delicacies they had brought along. Storm could not recall when she had
tasted a meal so delicious. The hares sipped gratefully at the fragrant rosebay
willowherb tea, nibbling at this and that. Pakatugg, however, launched himself
upon the food, as did the hungry Storm. They practically ended up fighting over
candied apple rings. The old squirrel glared at her.
"Yer
a tough 'un, mouselet. By my brush y'are."
"Whoohawhawhawhah!"
Hon Rosie gurgled as she poured more tea. "I'll say she is. We caught her
tryin' to battle with a full toad army, single pawed. Storm Gullwhacker's not
short of grit, by a long chalk. By the by, Storm old sport, where d'you come
from?"
Storm
stuffed the apple ring into her mouth. "Mmmmfff, that's good! Where'm I
from? Don't know really, don't know where I was bound either before I met you.
Can't remember my name. Called myself Storm 'cos I was thrown ashore by the
storm. Came from the sea, I s'pose, me and Gullwhacker here."
53
Pakatugg
chewed on an oatscone and stared hard at the young mouse. "Y'mean you
ain't got no name, no home, you can't remember nothin'?"
Clary
coughed politely, struck by a sudden idea. "Ahem! Sad, isn't it? That's
why we brought her here. We thought you might be able to take her to Redwall.
They'd probably find out who she is jolly soon—good at riddles an' mysteries,
those Abbey thingummies."
Pakatugg
stood up, dusting his paws off. "Whohoa! Don't get ahead of yer tail
there, landotter. You ain't landin' me with no mousegel as can't remember which
season it be."
Storm
jumped up indignantly. "Who said I want to be left anywhere with anyone?
I've got some say in this, you know. Besides, who needs a squirrel that can't
make up his mind whether he's a beast or a tree ..."
Hon
Rosie pulled Storm down beside her. "Steady on, old gel. We know you're
the bravest of the brave, and all that rot, but you're in a strange land now,
among strange creatures; this is dangerous territory. We're only trying to get
you back to your own bally kind. I mean, what better for one than to be with
one's own creatures, eh?"
Pakatugg
gathered up the kettle and beakers. "Huh, y'can dress it up whichway you
likes, I'm not bein' saddled with no mindless mouse, by the great 'ornbeam I'm
not!"
For the
first time, Storm felt alone and unwanted. She walked off out of the squirrel's
bower into the surrounding trees, swinging her rope.
"Me
and Gullwhacker don't need anybeast. We're all right."
Brigadier
Thyme eyed the squirrel coldly. "Now see what you've done, bucko."
Pakatugg
pulled his tail over his head and chewed the end. "Oh, all right, then.
But mark, you landotters ain't havin' things all yer own way, by cracky yer
not!" Cupping his paws he called to Storm: "Come on back
54
'ere,
mouse, afore you ferget who we are. I'll take you to Redwall Abbey, but only on
certain conditions ..."
Storm
had turned and was walking back. "Conditions, what conditions?"
Pakatugg
turned to the hares. "Grub! I need food fer the journey, nice grub like
you landotters carry, so I'll take her if you give me all the food out o' those
havvysacks."
Clary
twitched his whiskers. "I say, steady on. What'll we eat?"
"Oh,
we can live off the jolly old land until we make it back to
Salamandastron," Hon Rosie interrupted. "We've done it before."
Brigadier
Thyme emptied his knapsack out. "So be it. What else, squirrel?"
"Hah
well, I don't want everybeast in the world knowin' where my gaff is, see —my
home's me own secret. So I want the mouse blindfolded when I take 'er to
Redwall, so's she can't find the way back to this place."
Hon
Rosie looked at Storm. "You can use your Gullwhacker as a blindfold."
Storm
nodded agreement. She was becoming curious about this place called Redwall
Abbey. Pakatugg made his final demand.
"Lastly,
I don't stir paw until tomorrow dawn cracks—take it or leave it."
Clary
waited for Storm's nod of assent before he spoke.
"Righto,
you old vagabond, but you take jolly good care of this mousegel, d'you hear.
She's got all the makin's of a top-flight warrior."
Within
a very short time Pakatugg had settled down on the mossy bank and was snoring
loudly. Clary shrugged as he, too, lay down.
"Cool
and snug here. If old Pakatugg says it's a secret place, then y'can bet a bee
to an ant it is. We might as well have a rousin' good snooze; tomorrow we
travel
to
Salamandastron. As for you, young Storm, you're bound for a new life at jolly
old Redwall Abbey. What d'you think of that?"
But no
answer came from the young mouse. She was curled up asleep on the moss in the
green stillness, with Gullwhacker her rope weapon clutched tight in both paws.
8
Dandin
was composing songs for the Abbot's feast. He sat in the shade of a great spreading
oak, trilling on his flute, running through old songs, tunes and ditties.
Saxtus sat with him, as did several of the moles and Redwall creatures. They
joined in choruses of well-known songs and called for Dandin to sing some more.
The moles would not be satisfied until Dandin rendered their particular
favorite.
"Sing
us 'ee song 'bout zur Gonffen an' 'ee gurt cake, Dandin."
Dandin
nodded and picked up his flute. It was one of his own special ballads, telling
of how his ancestor Gonff, Prince of Mousethieves, stole a cake baked by Abbess
Germaine, first Mother of Redwall Abbey. He trilled an introduction on Gonff's
own flute before launching into song.
"It
happened in the springing time,
When
all the leaves were green,
And
once again Abbess Germaine,
A-baking
cakes had been.
She
stirred them good and mixed them fine,
With
honey, nuts and flour,
Then
put them out to cool awhile,
57
Until
the teatime hour.
But
then along came bold Sir Gonff,
His
eyes a-twinkling bright.
A cake
he'd set his heart upon,
For
suppertime that night.
He took
the greatest cake of all, from off the window
ledge
And hid
it in a secret place, close by the forest edge. The Abbess came to check her
cakes, about the mid-noontide And found the mousethief with a bow, and arrows
at his
side.
'Why
stand you there, O Gonff/ said she, 'With bow and arrows armed?' 'My good
Abbess/ the thief replied, 'You must not
be
alarmed. I saw an eagle steal your cake, he swooped then
flew away.
So I stand guard upon your cakes lest he returns
today.'
The Abbess chose another cake, which to Sir Gonff
she
gave,
'Take
this reward, young mouse/ she said, 'because you were so brave. And when upon
each baking day, my lovely cakes
I make,
I'll save a special one for you, for your kind action's
sake.'
"
The
moles fell about, rolling on the grass with helpless merriment.
"Ahurr
hurr hurr! Yon zur Gonffen, 'ee wurr a tricky un!"
"Boi
'ecky, 'ee wurr a villyun aroight, a scrumpin' 'ee gurt cake. Hohurrhurr!"
"Come
on there," Saxtus called to a mole named Willyum. "What about a song
from you, Willyum? You're the champion mole singer, aren't you?"
58
Willyum
heaved his tiny fat body up from the grass; he needed no second bidding.
Smoothing down his velvety coat and polishing his nose, he clasped his huge
digging paws in front of him and began singing in the traditional manner of the
moles, his voice a deep rusty bass, surprising in one so small.
"Oi
luvs a woodland stew, oi do; oi do loik apple
tart,
An' good October ale that foams is dear unto moi
'eart.
Of rabs'rry cream oi oft do dream, et makes moi
eyes to
shine, Tis a fact that oi loiks anythin, when oi sets daown
to
dine. O mole, mole, daown thee 'ole, doant you'm eat
none o'
mine, Else oi won't get a bite to ate, when oi sets down
to
diiiiiiinnnnneeee."
He
bowed and kissed his paws to the company as they applauded, wrinkling his nose
until his round black eyes were almost lost behind chubby cheeks.
Turning
to Saxtus, Willyum returned the compliment. "Now et be thoi turn to sing a
song, zurr Sackuz."
Saxtus
waved his paws, blushing modestly. "No no, I'm the worst singer in the
Abbey, my voice sounds like a mad owl with his beak trapped in a log."
Dandin
clapped his friend upon the back. "Go on, you dusty old bookworm, you're
as dry as Brother Hubert. Ah, I've got an idea! Why don't you recite us a poem?
You've learned lots of them from those old books and parchments in the
gatehouse. Go on, Saxtus. Have a go!"
Saxtus
remained seated, he shuffled and coughed nervously.
"Oh,
all right, if you really must, but I'm not too good at this sort of thing.
Right, here goes. This is a
59
rhyme I
found on a scroll in the gatehouse some seasons ago, I'm not sure what it
means, but I like the words." Saxtus summoned up his courage and began
reciting.
"The
wind's icy breath o'er the land of death
Tells a
tale of the yet to come.
'Cross
the heaving waves which mark ships' graves
Lies an
island known to some,
Where
seas pound loud and rocks stand proud
And
blood flows free as water,
To the
far northwest, which knows no rest,
Came a
father and his daughter.
The
mind was numb, and the heart struck dumb,
When
the night seas took the child,
Hurled
to her fate, by a son of Hellgate,
The
dark one called The Wild.
You
whom they seek, though you do not speak,
The
legend is yet to be born;
One day
you will sing over stones that are red,
In the
misty summer dawn."
An
eerie silence had fallen over the young creatures sitting beneath the oak in
the sunlit midday grounds of the Abbey. Saxtus fidgeted with embarrassment as
they stared at him. Treerose, the pretty squirrel, was the first to break the
silence.
"Well,
that was a silly, nasty little rhyme. I didn't like it one bit —there's no
story and no point to it. What a load of old mumbo jumbo!"
She
shot off up the trunk of the oak, showering them with leaves and twigs as she
did. To break the mood Dandin began applauding loudly.
"Hurray!
Well done, Saxtus. Very good!"
The
others joined in until they were interrupted by Mother Mellus.
"Come
on, young 'uns. Bring any of those Dibbuns you can find along with you.
Lunchtime! Come on, it's being served in the orchard—turnip 'n' mushroom flan
60
with
beetroot and scallions, followed by honeysuckle sauce and acorn dumplings. And
I want to see clean paws before anybeast gets served!"
As they
washed their paws in a rain barrel by the Abbey's south wall, Dandin questioned
Saxtus.
"Where
in the name of fur did you learn that poem? It was very strange."
"Told
you, didn't I. It was on some dusty old scroll in the gatehouse. I read it when
Brother Hubert dozed off, now the confounded thing seems to have burnt itself
into my memory."
Blind
Simeon joined the friends, dipping his paws into the butt with them.
"Yes,
some things have a habit of doing that, don't they? Still, who knows, they may
come in useful through the seasons to come. I'd be glad I remembered it, if I
were you, young Saxtus."
"Would
you, Brother?"
"I
certainly would. There is much knowledge in ancient writings. Actually, I was
standing near the oak when you recited it. You were right, the words do have a
certain ring to them. Oh, and Dandin, would you like something to remember
also?"
"Yes
please, Brother Simeon. What is it?"
"Remember
to leave some of those acorn dumplings for us old ones. We can't make it to
table as fast as you young 'uns."
Dandin
smiled as he winked at Saxtus. "Come on then, Brother. Hold our paws.
We'll lead you round to lunch and you'll get as much as anybeast—we'll see to
it."
The two
young friends led the blind herbalist off to the orchard, astounded by his
perception of their movements.
"Dandin,
why did you wink at Saxtus when you said you would take me to lunch?"
"I
meant nothing, Brother. Why do you ask?"
"Because
I remember a similar wink passing between
61
those
two little otter villains Bagg and Runn, when they said they would assist me in
to supper. I ended up in the dusty old gatehouse while they dashed off and
scoffed up all the oat muffins with clover butter. But you wouldn't do a thing
like that to me, would you?"
This
time it was Saxtus who winked at Dandin.
"We
couldn't, Brother. You're holding our paws far too tight!"
° 00
Earlier
that same morn the Darkqueen had nosed her bows into Terramort cove. As Ledder
gave the order, a double-fluked anchor splashed into the clear water. Saltar
the Corsair came ashore with his crew. They were fully armed, but relaxed by
the sight of the empty cove. The searats were still wading through the shallows
to the shingled beach when the rocks in front of them came alive with a hundred
of Gabool's fighters, armed with long spears and cross-hilted pikes. Saltar
cursed beneath his breath, but showed no alarm. Standing with his crew,
knee-deep in the shallows, he faced the bristling pikes boldly.
"Bilgerats!
What's all this about? Where's Gabool?"
Blaggtail,
the leader of the shore party shrugged. "In Fort Bladegirt. He said you're
to come up."
Ledder
waded up level with Saltar, drawing his scimitar. "And what if we choose
not to?"
Blaggtail
waved his pike twice in the air. Fifty archers stood up in the rocks above his
head, each one with a shaft notched to his taut bowstring.
"Gabool
said to tell you he only wishes to be hospitable."
The
sound of Darkqueen's anchor being hauled up caused Saltar to turn around. His
worst suspicions were confirmed —the ship was drifting gently out into open
water. Graypatch and five score grinning searats lined the decks.
"Don't
worry, shipmate," he called out to Saltar in a mocking voice. "She'll
come to no harm. We'll take her
62
for a
sail around the bay, while you're jawin' an' chat-tin' with Gabool."
Ledder
made as if to hurl his sword at the sneering Graypatch, but Saltar muttered in
his ear, "Stow it, mate. Leave this to me."
Saltar
strode up the beach, pushing Blaggtail's pike to one side as he went.
"Come
on, let's go and see what his High Lordship wants."
The
banqueting hall tables were piled high with food and drink. Gabool threw
himself down in his throne at the head of the biggest table. He was wearing no
sword and smiling expansively.
"Hey,
you seascum, here comes the best Captain in me fleet and his brave crew. Sit
down, Saltar old messmate, and you, me favorite waverobbers, pull some chairs
up and fill those bellies. Only the best for the best."
Saltar's
crew fell to with a will, splashing wine, tearing meat, grabbing and stuffing
for all they were worth. The King of Searats indicated that Saltar sit next to
him. The corsair did as he was bid, one claw on his saber, eating and drinking
nothing.
Gabool
laughed aloud, ripping a bite from a cooked fish and hurling it over his
shoulder. He quaffed wine, slopping it over the table.
"Haharr!
Nought like good food and wine, eh, Saltar? I suppose you heard about your
brother Bludrigg?"
"No,
what about my brother Bludrigg?" Saltar lied with a straight face.
Gabool
tore a roasted seabird apart in his claws, burying his face into the carcass as
he gnawed through it, and came up grinning.
"Had
to kill 'im. Whipped his head off with me sword."
Saltar's
expression never altered a flicker. "What for?"
Gabool
wiped his greasy claws in his beard. "Dis-
obedience,
bein' too greedy, wantin' to take my place as King. Had to kill 'im. Swish!
That was that, old Bludrigg lost his head."
Gabool
and Saltar's eyes met, betraying nothing, but each waiting for the right
moment. Saltar toyed with a goblet of wine.
"Was
he armed when you killed him?"
"No,
he was tryin' a crown on for size. Haharr!"
Slowly
Saltar stood up, his claw grasping the curved sword at his side. "I've
heard you're very good at killin' unarmed beasts. How about trying one who's
got a weapon?"
Gabool's
claw began reaching for a sword hidden beneath the table. "Give us a
chance, matey. You can see I'm not carryin' a sword—look."
Now it
was Saltar's turn to laugh. "Hoho! Then hurry and get yourself one, King
of Searats, although I heard that even armed with a sword you were beaten by a
little mousemaid ..."
Gabool
sent the table toppling as he kicked it and freed his swordblade, his face a
mask of ugliness and cruelty as he launched himself forward.
"That's
a lie! A black-hearted lie, and you'll die for it, Saltar!"
Automatically
the searats stood back; this was not only a battle to the death between two
famous fighters, it was also a contest to decide Kingship.
Gabool
the Wild slashed viciously at Saltar; the corsair dodged nimbly to one side,
swinging his sword in one claw as he wound the cord of the steel hook round his
other and beckoned with it, insulting and taunting in the manner of searats to
goad his victim into a false move.
"My
brother could've taken you with a cooking ladle, coward!"
Gabool
circled, the light glinting off his golden, emerald-studded fangs. "I'm
goin' to hang you by your hook and let the gulls rip out your lyin' tongue,
crabsbait!"
64
Suddenly
they clashed, sword ringing upon sword. Saltar's hook ripped through Gabool's
cloak, pulling him inward. Quick as a flash, Gabool cut his cloak loose with
one of the daggers from his waist sash, staggering back as Saltar's clanging
blade drove him down the hall.
"You'll
die screaming, Gabool. I'll make you call me King before I put you out of your
misery."
Smiling
inwardly, Gabool allowed Saltar's onslaught to press him backward down the
hall, though outwardly the Warlord's expression was grim and he acted as though
he were hard-pressed, panting, parrying and dodging the cleaving blade and
pointed hooktip. This gave Saltar the feeling that he had gained the upper
claw.
"Not
as easy as fighting my unarmed brother, eh, Your Majesty?" he taunted
Gabool. "But no matter, Saltar the Corsair isn't a mousemaid. I'll finish
the job properly, so that when you're hacked to dollrags you'll know it was me
who did it!"
Stumbling
over footstools, bumping into tables, reeling off walls, Gabool seemed to
blunder backward, Saltar's sword threatening to spit him at each thrust, the
flailing hook coming to within a hair's-breadth of his throat. Now the King of
Searats was down on one knee, a short distance from the hanging wall curtain.
Saltar smashed mercilessly downward at him. Gabool's sword, held sideways
deflecting the blows, seemed to quaver for one desperate moment. A gasp arose
from the piratical assembly. Suddenly Gabool fell, rolled over and, leaping
high, snatched a walltorch from its brackets. He regained his stance on the
other side of Saltar. Like lightning the corsair turned.
"Aaaaiiieeee!"
Gabool
struck Saltar with the blazing torch, driving him backward into the hidden
blade behind the wall hanging. The trap worked efficiently; Saltar died
65
instantly,
an expression of pained surprise stamped indelibly upon his brutal features.
Silence
fell over the banqueting hall. Gabool spat carelessly at the impaled carcass of
his one-time enemy. Turning on his heel, he sprang up on the largest dining
table. Scattering cups, food, plates and drink with a series of resounding
smashes, the Warlord turned upon the gathering of searats. Gabool's eyes
blazed, his rings and bracelets jangled, the gold emerald-studded teeth showed
in a ferocious grin through his matted and beribboned beard. Pointing to all
corners of the hall with his curving sword, he roared at the top of his lungs:
"I
am Gabool the Wild, King of all Searats! Who am I, you carrion of the water?
Speak my name, you vermin of the main!"
Swords,
daggers, spears and pikes waved in the air. There was not one in all the crowd
who dared not shout out aloud: "Gabool the Wild! King of all
Searats!"
A
pounding upon the hall doors echoed in the silence which followed. Blaggtail
threw the doors open, to reveal one of the Darkqueen's prize crew, Shornear,
wounded and half-drowned. He staggered in, collapsing in an exhausted heap upon
the floor. Raising himself on one claw, he pointed out of the window.
"Lord,
Graypatch has sailed off with the Darkqueen\"
Gabool
came off the table like a springing panther. Seizing the wretched Shornear, he
hoisted him to his paws.
"What!
How did this happen?"
"Lord,
he had it all planned with the others. I would not go along with his wishes so
I was thrown overboard ..."
"Graypatch,
my faithful old shipmate—why would he do this to me?"
"He
said that you were too dangerous, too wild and treacherous. Graypatch said to
us all that anyrat who followed him would at least be able to sleep at night
66
without
fearing a knife in his back. He said that you were death to any creature your
shadow fell upon, friend and enemy alike. I heard him say that he would take
his crew to a place of safety where none could follow."
Gabool
absently let Shornear drop to the floor.
"Well
well, who would have thought it, eh? Me old messmate Graypatch, the one searat
I thought I could trust, turned traitor on me. The Darkqueen was my best ship.
Blaggtail, is there any more of my fleet anchored around the coves?"
Blaggtail
scratched his chin. "Nightwake and Seatalon are beached in the north cove,
Lord. They both need careening and recaulking. Crabdaw too, but she was holed
and lost her rudder on the rocks. None of them are seaworthy."
Gabool
scowled. "Where are the rest of my ships?"
"Waveblade,
Blacksail, Rathelm and Greenfang are all on the high seas, Lord, but they
should be back by the next full moon."
The
Warlord banged the table to emphasize each of his words. "As soon as they
come in, turn 'em round and get 'em out to sea again. I want the Darkqueen
back, I want to see her heading into Terramort cove with Graypatch's head stuck
on the bowsprit and his crew in chains. Whoever does this for me will be made
Sea-captain of all me fleet, next only in rank to me." Immediately three
rats sprang forward. Gabool hailed them. "Riptung, Catseyes, Grimtooth,
pick yourself a crew each. Get those three craft in north cove shipshape again.
I want them seaworthy two days from now. Take my houseslaves and chain 'em up
as your oarcrews in the galleys. I will hunt Graypatch down, do you hear me! My
fleet will track him across the main from tide-send to Hellwaters. There will
be no place on land or sea where he will hide from the wrath of Gabool. Now go!"
Just
over half a day of being tugged about blindfolded by the ill-tempered Pakatugg
was quite enough for Storm. She had been scratched by nettles, poked by
branches and bumped by trees, when finally the recluse squirrel called a halt
for lunch. They sat down beneath a wide-trunked sycamore which had pushed
itself a fair living space in the dense forest. Storm unbound Gullwhacker from
where Pakatugg had placed it about her eyes.
"Hoi!
Get that blin'fold back on right now, d'you hear!"
The
mousemaid blinked and rubbed her eyes at the shafting sunlight of the green
woodland aisles.
"Oh,
go and boil your tail, squirrel. How do you expect me to eat lunch with a rope
round my eyes?"
Pakatugg
pulled food and drink from his knapsack and sniffed. "Leave it off then,
but only for mealtimes — and don't be gazin' all round, tryin' t' get a fix on
your bearin's, eh?"
Storm
saw that the hares had left a small stone medallion threaded about her neck as
she slept. It bore a badger's head and a flat-peaked mountain insignia. She
looked up, countering the squirrel's remark.
"Huh,
who wants to see your silly old forest! It's not
68
yours,
anyhow. It'd take more than a squirrel dressed as a tree to rule all this.
What's for lunch?"
Pakatugg
sat on the rucksack, clutching the oatscones and flask he had taken from it.
"Well,
I'm havin' these oatcakes and a sup o' this, though I don't know what you're
dinin' on. I only said I'd take you t' Redwall, never said I'd feed you as
well. That weren't part o' the bargain."
Storm
could not believe her ears. She watched Pakatugg smugly munching away at a
scone.
"I'd
share half of anything I had with a hungry creature, you . . . you greedy
branchbound old miser!"
"Right,
that's it! I've tooken enough cheek from you, mouse! Shut your mouth an' get
yon blin'fold back on, right now!"
Storm
tried hard to keep her voice level. "No! I'm not going blindfolded and
hungry for you or anybeast!"
Swiftly
Pakatugg leaped up and fitted a dart to his blowpipe. "Gotcha now, missie.
Do as I bid or I'll deaden your paw fer a season wi' this dart."
As
Storm stood up and reached for her rope, the squirrel fired. She threw herself
sideways, hearing the thud as a sharp dart buried itself deep in the bark of a
nearby pine. Launching herself forward, the mouse-maid thwacked out with her
Gullwhacker.
The
blowpipe was knocked from Pakatugg's mouth. He sat down hard, his eyes watering
copiously as he clutched the end of his nose where the knotted rope had belted
him. Storm stood over him, the light of battle in her eyes.
"First
you blindfold me, then you starve me, now you try to wound me. Sit still and
don't make a move, squirrel, I don't trust you anymore."
Hungrily
munching alternate bites from an apple and a scone, she watched the squirrel
applying a leaf poultice to his swollen snout. He was muttering fiercely.
"Huh,
me, Pakatugg, lettin' a slip of a mouse break me nose!"
69
Storm
shook her weapon grimly. "Listen, squirrel. I'm no slip of a mouse, I'm
Storm Gullwhacker, so don't think you can bully and trick a creature smaller
than yourself. I've split this food into two equal halves. You can go where you
want and take yours with you. I'll find Redwall Abbey on my own, without having
to protect my back against you."
Grumpily
Pakatugg stuffed half of the provisions into his knapsack. He hurried off down
the dim trail, yelling back derisively, "Yah! I'm glad you did that, you
liddle fool. You'll never find Redwall alone; you'll die in this forest wi'out
Pakatugg to guide you."
Storm
saw the slight humor of the situation. "Aye, and I'd never have reached
Redwall being blinded, starved and wounded," she called back. "On
your way, you nasty old fleabag!"
The
mousemaid ate a leisurely meal and rested awhile before packing the remainder
of her provisions and setting off to find Redwall alone. There was no trace of
Pakatugg, nor any living creature, just the still, green summer forest. Storm
tossed her Gullwhacker high in the air. It landed with the knotted end pointing
in the opposite direction to that taken by the squirrel. Trusting to luck, she
strode off in the direction the knot had pointed.
The
afternoon wore on. Hardly a breeze stirred the leafy canopy overhead as the
tiny figure trekked resolutely through the maze of tree, bush and fern, noting
from time to time the position of the sun, which she tried always to keep at
her back, knowing that if it set in the west she must be traveling east. To
restore her confidence, in the enveloping silence Storm tried to hum odd
snatches of songs, but she could not remember any. With a careless shrug she
pushed on, the soft swish of her paws through grass and occasional birdsong the
only sound that fell upon her ears. Once, she came on a small stream. The mousemaid
drank and
70
bathed
her paws, wondering what Redwall would look like, if ever she was fortunate
enough to find it.
Shades
of evening turned the forest to a gloomy black-green vault as Storm plodded on,
not sure whether she was going in the direction of her goal or traveling in
circles. Gradually every tree, leaf and bush began to look the same. Night
closed in on the forest and the mousemaid lost her way completely. She strayed
from the dim trail and into impenetrable shrouds of wood and vegetation. Storm
kept her confidence up by telling herself that being lost in a wood was better
than being lost at sea, but the surrounding night and oppressive silence sat
heavily upon her spirit. She fervently wished that it was daylight, or that she
could meet another living creature. Sitting despondently at the foot of an elm
she sipped mintwater from a flask, ate some white cheese studded with dark
roast acorns and decided to await the dawn.
Then
she saw the light.
Faintly
at first, like an elusive will-o'-the-wisp faraway amid the trees. Swiftly and
silently Storm made her way toward it. Still some distance away, she could tell
it was a campfire of some sort. There was music too. Some creature was playing
a stringed instrument and singing a song in a raucous voice.
"If
I were a stone I'd lie alone
Amid
the earth and clay-o,
Til
some good beastie picked me up
And
threw me faraway-o.
Lolly
too diddle um
Rinky
doo skiddle dum.
There's
bread 'n' cheese 'n' cider,
Said
the hedgehog maid who sat to supper,
But now
'tis all inside 'er."
It was
a funny-looking hare dressed in jester's attire, half green, half yellow. He
sat by a small campfire, tinkling a curious stringed instrument.
Storm
decided there was no use beating about the bush; she had already met some hares
who were friendly. Boldly she strode in and sat down on the opposite side of
the fire. The hare winked at her and continued.
"Now
my grandpa, he was by far
A
dreadful fat old liar.
'It's
cold in the river tonight/ he said,
As he
sat upon the fire,
'Til my
old grandma came along
And hit
him with the ladle.
There's
another egg been cracked/ she laughed,
As she
set him on the table.
Doodle
oo lolly turn
Tiddly
oodly iddly um.
I loved
a rabbit's daughter,
And she
fed me on pots of tea
Made
out of boiling water."
Storm
laughed at the odd creature and his comical ditty. He twitched his floppy ears.
"Now
then, young mouse me gel, what can we do for you?"
Storm
shrugged. "Not a lot, sir. I'm lost, you see. Perhaps I could rest by your
fire until dawn."
The
hare shook his head sadly. "Lost! I knew a woodpecker once who got
lost."
"Oh,
I'm sorry. Did you find him again?"
"Find
him? Of course I found the blighter—that's how he came to get lost in the first
place. Who lost you—or better still, who do you want to be found by?"
"Nobody
lost me, and I'm looking for Redwall Abbey, so how could an Abbey find
me?"
"Hmm,
good question. But no need to fret your mousy little heart, young
whatsyourname. I'm going to Redwall, so we can both get lost together."
"You
mean you're lost too?"
"Who
said I am? Don't talk ridiculous. Never been
72
lost in
m' life, young thingy. Do I look lost? Sittin' here by my own campfire, singin'
away and twangin' m'little harolina ..."
To stop
any further indignation, Storm commented on the instrument. "Ah, so that's
what it's called, a harolina. What a nice instrument. I've never seen one
before."
"Never
seen a blinkin' harolina? Corks, no wonder you're lost. I say, is that a long
patrol medal you happen t' be wearing?"
"This?
Oh yes, it was given to me by Colonel Clary, Brigadier Thyme and Hon Rosie
..."
Before
Storm could say any more, a dreamy look crossed the jester hare's face, making
him look extra foolish.
"Egads!
Hon Rosie, the Honorable Rosemary— exquisite creature, completely adorable gel,
doncha know. Did she mention my name by the way?"
"I
don't know. What is your name?"
"Tarquin
L. Woodsorrel, though she may have called me Tarkers or jolly old Tark. She did
mention me, didn't she? You wouldn't kid a chap, would you? Go on, say she
did."
Storm
saw that the poor fellow was so agitated that she had to lie a bit. "Oh,
Tarkers, yes, she did nothing but talk about you."
"Good
egg. I knew it. Go on, go on, what'd she say?"
"Er,
let me see. She said you were very handsome, a fine singer and a wonderful
player, and she wished you were on patrol with her."
Tarquin
L. Woodsorrel fell flat on his back, kicking his long legs ecstatically into
the air.
"Absolutelyballyspiffinhunkydory!
Whoohoo!"
Storm
coughed politely. "Does this mean you'll take me to Redwall Abbey, Mr.
Woodsorrel?"
"Abbwall
Reddymouse, 'course I will. You can call me Tarquin. I'll call you early.
D'y'know I couldn't eat
73
a thing
right now. Rosie, ah Rosie, I could live on that sweet name the rest of my life
without eating."
Storm
curled up by the fire, yawning loudly. She did not fancy an entire night
listening to a lovelorn hare singing the praises of his beloved.
"Oh
well, I'd best get some sleep. By the way, my name's Storm Gullwhacker. This
rope is my weapon— actually the rope's called Gullwhacker."
Sleep
was some time coming to the mousemaid as she had to lie there listening to
Tarquin composing dreadful love songs and plunking odd chords on his harolina.
"O
Rosie the Hon, you're certainly the one, I'll bet my bally life,
With
your cute little nosie, beautiful Rosie You'd make a lovely wife . . .
Hmm, lessee
now, what rhymes with wife? Strife, knife . . . life. That's it!"
The
fire burned to white ash and red embers in the deep nighttime forest.
74
10
Almost
an hour before he was usually up and about, Abbot Bernard was wakened by the
first rays of dawn and a loud knocking on his bedroom door. Hastily stowing his
nightcap beneath the pillows, he rubbed sleep from his eyes and tried to look
as dignified as a Redwall Abbot should.
"Ahem,
the door's open, come right in, please." Bagg and Runn entered, bearing a tray between them.
"Good
mornin', Father Habbot, an' a happy Jubilee to you, sir."
The
Abbot hid a smile as he propped himself into a sitting position.
"And
good morning to you, young otters. I'd completely forgotten about my Jubilee.
It's a good job you reminded me. Now, what's all this?"
"It's
your breakfast, Father. Meadowsweet and sage tea."
"Aye,
and arrowroot curd with strawberries." "And barleytoast spreaded with
honey." "Some hot blackberry muffins too." "And cold willowcake
and greengage jam ..." The Abbot held up his paws. "Oh, my goodness,
how will I get through it all? It's far too much for me.
I'll
just have the meadowsweet tea for now. How kind and thoughtful of you. I'll bet
you haven't had your own breakfast yet. How about you two helping me to finish
all this?"
It was
no sooner a word than a bite with two hungry young otters. Bagg and Runn sat on
the bed as morning sunlight filled the room, doing full justice to the good
breakfast they had prepared while showing the Abbot a barkpaper card they had
made for him.
"See,
there's you, Father, standing on the lawn by the pond."
"Oh
yes. What a good likeness, and that's a splendid tree I'm standing by."
"That's
not a tree, it's Mother Mellus. Can't you see her stripes?"
"Of
course. I thought this one over here was Mother Mellus."
"No,
that's Simeon looking for herbs, and this one is Gabe Quill rolling out a
barrel of October ale for your feast."
"Why,
so it is. Well done indeed!"
oo
The morning
blossomed into sunlight fullness, Redwall Abbey stirred itself into life, lazy
blue smoke from its kitchen chimneys drifting toward the woods, where it
tangled gently to blend in with tendrils of white mist hanging in the trees.
Preparations were well under way, flower garlands decked the long tables set
out in the orchard. Creatures from the outlying woodlands and fields began
arriving, bringing gifts, food and their families with them. Brother Hubert
stationed Dandin and Saxtus on the ramparts over the gatehouse.
"Do
a slow patrol of the walls. If you see any creatures coming in who might need
assistance, then run down and help them."
Both
young mice nodded importantly, proud to be helping in such an adult way. They
puffed out their chests, frowned intently and with swinging paws set
out on
tour of the high ramparts around the outer Abbey walls.
oo
Friar
Alder put the finishing touch to his great masterpiece. Knowing the Abbot's
taste for the savory rather than the sweet, he had concocted an invention of
his own, Bernard Bread. It was a vast loaf of wheat-and-oat bread, almost the
size of a grown badger. Alder opened the big oven doors as he called to his
assistant, Cockleburr.
"Lend
a paw here, Cockles. The Abbot's surprise is almost done."
A small
hedgehog came running, stumbling and tripping over a long white apron, his
assistant-cook's hat falling over his eyes.
"Simmerin'
seasons, lookit the size of it. Comin', Friar!"
Together
they inserted the long wooden paddles and set them in the grooves either side
of the bread tray. Sweating and panting, they heaved with might and main until
the Bernard Loaf began moving slowly and majestically toward the oven doors.
"Steady!
Easy now, here it comes. Push that stonemason's trolley over here. We'll need
something to land it on."
With a
gentle thud the trolley received its precious burden. Cockleburr stood back,
wiping his brow on the corner of his apron.
"Perishin'
puddens, Friar. It's a monster! Lookit that crust. It's like a shiny golden
mountain, all crispy an' steamin'."
Friar
Alder seated himself upon a sack of flour. "So it is, Cockles. So it is.
There's leeks, sage, rosemary, bay, turnip, beetroot, onions, mushrooms of six
varieties, young cabbage, fennel, cucumber and corn, all floating in a
mildpepper and cream gravy. What d'you think of that, young 'un?"
"Frizzlin'
frypans, there's no doubt 'bout it, you're a
77
fantastic
Friar, a colossal cook, a stupendous stewer, a ... a. ..."
"All
right, Cockles, that's quite enough. I know I do have a certain skill. All that
remains is to heat it slightly before we bring it to table this evening. Now,
is everything else in order, preserved fruits, berry flans, oh, and the Four
Seasons Forest Trifle?"
"Just
finishin' the pipin', Friar. I got up early and did the pink rosettes and green
leaf shapes with the mint cream, and now all I've got to do is the twirly bits
along the edges with yellow buttercup cream."
"Good,
you carry on with that while I go and check the wine, ales and cordial lists
with Gabriel Quill. Always remember, Cockleburr, the right drinks complement
the right food. Right food, right drink —success. Wrong food, wrong
drink—disaster. Always remember
that,
m'lad."
oo
The
excitement of events to come increased with the advance of late afternoon. A
pleasant breeze ruffled the grass, taking the edge off the intense summer heat.
The young Redwallers and woodland creatures, joined by some of the more active
elders, began an impromptu sports day in the Abbey grounds. Dandin and Saxtus,
however, stayed faithfully patrolling the walltops, peering over battlements,
scanning woodland, path and flatland, highly conscious of their responsible
position. Several times that day they had unbarred the main gates to assist
with carrying babies, helping the old ones and other useful tasks. Now they
rested awhile together on the northern corner of the west wall, watching their
companions at play.
"Haha,
look at Bagg and Runn. Trust two otters to win the three-legged race. What a
pair of scallywags, eh, Dandin."
Dandin
had turned. He was shielding his eyes, gazing up the path to the north.
78
"Here,
look at this, Saxtus. There's two creatures coming toward the Abbey. D'you know
them?"
Saxtus
peered at the odd pair of figures dogtrotting along the dusty path. "Hmm,
can't say I've ever seen them before. Looks like a hare and a mouse dressed as
a ragbag."
"Go
and tell Mother Mellus, will you, Saxtus. I'll stand by with the gate open.
She'll prob'ly want to
speak
with them."
oo
Trudging
silently along beside Tarquin, the mousemaid had her first view of Redwall
Abbey. She liked what she saw. With the dusty brown path running across its
front, the late afternoon sunlight played over the structure, giving it a faded
rosy glow. Behind the stout outer wall with its battlements and ramparts, she
could see the high spired Abbey roof, flanked by lower sloping ones, peaceful
and serene, standing homely and solid with the summer green forest at its back.
Redwall. Now she knew why creatures talked of it with a reverence; it appeared
to blend with the surrounding Mossflower country as a haven of rest and
tranquillity, in harmony with all nature, like some gentle giant of a mother,
sheltering and protecting her children.
The
badger and the two young mice stood out upon the path as Tarquin and Storm
walked up. Mother Mellus and the hare clasped paws.
"Well
well, Tarquin Longleap Woodsorrel, you old bounder!"
"Stap
me vitals, Mellus, are you still alive and grow-lin', you old stripedog?"
Saxtus
and Dandin stood watching as the twro old friends greeted each other. Dandin
eyed the ragged mousemaid. She stood by, swinging a thick knotted length of
rope. Unconcerned by her filthy appearance or the sea-scoured, sand-worn,
forest-torn, loose burlap sacking dress she wore, the maid stared boldly back
at Dandin as badger and hare conversed.
79
"So,
how goes it at Salamandastron? Who rules there now?"
"Oh,
the old fire mountain's still there y'know, strong as ever. The Lord badger
there is Rawnblade, biggest dog badger you've ever set eyes upon. Some say he's
the image of his great-grandsire Sunstripe the Mace. Ha, what a warrior! He can
flay a crew of searats before breakfast, and that's on a bad day. But enough of
all this fiddle faddle, old stripehead. You'd remember me at old Abbot Thomas's
final jubilee—I was only a bobtailed leveret then."
"Of
course, I remember it well. You were with your father Lorquin. Ah, those were
the seasons, eh. Who's your young friend?"
The
mousemaid stepped up and spoke for herself. "I'm Storm Gullwhacker. This
is my weapon, the Gullwhacker."
Mellus
nodded courteously, hiding her amusement at the newcomer's confident and
forthright manner. "Welcome to Redwall Abbey, Storm Gullwhacker. Perhaps
you'd like to be shown around our home. Dandin, Saxtus, take this young
mousemaid inside and see if you can get her some decent clothing and a
bath."
oo
While
Mellus and Tarquin continued their conversation in the open gateway, Dandin and
Saxtus walked inside, accompanied by Storm. Saxtus noticed some of the young
ones staring open-mouthed at Storm.
"Er,
I say, Storm, we'd best go and find Sister Sage. She'll get you cleaned up and
dressed nicely."
Storm
swung Gullwhacker deftly, flicking the head off a daisy. "Nobody's washin'
an' dressin' me up, mouse. I'm all right as I am."
Saxtus
disagreed. "No no, you must do as Mother Mellus says!"
Dandin
saw something in the mousemaid's face, something which reminded him of himself.
He turned to Saxtus.
80
"Leave
Storm alone, friend. If she says she's all right, then she is. Let her
be."
As they
strolled through the grounds together, young Red wallers sported and cavorted
everywhere. Storm watched them with amusement in her eyes.
"What
are they doing, Dandin?"
"They're
playing. It's a sort of sports day."
"Sports
day, playing—what's that mean?"
Saxtus
was about to explain when a twine-tied leaf-ball rolled in front of them. A
baby hedgehog came chasing it. Storm picked up the ball.
"Is
this something for playing?"
The
little hedgehog stood smiling at her with all the innocence of a Dibbun.
"Gorra see how high you c'n frow it."
Storm
spun the ball in her paw. "How high I can throw it ... let's see."
She tossed the ball into the air. As it came down, she swung with the knotted
end of Gullwhacker. It struck the ball spot on, sending it soaring into the sky
until it was a mere dot.
Dandin,
Saxtus and the Dibbun hedgehog gasped in admiration. Storm smiled.
"Good.
I like playing. WhatTl we play next?"
"Yeek!"
Some
distance away, Treerose was struck on the back by the falling ball.
Rufe
Brush came sauntering over. "What's the matter, squirrel?"
Treerose
was furious. She grabbed the ball and came marching over to where the three
mice stood. Holding the ball out, she chattered fiercely.
"Who
did that? Come on, own up."
Storm
did not realize the ball had struck Treerose. She stood forward, grinning
cheerfully, and nodded at the squirrel in a friendly way. "I hit the ball
high. It's called playing. D'you want to play?"
Treerose
went red with temper. "You dirty filthy little ragamuffin, I'll teach you
a lesson!"
81
Swiftly
she lashed out, scratching the side of Storm's face with her sharp little
dewclaws. Before anybeast could stop her, Storm whacked the knotted rope
squarely between Treerose's ears. The squirrel sat flat on her tail in the
dust, tears pouring from her eyes.
Storm
was perplexed, she rubbed her cheek as she turned to Saxtus. "What's the
matter with her? What did she scratch me for?"
Treerose
saw Rufe Brush watching and set up a wail. "Waah! She hit me! What are you
going to do about it, Rufe Brush?"
Rufe
shrugged. "Dunno really. S'pose I'd better shake 'er paw!"
"Boohoohoo!
That dirty little scruffbag has broken my skull. Boohoohoo!"
Mother
Mellus's huge paw swept Treerose upright and dusted her down. "Stop that
wailing or you'll bring on the rain, miss. Stoppit! You're not really hurt, and
if I ever hear you insulting a guest of Redwall I'll dust your tail so hard you
won't sit down for a season. Now go and get washed with cold water. Your eyes
are all squidgy with whining. Be off with you!"
Mother
Mellus turned on Dandin and Saxtus. "And as for you two pickles, didn't I
tell you to get this mousemaid a bath and some proper clothes?"
"She
said she doesn't want any," Dandin protested.
Mother
Mellus eyed the rebellious Storm. "Oh, doesn't she. Well, we'll see about
that!"
Mellus
took a step forward; the mousemaid took a step backward.
"Keep
your paws off me, y'great stripy lump, or I'll Gullwhack you!"
"You'll
what?"
Storm
swung the Gullwhacker. "You heard me, badger. Now back off!"
Mother
Mellus looked over Storm's shoulder. She smiled and curtsied. "Good
afternoon, Father Abbot."
Storm
turned to see who the badger was addressing.
82
Mellus
pounced! The mousemaid was pinioned by two large badger paws, the rope dangling
uselessly at her side as Mother Mellus whispered in her ear, "Gotcha,
missy! Now let's see if soap and water and a dress will civilize you, you
little savage."
Saxtus
and Dandin fell about laughing as Mother Mellus carried off a kicking, yelling
Storm.
"Yah,
lemmego! Paws off, you great lump of an Abbeydog. Fight fair like a warrior,
you big stripy trickster. Lemmego. Yaaaaaahhhh. Grrr!"
Tarquin
joined them, tinkling away on his harolina. "Oh, corks! Old Mellus has her
work cut out there, no mistake. Well then, you chaps —Dandin and Saxtus, isn't
it? Allow me to introduce myself, Tarquin L. Woodsorrel at y'service. I
remember Redwall Abbey quite fondly y'know. Of course, I was only a little
sprog last time I was here. D'y'know, I think a chap could do a lot worse than
stop here an' become the jolly old resident hare, wot?"
The two
young mice immediately took to the garrulous Tarquin. Dandin especially admired
the harolina and the skillful way the hare played it.
"That's
a beautiful instrument, Mr. Tarquin. I play the flute—see, this is a whistle
that belonged to my ancestor. Do you know 'Frog in the Rushes' or 'Otter
Hornpipe'? I like 'Fieldmouse Frolic' myself."
In a
very short while, young Redwallers had gathered round Dandin and Tarquin,
clapping their paws, hopping and dancing as the pair played merrily,
complementing each other with instrumental harmonies.
oo
Tarquin's
words proved true; Storm was no easy mousemaid to deal with, as Mother Mellus,
Sister Sage and Sister Serena soon found out.
"Garrr!
Sputch! Gerrat soap out of me face, you murderers!"
Mellus
held Storm firmly by the scruff of her neck as she kicked and lashed about in
the tub. Sage and Serena
83
battled
gallantly with soap and loofah as bathwater splashed and sprayed all over them
and the infirmary floor. Mellus ducked Storm's head under the warm sudsy water,
hauling her up for Sister Sage to scrub away at the mousemaid's neck.
"Good
golly! You could grow a crop in the muck we're getting off you, missy. Here,
give me the soap, Serena. Go and get another bucket of water."
"Arragh!
This is worse'n bein' drowned at sea. Grrrmmmfff! Lemmego!"
"Be
still, you young rip. I'm soaked to the hide here. Keep her away from that
Gullwhacky rope thing, Sage, or she'll cause havoc!"
"Whooshplut!
Just lemme get me paws on my rope. I'll show you three torturers ..."
Slipping
and sploshing, the three battled furiously
with
slippery Storm.
oo
Abbot
Bernard and Simeon passed the infirmary door on their way to Cavern Hole.
"My
stars, Simeon, it sounds like a fully fledged massacre in there."
"Well
guessed, Bernard. You're not far wrong!"
"Still,
who knows, young Storm Gullwhacker may prove a clean and valuable member of our
little community."
"Yes,
clean at least when Mellus, Sage and Serena have finished with her. What about
the other one, the hare?"
"Oh,
you mean Tarquin. He's to be our first resident hare. He brought a scroll with
him from Lord Rawnblade, the Master of Salamandastron. Here, I'll read it to
you. It says, 'To Abbot Bernard of Redwall, from Rawnblade Protector of the
Shores. It comes to my mind that the ties between your Abbey and my mountain
should be strengthened, therefore I send this hare, Tarquin L. Woodsorrel, to
you. He is frivolous, a glutton, lovesick and prone to composing dreadful
ballads;
84
added
to this he has an odd sense of humor, a strange idea of dress and is disruptive
with other hares. Be that as it may, he is a fearless fighter, an excellent
scout and totally honest. I hope you will find his services satisfactory. Give
my good wishes to Mellus and all the good creatures at Redwall. May the seasons
be kind and bring you peace with long prosperity. Rawnblade Widestripe, Lord of
Salamandastron.' There, what d'you think of that for a reference, Simeon?"
The
blind herbalist gathered up his habit for the stairs ahead. "At least
Rawnblade is truthful. The hare has his faults, but he also has good features.
The badger Lord would not send him to us if there was not something in his
clever mind. Maybe he fears the approach of trouble and has decided that we
need a link with Salamandastron. I like the sound of this Tarquin L.
Woodsorrel. Maybe Rawnblade's loss will turn out to be Redwall's gain."
"I
hope you are right, my friend. Your intuition has
never
let us down."
oo
Early
evening found Storm Gullwhacker being propelled forcibly out of the main Abbey
doors to mingle with the other young creatures of Redwall. She fought
halfheartedly as Mellus shooed her out.
"There
now, go and play. My my, you look very pretty now, Storm."
"Pretty?
What's that supposed to mean? I feel stupid with this dress on and half the
hide scrubbed from me. Couldn't I wear my old burlap smock. Please?"
"What?
That scruffy old thing? Certainly not, child. I told Sister Sage to burn
it."
"Where's
my Gullwhacker? You haven't burnt that too, have you?"
"No,
don't worry, Storm. We gave it a good scrub in what was left of your bathwater,
and it's hanging out of the infirmary windowr to dry. You can have it back
tomorrow. Now play outside with the young ones, but
85
don't
get yourself all messed up again. It's nearly time for the Abbot's feast."
Dandin
could hardly believe his eyes. Was this pretty mousemaid in the light green
linen habit the frowsy-looking terror he had encountered earlier that day? It
seemed hardly possible. He held out his paw to her.
"Come
on, Storm. I'll take you round to the orchard. You can sit between me and
Saxtus at the Abbot's Jubilee feast tonight."
"What's
an Abbot's Jubilee feast?"
"Listen,
do you like singing, dancing and as much of the very best food and drink as you
can swallow?"
"Yes.
Is that what it's all about?"
"You'll
soon find out. Come on, let's run. There's Durry Quill—we'll race him."
The two
young mice dashed off across the lengthening shadows of the Abbey lawn as the
birds trilled their evensong to the setting sun.
86
11
Rawnblade
Widestripe's massive form dwarfed the hares who stood in front of him. The
blood of many Salamandastron badger Lords flowed in his veins, and he seemed to
fit perfectly into the vast rocky hall of the mountain, seated on his throne
with the huge broadsword Verminfate resting lightly in his hefty paw. The wise
brown eyes partially closed as he digested the information from the returning
hares of his long patrols. Torches flickered in rockwall sconces of the roughly
hewn hall, blending with dying rays of the sun as its fiery orb sank into the
western seaward horizon. Silence would follow each report until Rawnblade questioned
his scouts.
"So,
you sent this mousemaid Storm Gullwhacker with Pakatugg to Redwall. A wise
move, Clary. They may cross trails with Tarquin Woodsorrel; the Abbey will be a
good place for them both. What news of my bell, Shorebuck?"
"None,
Lord," a sandy-hued hare leaning upon his spear replied. "No creature
we spoke with knows where the great bell may be."
Rawnblade
sighed, resting his chin on the sword handle. "Hmmm, three seasons late
and nobeast knows the whereabouts of Joseph or the bell. Searats have the
answer,
I know it. Only time will tell. Fleetleg, any more about the ship from the
northwest?"
A tall,
saturnine hare stood forward. "We sighted her earlier this evening, Lord.
She was sailing too far off to be certain, but Longeyes says that it could be
the Darkqueen."
Rawnblade
sat up straight. "Are you sure of this, Longeyes?"
The
hare called Longeyes lounged at the window, scanning the horizon. He turned to
address Rawnblade.
"I'm
practically certain, Lord. My eyes see farther than others. It looked to me
like Darkqueen; no other ship in Gabool's fleet has red sails. If she had cut
in closer to land, I would have been able to tell you more, but she tacked off
windward and traveled north by east."
"Did
you see who was at the helm?"
"It
was not Saltar, Lord —of that I'm sure. I didn't get much of a glimpse, but I'd
guess by his build it was the one called Graypatch."
"Graypatch?
He's Gabool's best steersrat. It could mean that Gabool has left his island.
Darkqueen is the only ship he would sail in if he did."
Brigadeer
Thyme ventured an opinion. "M'Lord, if old Gabool has taken to sailin'
again, there could be trouble."
Rawnblade
arose. He strode across to the window, where he stood gazing at the restless
sea ebbing and flowing eternally.
"The
prophecies carved on Salamandastron's walls tell of a time coming soon when
trouble will become a byword; my destiny and trouble walk the same path paw in
paw. Eat and sleep now, my faithful patrols. Our fortunes and fates are written
in these rocks. Leave the worrying and wondering to the waves and clouds."
oo
A night
mist had fallen when Graypatch anchored offshore. A longboat was lowered to
take the reconnais-
sance
crew ashore. Graypatch stayed aboard with Frink, his lookout, always watching
north and west for signs of Gabool in pursuit.
Graypatch
called down to Deadglim, his bosun, "See if you can find a likely spot,
mate —fresh water and cover in plenty."
Deadglim
took the scimitar from between his teeth long enough to answer. "Leave it
t' me, Skipper. I've got a nose for likely coves."
oo
Mist-shrouded
moonless night enveloped Deadglim as he led the shore party forward into the
dunes. He peered into the darkness.
"Not
much 'ereabouts, lads. Nought but sandhills. Here, Gurd, gerrup on yer
paws—time fer sleepin' when we're back aboard Darkqueen. Gurd?"
Gurd
lay still, unable to answer because of the toad trident lodged in his throat.
Immediately a score of tridents descended amid the unsuspecting searats. The
screams of two wounded pierced the still night.
Deadglim
waved his scimitar, yelling at the silent dunes, "Come out an' fight! Show
yerselves, you cree-pin' bilgewashers!"
Suddenly
the dunes echoed to thunderous croaking as countless toads hopped out, armed
with tridents. Deadglim knew his challenge had been a foolish one. Throwing
valor to the winds, he took to his paws shouting, "Retreat! Retreat! Back
to the longboat!"
oo
From
the ship's rail, Graypatch and Deadglim could see the tideline teeming with
trident-waving natterjacks. Deadglim shuddered.
"Cap'n,
if anybeast ever tells you a toad is slow, don't believe it. We barely made it
t' the longboat ahead of those slimy devils. There must be thousands of the
croakin' scum."
Graypatch
turned from the rail. "Set another course nor' an' east, Fishgill. We'll
try our luck farther up the
89
coast.
Jump to it now, you swab. I don't want Gabool hovin' over the briny at our
wake!"
Gabool
the Wild could not sleep. He paced around and around the bell, chopping at
midair with his sword, relating his thoughts to the brazen prize.
"Graypatch'll
curse the day he was spawned when I catch up with him. I'll boil his skull an'
bring it here for you to see, my beauty —see if I don't. Haharr, first Bludrigg
an' then his mizzuble brother Saltar. Corsair, huh! He's nothin' but fishbait
now. Like the other two, the scratchy liddle mousemaid an' her dear daddy
Joseph, haharr! He's the one that made you, isn't he? Gone to fishbait for his
foolishness."
Bongggggl
Gabool
jumped back with a yell, then he ran around the bell in a wide circle,
searching and seeking, but there was nobeast in the room save for himself.
Gradually he became calm.
"Haharr,
'twas only the wind playin' tricks."
Striding
back to the bell he stroked it fondly. "Belay! So what if yer do talk, you
can tell old Gabool all your secrets."
The
bell remained silent. The King of Searats gazed up with narrowed eyes at the
figures embossed around the top of the bellskirt.
"Hellsteeth!
What do it all mean? Tell me, what's all those pretty liddle pictures, mice,
badgers, rats, ships, an' all manner o'things? You tell me; I'm your master
now. Speak! D'you hear me? Speak!"
But the
bell remained still and voiceless, an inanimate metal object.
Gabool's
wild temper rose. He spat upon the bell and kicked it. Still no sound came
forth. In high bad mood he strode from the room, turning in the doorway and
brandishing his sword at the great bell.
"Hell
'n' gullbait! You'll talk to me afore I'm done with yer!"
90
He
slammed the door furiously and strode off to his bedchamber.
Behind
him in the empty room the bell tolled one booming knell.
Gabool's
nerve deserted him. He cut and ran. Leaping into bed, he threw the covers over
his head and lay there shivering.
cxo
Sleep
was a long time coming to Gabool the Wild, but when it did he wished that he
had stayed awake. Badgers, mice, searats and spectral ships sailing upon
phantom waves pursued him down the corridors of his restless imagination. The
figures around the bell had come to life to torment him throughout the long
dark
night.
oo
Lord
Rawnblade too was sleeping. His vast form lay sprawled upon the bed near his
armorer's forge in Sala-mandastron mountain. The sword Verminfate lay upon the
bed, close to paw as it always was. In his dream the badger Lord found he was
looking at the bell that he had commissioned Joseph the Bellmaker to cast for
him. It was beautiful, just as he had imagined it would be, shining with a dull
sheen, graven round top and bottom with the poem and the mysterious pictures
which only badger Lords could interpret. Now a shape was materializing through
the burnished curve of the bell metal—his archenemy Gabool the Wild. Curving
sword in claw, the Searat King advanced, ornaments jangling, golden
emerald-studded teeth glinting in a fiendish smile. Rawnblade's reaction, even
in sleep, was instantaneous; he seized his broadsword and leaped from the bed,
striking out with savage force. Clangggggl
"Er,
I say, M'lord, old chap, are you all right?" Colonel Clary was at his
side. Rawnblade came fully awake, rubbing his eyes with one paw, he gazed down
at the sword in the other.
"What?
Er, oh, yes, thank you. Clary. It was merely a dream."
"My
aunt's kittens! That must have been rather a jolly dream, M'lud. Look what you
did to that shield!"
Rawnblade
stared at the shield which had been in the way of his swordswing. The thick
metal plate had been sheared in half. It lay on the floor, completely severed.
Absentmindedly the badger Lord tested the unmarked blade of Verminfate.
"No
alarm, old friend. Go back to your rest —it was only a dream."
"A
dream, eh? Something out of the past, perhaps?"
Rawnblade
lay back on the bed and held the formidable blade tightly.
"No,
this was something from the future. I know it."
oo
Gabriel
Quill stood up amid the tables and multicolored lanterns that graced the
orchard. He held a tankard of best October ale high and cried, "Righto,
everybeast. Let's give a real Redwall toast to our Abbot!"
Every
creature stood, raising bowls, beakers, tankards, cups and flagons. The soft
summer night echoed as the multitude called aloud in one voice, "Abbot
Bernard! Father of Redwall Abbey! Hurraaaaaaah!"
Saxtus
sat down with a groan, holding his middle. "Whoof! Shouldn't be yelling
like that on an overfull stomach."
Tarquin
scoffed as he relieved Saxtus of his plate. Emptying the Forest Trifle,
strawberry flan, pear gateau and hazelnut cream junket into his own oversized
wooden bowl, he grabbed a spoon and tucked in.
"Haw
haw! What's the matter, laddie buck? Little turn too full, is it? Scrumff! Old
TarkersTl show you how to navigate yer way round a bowl of tucker, mmm! I say,
any more of that summercream pudden stuff left?"
Grubb
the Dibbun mole replied as he nodded sleepily forward toward an overheaped
plate of woodland sum-
92
mercream
pudding, "Burr, baint no more pudden, zur. Oi snaffled 'ee last o' it.
Snurr!"
Buxton
and Willyum mole immediately left off eating huge portions of steaming Bernard
Bread and dug into either side of Grubb's plate, eating furiously as the baby
mole's sleepy head drooped nearer the pudding.
"Ho,
save the choild, 'urry up an scoff quick now, lest the hinfant be drownded in
yon pudden. Hurr hurr!"
Tarquin
joined them indignantly. "I say, you chaps, chew each mouthful twenty
times and leave this to me. Bally unthinkable, poor little blighter bein'
drowned in a plate of pudden. Do not worry, young sire, help is at spoon. I'll
save you. Gromff!"
Storm
tried to stop spluttering Gabe Quill's giggly buttercup 'n' honey cordial
across the table. She shook with unbridled laughter at the antics of Tarquin
and the two moles rescuing the dozing Grubb. The mouse-maid had never been so
happy in any of the life she could remember—the food, the delicious drinks, the
food, the kind Abbey creatures, the food, the good friends about her, and, of
course . . . the food. Never had she tasted such marvelous things. Alternating
between Bernard Bread, blackcurrant pie, summer salad, cheese 'n' nut flan,
mintcream cakes and honey-glazed preserved fruits, she held her own with the
best trencherbeasts.
Dandin
was showing off slightly for her benefit, tossing redcurrants up and catching
them in his mouth. He was quite good at it.
"Here,
watch this, Storm. Betcher can't catch redcurrants like me."
"Haha!
Who can't? I'll show you. Watch!"
Unfortunately
the giggly cordial had got the better of her. Storm tossed a redcurrant high
and missed it completely. It bounced off Foremole's head and lodged in the ear
of Treerose, who was feeling tired and sulky.
93
"Whahaah!
I've gone deaf in one ear. She threw something at me!"
Foremole
flicked the offending redcurrant out onto the grass. Taking up a great spoonful
of otter's hotroot soup, he held Treerose's nose and poured it down her open
mouth.
"Yurr,
missie, 'ee doant eat vittles boi stickin' 'em in 'ee earlugs. Daown thy mouth
et should be a-goen, loik this, liddle missus."
Treerose
was not heard to complain again that night. She was too busy pouring cold water
down her throat to kill off the taste of the otter hotroot soup, which it was
said could thaw out an icy river in midwinter.
oo
Most of
the eating was now over, and speeches began. Abbot Bernard thanked the Friar
for supervising the wonderful feast, also the helpers, layers of table, Gabe
Quill for the excellence of the drinks and all present for attending. In
response various creatures stood up to thank the Abbot, toast Redwall and
congratulate their hosts. Rufe Brush called for some dancing but was silenced
by an oat scone; dancing and jigging was out of the question after having eaten
so much. So the singing began. Never being backward at coming forward, Tarquin
was up on his paws, chewing the last of a celery surprise as he tuned his
harolina. Finishing the food, he launched into the song of the long patrols.
"Oh,
it's hard and dry, when the sun is high
And
dust is in your throat,
When
the rain pours down, near fit to drown,
And
soaks right through your coat.
But the
hares of the long patrol, my lads,
Stouthearts
they walk with me,
Over
hill and plain, and back again,
By the
shores of the wide blue sea.
Through
mud and mire to a warm campfire,
I'll
trek with you, old friend,
94
O'er
lea and dale, in a roaring gale,
Right
to our journey's end.
Yes,
the hares of the long patrol, my lads,
Love
friendship more than gold.
We'll
share good days, and tread long ways,
Good
comrades brave and bold."
Drubber
mole banged his tankard upon the table amid the applause. "Gurr! That'n be
a gurt ballad, bringen tears to moi eyes, it do."
Then it
was Willyum mole's turn to get up and sing the mole song. He did it solemnly in
the correct mole manner and was cheered loudly, though this time it did bring
Drubber to tears. He wept unashamedly.
"Burrhoohurr!
B'aint nothen loik music to soften a hanimal's 'eart."
Dandin
was called upon. He rose and performed a newly written tribute to Abbot
Bernard, accompanied by Tarquin on the harolina.
"Long
may you rule, Father Abbot,
Long
may you reign over all
The
woodlands of Mossflower
And the
Abbey of Redwall.
When I
was a young mouse I learnt at the knee
Of the
Father of Redwall,
The
lessons for you and the lessons for me
From
the Father of us all.
In
those good Dibbun days, I learnt many kind
ways,
To be
honest, strong and true, And wherever I go, I'll remember always, That I learned
them, sir, from you. Long may you rule, Father Abbot, Over all of these
creatures and me, And may we all say in our own simple way, Have a happy
Jubilee."
Every
creature present insisted on singing the song
95
again,
with Tarquin calling out the words from a scroll. It was a huge success, though
Drubber broke down completely and had to be comforted by Danty and Buxton.
"Yurr
now, doant 'ee take on so, Drub, owd lad. Et be on'y a song."
"Hurr
aye, doant be a-sobben naow. Take moi 'anker-chiefy."
Several
more singers were called on to perform. Durry Quill sang the comic song
"Why Can't Hedgehogs Fly?" The otter twins Bagg and Runn recited the
epic poem, "Otter Bill and the Shaking Shrimp." This led to more
demand for poems, and Saxtus was finally coaxed up to recite the poem he had
memorized in the gatehouse. Nervously Saxtus stood up, clasping and unclasping
his paws as he began falteringly.
"The
wind's icy breath o'er the land of death
Tells a
tale of the yet to come.
'Cross
the heaving waves which mark ships' graves
Lies an
island known to some,
Where
seas pound loud and rocks stand proud
And
blood flows free as water,
To the
far northwest, which knows no rest,
Came a
father and his daughter.
The
mind was numb, and the heart struck dumb,
When
the night seas took the child,
Hurled
to her fate, by a son of Hellgate,
The
dark one called The Wild.
You
whom they seek, though you do not speak,
The
legend is yet to be born;
One day
you will sing over stones that are red,
In the
misty summer dawn."
In the
silence that followed before the applause, Storm Gullwhacker gave vent to a
hoarse strangled sob, which echoed amid the startled revelers.
96
12
A light
morning sea mist hung over the waters around Terramort Isle. The last four
ships of Gabool's fleet were returning. They silently nosed into the cove,
sails hanging slack, oars shipped as the oily swell carried them noiselessly
into harbor. The King of Searats knew they had returned; he had watched them
break the night horizon, hours before the mist started to descend. Now Gabool
would need all his cunning and slyness if he were to win his Captains over
completely. Saltar had never been a popular Captain, neither had his brother
Bludrigg; but the fact remained, they were both Captains and he had slain them.
Naturally the other four shipmasters, Orgeye, Hookfin, Flogga and Garrtail,
would feel their positions threatened—they would need reassuring. Once they
were happy with Gabool's continuing rule, their crews would follow them into
the very fangs of Hellgates. The Warlord knew all this and set his plans
accordingly.
The
morning remained gray and uncertain as hordes of searats marched past the rock
portals into Fort Blade-girt. Gabool watched them from the banqueting hall
window, voicing his thoughts aloud. "Look at 'em, the rakin's an'
scrapin's of the earth, scum from the wharves, taverns an' cellars, their
mothers were bilge-
97
rats
an' their fathers were barrelsloppers. Murderers, thieves, pillagers, all of
'em. Haharr, they'd steal the very fires of hell to keep 'em warm of a winter
night and singe the Dark One's whiskers. Vermin after me own black heart.
Haharrhahaharr!"
The
Warlord's description fit every searat from the tip of his ragged tail to the
point of his scarred nose. They were clad in motley rags, some wearing worn-out
seaboots and threadbare frock coats, others dressed in the tattered silks of
corsairs. Brass ear, nose and tail rings were much in evidence, eyepatches,
skull bandages, missing ears and fearsome scars. But every searat was armed to
the teeth; cutlasses, scimitars, straight swords, sabers, claymores, daggers,
dirks, bodkins, spears and pikes bristled everywhere throughout the barbaric
mob.
Gabool
sat grim-faced on his throne, facing the great bell. All around, the banqueting
tables were piled high with food and drink; nervous slaves stood waiting, ready
to serve their savage captors. The searat crews crowded in. Those who could not
find seating leaned against the walls or slouched upon the floor. Nobody
touched a morsel of food. An expectant hush settled over all; the King of
Searats was not his usual roaring commanding self. Claws settled upon weapons,
ready to fight at a moment's notice, it was a taut and perilous situation. The
Captains grouped together at one table, Orgeye of the Waveblade, Hookfin of the
Blacksail, Flogga of the Rathelm and Garrtail of the Greenfang, They were
joined by the masters of the three ships that were under repair, Riptung of the
Nightwake, Catseyes of the Seata-lon and Grimtooth of the Crabclaw. Against
these seven Gabool was facing mighty odds, their cold, quick eyes watched him
mistrustingly —even Garrtail, who now had his own ship and felt equal to other
Captains. The threat of instant death hung heavy in the air.
Gabool's
heavy sigh broke the stillness. He stood up, slowly drawing his curved sword.
He dropped it; the
98
bright
blade clattered on the floor in front of him as he pointed to the nearest rat.
"You
there, matey. You've got the look of a poor old searat who don't have two
crusts to rub together. What's yer name, shipmate?"
"Weltskin,
sire," the ragged searat said in a puzzled voice.
Gabool
nodded. "Well, you pick up that fine blade, Weltskin. My sword belongs to
you now. Go on, take it, matey."
The
searat Weltskin picked up the sword, his eyes shining. No common crewrat had
ever owned such a weapon.
Gabool
faced the assembly. Throwing his arms wide, he appealed to them.
"Aaahh,
shipmates, what's it all come to? Treachery, deceit an' lies, aye, that's the
sad fact, mateys. A Cap'n who scorned me, Bludrigg, an' his brother Saltar out
fer revenge, who tried to slay me when I was unarmed in me own home ..."
Gabool
shook his head sadly. "Aharr, bad weather 'n' black days, lads, though I
knew all the time those two searobbers was plottin' against me. Still an' all,
I offered 'em welcome an' vittles in Fort Bladegirt—their crews too. Why, some
of you was there an' ate the same food an' drank the same drink an' saw it all
happen. Base traitors they were, messmates. I'd heard them whisperin' together;
they wanted it all—my island an' your ships. You Cap'ns there, aharr, I wish
you'd been here to see it—you would've sided with old Gabool, I know you would.
Faithfulness always has its reward."
Gabool
struck the side of the bell with a drinking cup. Twenty slaves bearing chests
of plunder staggered in and turned out the glittering contents at Gabool's
feet. Necklaces, stones, bracelets, goblets, silks and fine weapons cascaded
out across the floor in a sparkling heap. Gabool's quick eyes noted the greedy
glances the
99
plunder
attracted. He held out his claws to the seven Captains.
"Every
bright star has seven true points. You, my shipmasters, my good an' trusty
mates, come an' take what you want from this lot. What use is booty an' plunder
if a rat ain't got friends he can trust?"
The
Captains stumbled and tripped over other searats in their haste to grab what
they could. Ripping silks and tossing all they could hold into makeshift
carriers, the seven shipmasters bit, scratched and jostled silently as each
strove to grab what he thought was more than his fair share. When they drew
back, dragging their portions with them, there was still a large mound of loot
upon the floor.
"Why,
you greedy old plunderers," Gabool laughingly upbraided the Captains.
"Snafflin' away without a thought for your crewrats. See if you can clear
this lot away, lads. Come on, it's all yours!"
With a
wild howl, the searat crews threw themselves upon the remainder of the booty.
Scrabbling, kicking, screeching, clawing and ripping, they fought for baubles
all over the hall. Gabool laughed madly as he plowed among them. He had won.
The plan was working like a charm. Now he sowed the seeds of dissension as he
roved among the crews, whispering, "Is that all you got, matey, a few
earrings an' a dagger? If I was your Cap'n I would have give you first pick.
Ah, but Cap'ns is Cap'ns—they was ever the greedy ones. Hoho, Halfnose, me ol'
messmate, did you see that Cap'n Hookfin? He was a-shovin' an' a-pushin' your
Cap'n Orgeye like he didn't want him to get his proper share. I'd tell Orgeye
that if I was you, mate. 'Here, Shornear, what good is two earrings to you, eh?
You 'ark t' me, shipmate—that Garrtail, he looked as if he were tryin' to grab
everythin' for hisself, an' him only a new Cap'n. I'm sorry I chose him now. If
I'd been thinkin' aright at the time, I'd have made you master
100
of the
Greenfang. Never mind, matey. There'll always be another day, eh?"
When
the plunder had all been claimed, the searats threw themselves upon the food
ravenously, each one mistrusting the other and all of them feeling more loyal
to Gabool than to their own Captains.
The Warlord
had yet to play his final card. He banged the bell for silence.
"Now,
me lucky rats, I'm goin' to let you in on a secret, so cock yer lugs! There's
another traitor, more black'earted than any, but he ain't here this day. What's
his name? I 'ear you ask. . . . 'Tis Graypatch—aye, Graypatch. There's a name
for the Dark One's book. We sailed fair seas an' foul together since we was
both liddle sloprats, an' now the foul blaggard has robbed the best craft in
the fleet for hisself. Aye, the Darkqueen, Saltar's ship. Graypatch crewed her
an' sailed off in Darkqueen behind me back, an' I trusted him like a brother.
But here's the worst of it, lads—that ship's carryin' three times the loot in
her hold, on my affidavy it is, more plunder'n you could clap eyes on. . . .
And I want Graypatch's scurvy head! You can do what you will with the
booty—first one to it gets it all—as long as you bring me back the Darkqueen
with Graypatch's head nailed to the bowsprit. How's that fer an offer, you
hellscrapin's?"
Tables
were overturned, food scattered, furniture smashed as the Captains and their
crews made a hasty exodus from the hall, jamming in the doorway, cursing and
fighting in an effort to be first to weigh anchor and hunt down Graypatch and
the Darkqueen.
"Hoist
sail, Ledder. I'll be down straightways!" "Weigh anchor, Froat. We'll
get 'im first!" "Get the crew aboard, Bullfang. Hurry!"
"Come on, you wavescum. Stir yer stumps—there's prize to be had!"
Weltskin
was one of the last to leave, striding impor-
101
tantly
with Gabool's fine curved sword over his shoulder. Gabool called him back.
"Weltskin,
matey, c'mere."
The
searat marched back and saluted his King with the sword.
"D'you
want somethin', sire?"
Gabool
stroked his beard thoughtfully. "Let's see you swing that sword."
Weltskin
swung the sword several times. Gabool looked worried.
"No,
matey, no. That's no way to twirl a blade. Here, let me show yer how to use
that sword."
Weltskin
gave the sword to Gabool. He watched fascinated as the Warlord wove patterns in
the air with the glittering weapon. Weltskin' s fascination suddenly turned to
agonized shock as Gabool snicked the tip from his ear with the sword. Smiling
wickedly, Gabool flashed the blade a little closer to Weltskin's throat.
"That's
how t'do it, matey. Now do you want to lay about while I does another liddle
trick with yer neck, or do yer want t'board ship an' leave this 'ere carver
with ol' Gabool?"
A
second later the Searat King was listening to the mad patter of Weltskin's paws
as he dashed headlong for the harbor and the safety of the open sea. Thrusting
his regained weapon into its waist sash, Gabool threw back his head and roared
with laughter.
Redwallers
gathered in the open doorway of the infirmary sickbay, anxiously peeping in at
the still figure of Storm laid upon a truckle bed. Saxtus gnawed at his lip.
"It
must have been something I said in that poem. Oh, I wish I hadn't recited the
blinking thing now. In fact, I wish that I'd never seen it!"
Dandin
patted his friend reassuringly. "Don't be silly. You weren't to know that
the poem would have that effect upon her. It's not your fault. Though I must
102
say,
Storm is the last creature you'd expect to fall in a faint like that. I've
never met a rougher, tougher mousemaid in my life."
Simeon
turned from a corner table where he was concocting something from
strange-looking herbs and roots.
"Rough
and tough she is indeed. I think Storm has been through things that would have
killed a lesser creature. She has tremendous spirit."
The
Abbot agreed. "She has indeed, though I don't think her real name is Storm
Gullwhacker. I wonder who she really is."
Simeon
turned back to his bowl and pestle. "That's what we're about to find out
if we can. Are you ready, Sister Sage?"
Sage
went to the door. "Mother Mellus, Abbot and Brother Hubert, you'd better
come in and watch. Saxtus and Dandin, you can come in also, and you too,
Tarquin, but you'll have to be very quiet. Now the rest of you, please go to
bed. It's only two hours until dawn. There are visitors' beds set up in Cavern
Hole for the
woodlanders."
oo
Storm
lay very still. Sister Sage placed a fresh damp cloth across her brow, noting
the deep scar which ran across her skull. Sage lifted Storm's head slightly as
Simeon administered a small dose of the mixture from a beaker. The mousemaid
licked her lips, made a small noise of satisfaction, then settled back as if in
a calm sleep.
Simeon
took a seat near Storm's head and spoke gently into her ear.
"You
are with friends, little one—good friends. I want you to tell us what happened
to you. Go back to the beginning and tell us all. Can you hear me? Do you
understand what I am saying?"
Storm's
eyelids flickered. She sighed and then began talking as if she were telling a
story to a friend. At his
103
table
in the corner, Brother Hubert wrote swiftly with quill on parchment, recording
the strange tale.
The
mousemaid called Storm Gullwhacker. Her story written down by Hubert, Brother
Recorder of Redwall Abbey.
After
moving about restlessly for a short while, the mousemaid appeared calm and
spoke quite clearly.
We are
half a season out from the deep coasts in the far south, my father Joseph and
I. The ship we are sailing in is called Periwinkle. It is crewed by shrews.
They are a bit scared because they have never sailed upon blue waters before,
but Captain Ash is bold and adventurous. He says the only way we can get the
great bell to Salamandastron is by sea. I have never sailed the deep waters
before, nor has my father. Every day we see new wonders—great fish, huge
seabirds and wonderful sunsets.
The
great bell is tied on deck; my father and I sit to watch the sun's dying rays
reflected in its shining metal. I can hear the pride in his voice as he speaks
to me.
"Mariel,"
he says. "Surely this is a bell fit for Rawnblade Widestripe, the great
badger Lord. See how the sun sinking in the west turns it to a fiery color.
That is the copper, brass and gold, Mariel; the silver I put in to make its
voice sweet."
My
father is strong and very wise; he is the cleverest bellrnaker in the world.
When I tell him this he laughs and says, "No no, the nicest thing I ever
made was your name —Mariel. It sounds like a bell ringing clear across meadows
on a soft spring morn. Can't you hear it ... Mariel! Mariel!"
Now we
have had to stop hugging the coast and put out to sea because of the reefs
inshore. All around me is nothing but waves and water. It is a bit frightening
at times when the big billows ride high with the wind. The crew are not very
happy now they
104
have
lost sight of land. My father says everything is shipshape—he learned that from
Captain Ash. I like the Captain and I am sure he will deliver us safely to the mountain
of the badger Lord.
Something
is wrong. A great black ship with red sails has been following us since dawn. I
heard Captain Ash whisper to my father the word "searats." My father
has taken me below to a cabin. I have to lie on the deck underneath a bunk and
hide behind some blankets. My father tells me to lie still and not move. I am
not afraid now; I am angry. I do not think I will like searats. I want to come
out and fight them if they try to harm us, but my father has forbidden me.
Crashing
above on deck, screaming, yelling, paws pounding everywhere, harsh voices
shouting bad things! Clashing of metal, splintering of wood, moaning, horrible
cries. I must get out of this place to help against the searats. Silence now,
just some cries of injured creatures and the creak of ropes. I am trying to lie
still but I tremble and shake with rage. Why am I lying here doing nothing?
Pawsteps,
banging, the cabin door crashes open! As I peep between the blankets, I can see
three big rats fighting over some wine on the cabin table. One called Gripper
snatches the wineflask, but the biggest one, called Saltar, kicks him hard and
grabs the wine. Gripper falls to the floor. As the ship heaves he rolls under
the bunk and bumps into me. I yell, he rips the blankets off and says,
"Hellseyes, look what I found—a pretty mousemaid!"
He
tries to grab me but I bite him, kicking him hard in the neck. Gripper makes
strange sounds and clutches at his throat where I kicked him. His eyes turn up
and he is still. Saltar laughs and says to the other rat, "A warrior maid,
eh, Ledder. She's slain old Gripper. What a wild one!"
They
both pounce on me. I cannot fight back
105
because
the dead rat is in my way. Saltar and Ledder throw the blankets over me. I am
bundled up, and they punch and kick at the blankets until I go still, but I am
half conscious.
Now
they have taken me on deck. I can see through a rip in the blanket that my
father and Captain Ash are tied to the bell. They must have fought hard because
they are both covered with cuts and bruises. The crew are all lying about,
dead, wounded or tied up. Saltar is saying something to Ledder about feeding
the fishes. Now they are ... Oh no! . . . No, please! . . . Noooooooooo!!!
Note by
Brother Hubert. Here the mousemaid became very upset, thrashing about until
Mother Mellus held her down and Simeon the herbalist administered more of his
potion. The mousemaid lay calm for a while then started to speak again. I
record her words as best as I can.
Cold
winter, hungry, cold, oh so cold! My father is ill—I have seen him once when he
was brought up to talk with Gabool the Wild. He will not build a bell tower for
Gabool to hang the great bell in. Gabool is very angry. He sends my father
away, back to the cells, where he must stay locked up until he agrees to build
a bell tower. A rat named Graypatch says that I should be used to make my
father obey. But Gabool says that he is King of Terramort Isle, he alone gives
the orders. If hunger, cold and illness do not bend my father to his will then
he might use me to force him, but that is his decision and not Graypatch's. I
do not think Graypatch likes Gabool. I hate him. Gabool the Wild is the
cruelest of all searats. He is a fearsome sight—strange wild eyes, golden greenstone-studded
teeth and a long straggly beard—every beast on Terramort fears him. Gabool
calls me Skiv. He makes me serve all his meals. If I am lucky he throws me the
scraps from his plate; other times when he is in a cruel mood he will say,
106
"Are
you thirsty, Skiv?" Then he pours wine on the floor and makes me lick it
up. Many times I have tried to escape, but there are too many guards; I am
brought back and beaten. Gabool has threatened to kill my father if I try
running away once more. But there must be a way, I've got to find a way . . .
Note by
Brother Hubert: Here the mousemaid started weeping and grinding her teeth.
Simeon said it was pure rage at her helpless position. He soothed her with a
drop more of potion. She is resting now and beginning to relate another
incident. I wish she would speak more slowly as I am unaccustomed to recording
in this speedy manner.
I am
serving at table, laying Gabool's food out. He likes roasted seabird and strong
wine. Gabool is in a very bad temper and I know the reason. Our ship Periwinkle
was renamed Crabclaw by Gabool. He made a rat named Skullgor Captain of it. But
on the first day he sailed it from Terramort he was driven back onto the rocks
by a sudden squall. The ship was holed and lost its rudder. Gabool has got
Skullgor in front of him now and he is insulting him, goading him to fight, I
think, though Gabool is unarmed. Gabool says, "Skullgor, a dead frog would
be a better Captain than you. You are a blunderer and a fool. You let that ship
run on to the rocks because you did not want to put to sea, you yellow-livered
coward!"
Skullgor
draws his sword. He is shouting, "King or no King, nobeast calls Skullgor
a coward. Go and get your sword, Gabool. We'll see who's the coward then!"
Gabool
reaches for a hidden sword he has stowed beneath the table. He draws it and
makes a leap, surprising Skullgor. I am passing, laden with dishes, and I bump
straight into Gabool by accident. Like a flash Skullgor is on him, but Gabool
shouts out and a rat named Garrtail stabs Skullgor in the back with a dagger.
Gabool jumps up and finishes Skullgor off,
107
then he
turns on me, yelling, "You've collected your last plate, Skiv. I saw your
little game—trying to get me killed by Skullgor, eh? Then go and join him at
Hellgates!"
Now
Gabool is coming at me with his sword, I know he is determined to slay me.
Suddenly I feel a great anger. I must live; he has no right to take my life. I
must act fast. I snatch up Skullgor's sword and leap onto the table, kicking a
jug of wine into Gabool's face. I slash at him with my sword but he has
staggered close in, his eyes full of wine. The sword handle catches him on the
skull, stunning him. He falls beneath the table, but as I jump down to slay him
they are on me, Garrtail and a half-dozen others. They hit me with something,
everything goes black . . .
Note by
Brother Hubert: We thought the mousemaid needed calming down, bi4t she lay
still momentarily then started to speak again.
Black
darkness. . . . Wind, rain! I am bound with a rope, a heavy rope. Outside on
the high cliffs; we are outside the fort. I can hear waves crashing against the
rocks far below. My head aches. I am balanced tottering on the cliff edge.
Gabool is with me. He is saying something. I can hardly hear it for the wind
and storm. . . . Wait!
"A
mousemaid bringing Gabool down—we can't have that, can we, little Skiv? Saltar
said you were a warrior maid. He was right, you are a born fighter— too much of
a fighter for your own good. Let's see how good you are at battling with the
sea!"
He
pushes me. I am falling over the cliff! There is a large rock tied to the rope.
It smashes to bits on another rock as I fall. . . . Father, Father, the water
is cold as ice and high as mountains. But I won't die, I'll come back for you.
See! The water has softened the rope and my paws are free. Driftwood—I'm cling-
108
ing to
it. Father, don't let me drown. . . . Oh, it's so cold, so dark, and the sea is
like a huge wild animal. Father . . . Father . . . I'll come back.
"Enough!"
The sight of one so young writhing in mental torment was pitiful. Mother Mellus
could stand it no longer. Sweeping the mousemaid up in her paws, she carried
her off, calling back to those in the sickbay room, "This little one has
had enough—me too! I can't listen anymore to the sufferings of the poor child.
We will sleep out in the orchard, beneath the trees, where it is cool and
shadowed from the dawn; just Mariel and me."
The
door slammed and they were left looking at each other, all save blind Simeon,
who summed it up in a few phrases.
"She's
right, y'know. I think we all got carried away listening to the tale of Sto—
er, Mariel. The poor maid needs rest, but at least we know who she is
now."
Abbot
Bernard stuffed his paws into wide habit sleeves and yawned. "Right you
are, Simeon. I think we all need some rest. Aahhh, bed beckons."
Tarquin
threw a dramatic paw to his brow. "Gads! How you can think of sleep at a
time like this horrifies me, particularly when there's so much food left. Any
of you chaps fancy sharing a bite with me? I'll tell you about the sweetest gel
in the entire territory. Hon Rosie's her name, an absolute whackeroony of a
filly, an' Tarquin L. Woodsorrel's the first to say it."
Dandin
chuckled. "Sounds like a tale for a long winter's night. I'm off to the
dormitories. G' night, or
is it
good day?"
oo
Down in
the orchard Tarquin sat stuffing dewberry and sugared apple cake, strumming his
harolina mournfully.
"O
Rosie, why did you leave me?
You're
enough to give a bally chap the pip,
109
Laughin'
in my face, ha ha ha ha ha,
An'
leavin' me in tears as off you trip. . . . Yowch!"
A hard
green apple bounced off Tarquin's head as Mother Mellus's voice called out from
the trees, "I'll leave you in tears if you don't quit your caterwauling
and let us get some rest. I'll wrap that harolina round your head, see if I
don't!"
no
A stiff
southerly breeze had sprung up, chasing the mist before it. The Darkqueen under
full sail dipped her head as she cut the night sea. Bow waves scudded spray to
fleck her wake, ragged clouds swirled overhead with no moon to light them on
their way, timbers creaked and ropes hummed as the burgeoning canvas pulled the
sleek craft across the main.
Graypatch
knew it was dangerous to sail the Darkqueen in any northerly direction, but
northeast was better than northwest, and he was a bit more familiar with the
coastline in the northeast area. It was still some time until dawn.
"Keep
her head in to the shore, Fishgill/' Graypatch called to his steersrat.
"Deadglim, sound the water for reefs as y'go. Frink, stay up that topmast
and keep yer eyes peeled north and westward. Any sign of a sail, give me a
shout. I'm goin' below to look at the charts. Stay on duty, now. Anybeast I
catch nappin'll be dead afore he wakes up."
The
charts in Saltar's former cabin were few and sketchy. Searats were notorious
for sailing by instinct and rule of paw. Graypatch found a scrap of parchment
and began drawing his own map of the coast from memory.
in
"Hmm,
if I recall right, the badgers' mountain is further south'ard, then there's the
seamarshes, and I remember some outlyin' cliffs boundin' 'em t' the north. Them
dunes is next, an' the toadlands. I reckon we're a full night's sailin' with
the wind behind us. . . . Got it! Haha, I knew me old brain wasn't rustin'.
Some-wheres up this coast is a river that runs into the sea. Eye, it comes out
of the forestlands and across the shore. All's we do is keep a lookout fer the
trees a-growin' inland to the starboard side. I know the river's somewheres
there, I can feel it in me bones."
Daybreak
found the Darkqueen still beating north up the coast. The morning was heavy
with rolling seamist, promising to clear into hot sunshine. Promises were not
much good to the Captain of Darkqueen, however. With Frink peering to port and
Fishgill to starboard, it turned into a guessing game as to what would show
first, the trees to landward, or the enemy to seaward. Graypatch paced the deck
anxiously.
A
grizzled searat called Kybo came scurrying up with bad news.
"Just
been checkin' provisions, Cap'n. Nought but a few breaktooth biscuits left, an'
we're out of fresh water!"
Graypatch
slammed the rail with his claw. "Stow the gab, Kybo. There'll be fresh
water an' vittles aplenty where we're bound. Somewheres along this coast
there's — "
"Land
ho!"
Graypatch
dashed to the starboard rail. "Where away, Fishgill?"
"Straight
as y' look, Cap'n. The mist's a-clearin'; I can see the trees growin' green an'
'andsome atop of some dunes inland."
Graypatch
clapped Kybo on the back and winked with his good eye, "See! I told yer,
matey. Hoho, let's see if they can find us now. Fishgill, Deadglim! Keep yer
eyes skinned for a river runnin' out o' those trees
112
across
the shore. Ahoy there, Frink. Any sign of Gabool or his ships on your
side?"
"Nan^
a sail, Cap'n. The mist's liftin' an' all I see is a bright day an' some
seabirds!"
The
news cheered Graypatch immensely. Helm down, the Darkqueen raced along the
shoreline as a stiffening breeze sprang up from the south. Graypatch called all
claws on deck, where they could watch for
the
river.
oo
It was
early noontide before the river was sighted, flowing through a deep defile in
the dunes and bubbling out to meet the sea. The strain and tension was showing
in Graypatch's face. Though his search had been rewarded, he knew precious time
had been wasted. Gabool's ships would not be meandering about at half-sail,
they would be hunting at full speed and bound to turn up sooner than later.
Moreover, conditions for navigating the river were not favorable. It was ebb
tide.
Graypatch
would have liked to approach the river at high water, sailing his ship straight
into the forest. He cursed aloud, knowing the decision he was making would
leave them totally vulnerable to attack. Dropping anchor bow onto the river, he
addressed the Darkqueen's crew.
"Hark
t' me, lads. There'll be no flood tide until late tonight, so here's the plan.
We're goin' to haul the ship through that river which runs across the shore an'
into the forestlands. Once we're among the trees we're safe. No one'll find us
up there. It's a snug berth—lots of fresh water, fruits, an' good meat t' be
had. Trust old Graypatch, me lucky buckos ..."
"Hah!
Tell that t' the frogs, Graypatch. We'll never drag Darkqueen o'er that long
shore. Any rat with half an eye can see that river's too shallow!"
Graypatch's
good eye glared down at the objector, a burly searat. "Stow that kind o'
talk, Bigfang! Either we
113
haul
her up into the trees or we sit here like ducks at a weddin', waitin' fer the
tide tonight, and get ourselves caught by Gabool's ships. Now which is
it?"
Bigfang
and the searat crew grumbled and muttered, but there was no real objection to
Graypatch's plan, which they knew was their only hope. The master of the
Darkqueen rapped out his orders.
"So
be it! Everybeast aboard ship—I mean everyone, all of you and whatever slaves
are in the galleys. I want you all ashore, split into two groups either side o'
that river, pullin' on the ropes. Kybo, Frink! Get the anchor rope to port and
another one as thick to starb'd. Now when I say pull, I want yer to put yer
backs into it, buckos—hear me. Right? All ashore!"
oo
Standing
waist-deep in the shallow river, Graypatch eyed the lines of crew and oarslaves
either side of the banks. He raised his sword, bringing it down with a splash
into the water as he yelled, "Pull! Pull! Bend yer backs an' curse yer mothers!
Pull, I say!"
Grunting
and sweating, the crew heaved on the taut ropes across their shoulders, digging
their claws into the sand for purchase.
"Pull,
you 'orrible seascum, pull! You couldn't drag a worm out o' bed between the lot
of yer. Pull!"
The
ropes creaked and groaned as Darkqueen began to move forward, fraction by
agonizing fraction. Gray-patch waded from the river and took a place at the
head of the port rope.
"Hoho!
She's movin', me lazy lads. Pull, pull as if you were pullin' buckets o' dark
wine from a barrel. Pull!"
Darkqueen
had moved twice her own considerable length when the river shallowed out
drastically, and she buried her nose in a sandbank.
Bigfang
threw down the rope. Followed by many others, he waded into the river and began
drinking the fresh running water.
114
Graypatch
drew his sword in high bad temper and began bellowing hoarsely, "Get out
of there, you worthless idlers! Get back on your ropes, you frog-hearted,
backbitin', jelly-clawed slackers. I'll carve the hide from your bones. I'll
strangle every jackrat of yer. I'll
Across
the open sea, just beyond the tideline, Garrtail's ship Greenfang was bearing
down on them under full sail!
oo
"Mariel,
your name is Mariel, daughter of Joseph the Bellmaker."
The
mousemaid hauled her Gullwhacker in from the infirmary window, where it had
hung to dry. She swung it experimentally, nodding with satisfaction at the
clean knotted hemp.
"I
know my name, Dandin. And I know my father's name. I can remember everything
now. Stand aside."
Dandin
and Saxtus followed her down the stairs, across Great Hall, into the Abbey
kitchens. Mariel picked up an empty floursack and shook it out. She started
packing it with any food to paw. Saxtus nibbled his paw agitatedly. "What
are you doing, Mariel?"
The
mousemaid continued filling the sack. "Packing rations, Saxtus."
Friar
Alder and his young assistant Cockleburr came bustling up.
"Hi
there, young missy. What do you think you're up to?"
Mariel
tested the weight of the sack and threw it across her shoulder. "Borrowing
some supplies, Friar. Don't worry, I'll repay them."
Friar
Alder held out a restraining paw. "Now, hold on a moment, please."
Mariel
grasped Gullwhacker tightly. "Stay out of my way, Friar, please. You have
all been very kind to me at Redwall and I would hate to harm any Abbey crea-
ture,
but there's something I've got to do—and nobeast will stop me."
Cockleburr
hopped up and down, stumbling on his apron. "Walloping winters, Friar. Get
out the way. I've seen her use that Gullywhacker thing!"
Dandin
jumped between the Friar and Mariel. "Violence is no answer, Mariel. We
are creatures of peace. It's wrong to offer harm to a Redwaller."
The
mousemaid shook her head. "Don't you understand, Dandin? I don't wish to
harm any creature in this Abbey, but I have scores to settle with my enemies.
Look, just let me go and leave me alone, will you."
"Oh,
and what do you plan to do then, Storm Gullwhacker?"
Mariel
turned. Standing in front of the great oven was Mother Mellus, accompanied by
the Abbot, Simeon and Tarquin.
"My
name's not Storm Gullwhacker, it's Mariel," she said defiantly.
Blind
Simeon tapped his way forward until he touched her sleeve. "Then start
acting like Mariel and not behaving like the old Storm Gullwhacker. We are
trying to help you, child."
Mariel
looked at the floor. "Don't need any help."
"Not
true, Mariel." There was a touch of firmness in Mellus's voice as she
interrupted. "Every creature needs help. How do you suppose we live here
in harmony together? By helping each other. This Abbey was not built by one
creature; it needed cooperation and help. Tell me, where do you think you are
going with a knotted rope in a borrowed habit carrying a sack of stolen
food?"
Suddenly
Mariel felt helpless in the face of all this peaceful opposition. The sack
slipped from her paw as she brushed away a threatening teardrop.
Tarquin
saved the situation by throwing a rangy paw about her shoulders. "Come on,
old gel. Chin up an' never say boo to a goose, wot? Tell you what we'll do—
116
let's
tootle over to that dusty old gatehouse place an' hold a council o' war. Get
the stew sorted from the dumplin's, eh?"
Abbot
Hubert slipped Mariel a clean kerchief and stood in front of her as she
scrubbed at her eyes.
"Splendid
idea, Tarquin. A good sensible talk never hurt any creature. Come on, we'll all
go together. Many heads are better than one."
The
gatehouse proved far too dusty and cramped, so they sat on the low steps in the
shade of the west rampart. The Abbot ordered lunch to be sent out to them, with
cold mint and rose cordial.
Mother
Mellus folded her paws. "Now, where exactly do you plan on going?"
"Terramort
Isle." Mariel's answer was loud and clear.
"Do
you know how to get there, or where it is?"
"No,
but don't worry, I'll find it myself."
Simeon
chuckled. "As the blind squirrel said, reaching for a cloud."
Mariel
bristled. "What does that mean, that I'm stupid!"
"Don't
be silly," Tarquin interrupted. "Oh, haha, I say, 'scuse me. Lunch,
chaps. Here comes lunch!"
As they
sat eating, the Abbot gave Mariel a friendly wink. "Simeon didn't mean
anything. All he said really was that you need help. I think the first thing to
do is to find out where Terramort Isle is; at least that will be a start. Has
anyone ever heard of Terramort in the past, any mention from travelers,
scrolls, books, old rhymes —anything at all?"
"I
think I may be of some help there." Brother Hubert had been eavesdropping
on the conference from the door of the gatehouse. He wandered over cleaning
dust from his spectacles. "Hmm, is that food I see? I think I'll join
you."
Seating
himself comfortably, he began helping himself to cheese, bread and cold cider.
117
Simeon
coughed politely. "Ahem! I don't suppose that you've ever heard of
Terramort, Hubert?"
Brother
Hubert blinked over the top of his spectacles. "On the contrary, as soon
as I heard the name it brought to mind a young mouse who should have been
learning the precepts of Redwall Abbots in bygone days. Yes, he thought I was
dozing and he began leafing through the scrolls of Fieldroan the Traveler
..."
Tarquin
hastily swallowed a redcurrant muffin. "Fieldroan! Well, there's a thing!
My Father Lorquin knew him, of course. Old Fieldroan had more seasons to gray
his hairs than a hedgehog has spikes when he and the jolly old pater were
chums. D'y'know, I thought I recognized that poem young Saxtus recited at the
feast—know bits of it m'self. Blow me if it isn't one of Fieldroan's very own
rhymes!"
Brother
Hubert sniffed severely. "Indeed. Well, as I was saying, before I was so
rudely interrupted, Fieldroan was a compulsive traveler. I met him one winter
and sheltered him in the gatehouse through half a season of deep snow. He left
some of his scrolls with me because they were becoming too bulky to carry about
on his journeys."
This
time it was Dandin's turn to interrupt. "Where are they, Brother Hubert?
Do you have them?"
"Patience,
young mouse, patience. I'll have to search them out. Unfortunately my gatehouse
has become a little, ahem, untidy of late."
Leaving
the meal half finished, everybody hurried to the gatehouse, intent on being the
first to discover the scrolls. Brother Hubert scurried about in alarm.
"Don't
touch anything. You don't know my storage system, any of you. Valuable writings
could be lost, my collating disturbed ..."
"You
old fraud, Hubert," Simeon chuckled. "Your system is nothing but
layers of dust. Even I can feel that at a single touch. Don't worry, friend. By
the time
118
we're
finished we'll free the gatehouse of rubbish and dust and provide you with a
proper tidy system. I think everything will have to be moved out here onto the
lawn. It's the only way we'll find anything from that
jumble."
oo
Midafternoon
saw the sunlit lawn dotted with piles of manuscripts, books, scrolls,
parchments and pamphlets. Covered in dust, the friends sat by the wall, sipping
cold mint and rose cordial.
Saxtus
shook his head for the umpteenth time. "No, it wasn't any of that lot. I'd
know them the moment I saw them."
Bagg
and Runn sat on top of the wallstairs, laughing and giggling.
"Hoheeheehee. . . . Whoohahaha. What a bunch of dustbags!"
Brother
Hubert tried to ignore them. "Yes, I'd recognize those scrolls instantly
myself ..."
"Teeheeheehee!
Rec'nize them himself. . . . Yahah-ahaha!" They rolled about on the
ramparts, kicking their legs in the air and wiping tears of merriment from
their eyes as they went into fresh gales of laughter.
Mariel
liked the fun-loving otter twins, but this was neither the time nor the place
for fun and games. "Hi, you two," she called up to them. "Are
you both sitting on a feather, or is it just a mad fit of the giggles?"
Bagg
and Runn were laughing too much to answer. They fell about, slapping their paws
down against the wall top and shaking their heads from side to side. The
laughter was so infectious that Mariel and Saxtus began chuckling, and even
Brother Hubert could not suppress a dry smile.
Simeon
turned his sightless eyes toward the walltop. "Now then, you young
villains. What's so funny? Let us in on the joke, please."
Bit by
bit the story came out from the laughing twins.
"Woohoohoo!
You're all lookin' for scrolls. . . . Hohoho!"
119
"And
you've. . . . Teeheehee! Shifted everythin' out of the gatehouse. Haha!"
"Yahahaha!
But when you started carryin' all that stuff out. Ohohoho!"
"Br-Br-.
Brother Hubert. . . . He-he. . . . Heeheehee! Gave old scrolls to Simeon t'
stick under the gatehouse door an' keep it open. Hawhawhawhaw!"
"An'
I said to Bagg. . . . Ohoohoohoo! S'pose they're the scrolls that everyone's
lookin' for. Ahaahaahoho-hoheehee!"
Simeon
turned his face to Brother Hubert, who looked guiltily toward the Abbot, who
shook his head in disbelief. He was about to say something to Mariel, but the
mousemaid was already at the gatehouse door, easing the flattened bundle of
scrolls from under it.
"It's
them, all right—the scrolls of Fieldroan the Traveler."
Rubbing
dust and sweat from his brow, Dandin nudged Hubert. "Well, at least your
gatehouse got a good free tidy-out, Brother!"
Smiles
broke into chuckles, which gave way to open laughter all around.
Sister
Sage shook a quilt out at the infirmary window and began folding it neatly as
she reached for her feather duster.
"Well,
it's nice to know that all some creatures have to do is sit out on the Abbey
lawn in the sunshine and laugh all afternoon, I must say!"
120
Graypatch
drew his sword, waving it and roaring as he waded from the stream. "Now
we'll see what yer made of, you sons of searats! Catch 'em in the shallows
afore they're ashore an' massacre every rat of 'em. Sharp now. It's our necks
or theirs. Charge, me buckos. Charge!"
The
Creenfang had sailed into shore as close as Garrtail could take her. She listed
slightly in the shallows then settled askew. Garrtail had his crew ready.
Lining the rails, they gripped weapons between their teeth and waited his order
as Graypatch's rats thundered across the sands.
Garrtail
vaulted over the side, landing chest deep in the sea. "Follow me, lucky
lads. It's booty for all aplenty when we've slain that load o' turncoats an'
traitors. Over the side, all of yer!"
Quick thinking
and speed had given the advantage to Graypatch. His searats were at the water's
edge as Garrtail's crew came over the rails of the Creenfang.
Wading
out, Graypatch called over his shoulder, "Keep to the shallows. Don't go
too deep, lads, but hold Garrtail's scum in the deeper waters where they can't
fight so good. Bigfang, get back to the Darkqueen. Kybo, you go with him. Get
hold of any long boathooks
121
or
pikes you can find. Look lively now —I'm not goin' back to Terramort with me
head in the bows an' me body in the stern for Gabool to gloat over!"
Garrtail
was out ahead of his crew. Realizing the urgency of the situation, he waded and
cursed as he made his way toward Graypatch.
"Come
an' fight, you frog-livered schemer. I'll carve you to fishbait!"
Graypatch
balanced an iron marlinspike in his claw. Taking careful aim, he flung it. The
pointed missile hissed out across the rippling waves. Standing almost
chest-deep in the water, Garrtail had little chance to dodge or leap out of the
way; it caught him between the eyes. The Captain of the Greenfang fell backward
into the sea, slain instantly. His crew, on seeing their leader dead, milled
about in the water betwixt ship and shore. All heart for the fight had deserted
them now they were without a Captain.
"Ahoy,
Graypatch. Lookit what we found!"
Bigfang
and Kybo came splashing into the shallows with two galley slaves, all four
laden with pikes, long boathooks and bows and arrows. Graypatch snapped out
swift orders, his clever brain working fast.
"Kybo,
you stay here with half the crew as archers. Keep pouring arrows at 'em, hard
as you can —fire high over the pikers. Bigfang, take the other half of the crew
and wade a bit deeper. Stick any of the Greenfang crew who try to get ashore
an' circle behind us. Deadglim, give me yer burnin' glass an' a bow 'n'
arrows."
With
its unanchored keel scraping gently off the sea bottom, the Greenfang began a
slow drift away from shore with the outgoing tide. The crew split two ways,
some trying to swim back to ship, the other, bolder spirits wading toward
shore, yelling as they thrust their swords at the pikerats.
Kybo
and the archers had easy targets, arching their arrows over the top of the
pikers into the unprotected backs of those who were swimming to the ship. Their
122
screams
mingled with the angry yells of those with pitifully short swords, trying to do
battle with long
pikes
and boathooks.
oo
On
shore, Graypatch had soaked rags in lamp oil and bound them around arrowpoints.
In the hot sun it was the work of a moment with a burning glass to concentrate
the sunrays into flame upon oil-soaked rags. Kybo followed behind, carrying the
fire arrows as Graypatch waded out, testing the wind to make sure it was with
him. The first arrow blurred high over the heads of the searats like a red
comet, arcing into the big mainsail of Greenfang. Two others followed swiftly.
One stood quivering in the stern, the other burying itself deep into the mast.
Graypatch
amused himself by firing the remaining fire arrows at the helpless rats who
were still trying to swim for the ship. He laughed aloud as one wretched
creature sank with a sizzle and a scream. All around, the water ran red with
blood as the breeze stirred the flames to a roaring inferno. Bodies of the
wounded and the slain followed the blazing Greenfang out on the ebbing tide.
Graypatch, his single eye illuminated red in the glare, called out, "Make
sure there's none left alive to tell the tale, mates. Haharr, Gabool will never
know what happened to us an' the Darkqueen, or Garrtail an' the Greenfang. D'ye
hear me, Gabool! Blast yer eyes, lungs 'n' liver, wherever ye are!"
As the
searats waded ashore, Bigfang muttered to Kybo, "Graypatch is gettin' too
big fer his seaboots, matey. There'd be no victory today if I hadn't found
those bows an' arrows, mark my words."
Kybo
agreed wholeheartedly, though under his breath. "Aye, did y'see him there,
yellin' an a screamin' to kill Greenfang's crew down t' the last rat? I'll bet
some o' those buckos would've joined us. We all had mateys among that crew, but
they're gone to Hellgates now."
Bigfang
flung his pike upon the sands. "Right you
123
are,
shipmate. I think we've a come out o' the frypan into the fire here. Graypatch
is startin' to act up as wild as Gabool. Did ye hear the way he was yellin' at
me fer drinkin' water earlier? I take that from no searat, Captain or not.
Still, we'll bide our time, eh, matey."
Graypatch
wandered over and slapped Kybo with the flat of his swordblade. "C'mon,
gullywhumper. Back aboard the Darkqueen. We can afford to wait the night
floodtide to send us across the shore now. No more pullin' her on
towropes."
Kybo
turned to look at the last of the Greenfang, wiping smoke from his smarting
eyes as the blazing
hulk
drifted seaward.
oo
Gabool
was in a foul temper. Most of his servant slaves had gone to the galleys of the
three ships under repair, and he was left with only four. Blinking his
red-rimmed eyes, he watched them polishing his bell. The Warlord was afraid of
the night; sleep brought with it only nightmares of avenging mice, fearsome
badger figures and the angry boom of the bell, tolling around his brain like a
harbinger of doom. Virtually alone now in Fort Bladegirt, he did not have the
satisfaction of asserting his power as King of all Searats. There was nobeast
to plot against, to bend to his will, only sitting around waiting and festering
with hate for his one-time ally Graypatch. He aimed a kick at a dormouse who
was down on all fours furiously rubbing away at the great bell.
"You
there, scabpaws. Where's my food?"
The
slave continued polishing, not daring to stop as he replied, "Master, I am
not a cook. You sent the cooks away to your ships. All I do is polish your bell
as you have told me to."
"Get
me something to eat and drink," Gabool snarled. "You're a cook
now."
The
dormouse dropped his rag and bowed,
trem-
124
bling.
"Master, I cannot cook. I am only a bell polisher ..."
Gabool's
cruel claws dug into the slave's body as he drew him upright, glaring at him
through sleepless sore eyes.
"Get
down to the kitchens, and light a fire. You'll find dead seabirds there—roast
me a few, bring wine too. Get out of my sight!"
As the
dormouse picked himself up and scurried off, Gabool vented his spleen on the
remaining three slaves.
"Out!
Get out, all of you! Leave me, I want to be alone."
Gabool
flung a knife at the last dormouse to disappear around the door. It clattered
harmlessly off the wall, and he slumped dejectedly in his chair. "Must be
losin' me touch. Should've pinned him easily."
The
afternoon sun slanting through the window cast its warmth over him. Gabool's
tired eyes began to droop. He sighed as his chin slowly sank onto his chest.
Outside, the sounds of the restless sea grew distant. Finally sleep overcame
the King of Searats; his eyes closed and his head slumped gently forward in the
quiet summer noontide.
A
badger was advancing upon him, a huge warlike badger brandishing a broadsword
that made a searat blade look like a toy. He turned in fear. A mouse had crept
up behind him—it was the one he called Skiv— she was carrying a heavy knotted
rope and the light of battle was in her eyes. Somewhere he could hear Graypatch
laughing, a contemptuous mocking sound . . .
BongW
Gabool
sat bolt upright, wide awake. There was no creature in the room save himself .
. . And the bell.
oo
"Well,
what a riddle t'be sure. I'll bet even Hon Rosie couldn't make head nor tail of
this jolly old thing. Wot, wot?"
125
Mariel
aimed a candied chestnut at Tarquin and threw it. He merely caught it in his
mouth and munched reflectively. "Course, y'know, I've never seen her
solvin' riddles and whatnot. Bet she's bally clever at it, though. Hon Rosie's
pretty good at most things."
Mellus
stuck a huge paw under Tarquin's nose. "Listen, doodlehead, if I hear you
mention Hon Rosie one more time ..."
The
friends sat at table in Cavern Hole. They were not to be disturbed, on the
Abbot's orders. Outside in Great Hall the rest of the Redwallers took supper
and chased reluctant Dibbuns around in an effort to get them washed and up to
their beds. Mariel picked up the scrolls from amid the supper-laden table.
"There's
no puzzle or mystery about it, the whole thing's a straightforward map in
rhyme. Maybe we don't know what certain things are—Fieldroan the Traveler had
an odd way of expressing himself—but don't worry, I'll find out what it all
means as I go along."
Saxtus
helped himself to more mushroom-and-cress soup. "Read it again, Mariel.
Perhaps it may sound clearer if you do."
Mariel
drew a deep breath. "Right, here goes for the tenth time . . .
If I
were fool of any sort, I'd leave Redwall and travel forth, For only fools seek
Terramort Upon the pathway leading north. This trail brings death with every
pace; Beware of dangers lurking there, Sticklegs of the feathered race And fins
that in the ford do stir. After the ford, one night one day, Seek out the otter
and his wife. Forsake the path, go westlands way, Find the trail and lose your
life. When in the woods this promise keep,
126
With
senses sharp and open eyes,
'My
nose shall not send me to sleep'
For
buried ones will surely rise.
Beat
the hollow oak and shout,
'We are
creatures of Redwall!'
If a
brave one is about,
He'll
save any fool at all.
Beware
the light that shows the way,
Trust
not the wart-skinned toad,
In his
realm no night no day.
Fool,
stay to the road.
Where
the sea meets with the shore,
There
the final clue is hid;
Rock
stands sentinel evermore,
Find it
as I did.
The
swallow who cannot fly south,
The
bird that only flies one way,
Lies
deep beneath the monster's mouth,
Keep
him with you night and day.
His
flight is straight, norwest is true,
Your
fool's desire he'll show to you."
Brother
Hubert made a show of polishing his spectacles busily. "Complete
balderdash and nonsense, of course. Fieldroan was, like most old travelers,
given to tall stories and half-truths. The very idea of it! Sticklegs and fins,
otters' wives, sleeping noses and buried ones rising. Huh! Truth was a cuckoo's
egg to that fellow."
Tarquin
left off chewing an enormous turnip 'n' leek pastie. "I say, that's a bit
strong, old boy. What reason would old Fieldroan have to tell a pile of fibs?
Personally I'm inclined to believe the bally poem, even though I can't make
head nor tail of it."
Simeon
touched Mariel's paw. "What do you think, young one? After all, the
decision to travel upon this information is yours."
Mariel
patted the blind herbalist's shoulder. "Thank you, Simeon. I will tell you
what I think. I never knew
127
Fieldroan
so I cannot say if his poem is totally correct, but it is all I have to go on
if I am to reach Terramort, so I will do what the rhyme says to rescue my
father and return the great bell to Lord Rawnblade."
The
Abbot pursed his lips. "But that is not all you intend to do,
Mariel."
The
mousemaid's voice had a ring of determination which no creature could deny.
"I
have only one other thing to do —I must slay Gabool the Wild. None of you can
know the hatred I bear toward this barbarian. He must be sent to Hell-gates so
that decent creatures can live in peace; only then will I rest. I must do this
alone. I thank you my friends for all the kindness and hospitality you have
shown to me, a stranger in your midst. Continue to live, prosper and be happy
in your wonderful Abbey, but do not try to follow me. The responsibility is
mine alone, and I cannot allow any Redwaller to risk life and limb on my
behalf. Now I must sleep. Tomorrow my
journey
begins."
oo
When
the mousemaid had retired to the dormitories, Dandin looked at the friends
around the table in Cavern Hole.
"I
am going with her. She cannot achieve her aims alone."
Mother
Mellus rapped the table. "You'll stay right here at Redwall, Dandin."
The
young mouse turned to the Abbot. There was no change of verdict.
"Dandin,
we are creatures of peace, and also duty. You must obey Mother Mellus. You are
still a very young mouse in our care."
"But
..."
The
Abbot held up a paw in a gesture of finality. "No more arguments, please.
The hour is late and sleep beckons."
t *
Shadows
of drifting nightcloud meandered past the moon. A light breeze made the hot
night more tolerable, and trees rustled and sighed in Mossflower Woods, sending
their whisperings echoing around the stones of Redwall. Simeon sat propped up
by cushions in his armchair near the open window—he seldom slept in bed. It was
sometime after midnight. Unsure of whether he was half awake or half asleep,
the blind herbalist felt a presence in the room.
"Is
that you, Bernard, old friend?" he said softly into the darkness.
The
voice that replied was not that of the Abbot; it was strong, firm and
reassuring, a voice that Simeon instinctively felt he could trust.
"Simeon,
friend, Dandin must go. Mariel needs him."
The
blind mouse felt a light touch against his paw. All around was the scent of
woodland flowers, columbine, wood anemones, bryony, honeysuckle and dog rose.
The voice spoke again.
"The
blood of Gonff flows in Dandin. Mariel needs a friend as I once did. Do not be
afraid, come with me."
Simeon
arose from the chair and left the room, guided by his strange visitor, though
somehow with the odd feeling that none of this was real and he was still
sitting in his chair. Convinced that he was asleep, Simeon decided to settle
back and enjoy the dream.
oo
Down
stairs and down more stairs, along winding and twisting corridors, never
touching the walls as he usually would, yet not putting a paw wrong, as he was
guided by the friendly presence, the blind herbalist practically floated. He
heard a door creak softly as it opened. Gliding through, Simeon sensed that he
was in a rock chamber somewhere deep beneath the Abbey. It was so peaceful and
quiet here, yet wistful, with a breath of summers long gone, and autumn mists
hanging like dried tears. Simeon could not suppress a long
128
129
sigh in
the silent calm of the chamber. Something was pressed into his paws; he felt it
as the voice spoke
again.
"Leave
this with Dandin. Do not wake him—he will
understand."
Drawing
the thing from its long case, the blind herbalist felt it. From the smooth
pommel stone, across the curving hilt and down the perilous blade to the
winter-keen tip, Simeon touched it. He had never felt a sword before, but the
blind mouse knew that had he felt ten thousand swords, none would have been fit
to compare with this one. The balance was perfect—wieldy, yet light as a
feather; dangerous, but safe as a rock to the paw that held it; a blade of
death, yet of destiny and
justice.
Simeon
hardly remembered the journey back. He dimly recalled leaving the sheathed
sword alongside Dandin as he lay sleeping. Then he was back in his armchair,
wide awake, with the cool night breeze wafting on him through the open window,
the woodland flower scent, and a fading voice calling from far off:
"Goodbye, Simeon. May the seasons rest easily upon
you
..."
Simeon
smiled and settled back in his chair as sleep
closed
in on him.
"And
may the peace of Redwall Abbey be upon you,
Martin
the Warrior/'
130
The
sails of the Darkqueen had to be tight furled to avoid overhanging trees.
Oarslaves had been brought up from the galleys, pitiful wretches; they stood on
deck, using the long oars to punt the massive vessel upriver. Graypatch stood
at the helm, supervising the movements, moonlight patching down through the
night foliage upon his lean figure. Floodtide had lifted the Darkcjueen's nose
from the sandbank, and then with a favorable night breeze she had spread sails
and glided across the shore toward the forest-fringed dunes.
oo
Pakatugg
had been following the progress of the ship since he first spotted it offshore
from the dunes. The recluse squirrel had followed along the shoreline and seen
everything, from the near mutiny of Graypatch's crew as they hauled the
Darkqueen, to the murderous encounter with Garrtail and the burning of
Greenfang. Pakatugg was on the scavenge; anything he could steal from the
searats he considered would be his by right. When he saw the ship sailing
across the beach toward the forest, his respect for Graypatch grew—he would
have to treat this searat with some respect. A ship in full sail, gliding over
a beach in the night, what a strange sight!
131
Dawn
was peeping over the treetops to a loud chorus of birdsong when Graypatch chose
an inlet far upriver. With no proper anchorage on the pebbly riverbed, he
ordered Darkqueen made fast by stem, stern and midship ropes to a sycamore and
two elms. Graypatch felt a real sense of triumph as he gave orders.
"Frink,
Deadglim, take Ringtail, Lardgutt, Ranzo an' Dripnose. Patrol this forest
awhile, see what y'can see. There must be life hereabouts—we crossed a path
that was forded by the river durin' the night. There's always somebeast around
to tread that path—might be a settlement of some sort. Anyhow, get your
carcasses movin' an' report back to me at noon. Kybo, Bigfang, Fishgill, you
stay on deck an' keep a weather eye out hereabouts. I'm off t' me bunk for some
rest after steerin' all night. The rest of you, keep your heads down below
decks until we know what sort of country this is."
oo
Pakatugg
tracked the six searats as they patrolled northward through far Mossflower
Woods. He could tell they were raw and inexperienced in woodland matters.
Frink, who was leading the party, walked straight into a bed of stinging
nettles, tripping on an exposed treeroot and falling headlong.
"Yaagh!
Owouch, help me, mates. Ow, oo! These things are alive!"
Lardgutt
and Ranzo pulled him out. He sat nursing a rapidly swelling face and cursing.
"Chahah!
Me nose—look, it's blowin' up like a balloon. Garr! I hate this place—trees
everywhere. A rat can't even take a decent breath. Give me the open sea
anytime."
"Ahoy,
Frink. Over here! Ringtail's been stung by one o' those wasp things."
Deadglim
pulled the dart from Ringtail's paw, catching a glimpse of Pakatugg dodging
behind a tree with his blowpipe as he did. Deadglim inspected the dart and
flung it away.
132
"So
that's what a wasp looks like, huh. We've got some learnin' t' do before we're
proper landlubbers. I'm goin' back to the Darkqueen. You lot carry on with your
patrollin'."
Pakatugg
missed the wink which passed between Deadglim and the other five. The squirrel
followed the remainder of the patrol, sniggering quietly at their ignorance of
woodland lore.
"Hey,
Frink, what d'you suppose these are —strawberries?"
"No,
they're blackberries or raspberries or somethin'. Anyhow, why ask me? I don't
know—don't wanna know either."
"Haha,
why don't you try eatin' one, Lardgutt? Are yer scared mate?"
"Who,
me? 'Course I'm not. Here, watch this."
"How
does it taste, Lardy, me old shipmate?"
"Mmmm,
tastes nice. Wonder what they're called?"
"Deadly
nightshade or somethin' —they're probably poison."
"Yarghphutt!"
"Garn,
what'd you spit 'em out for? If you ate some an' didn't die, then we'd know
they'd be all right to eat. Proper mean to your mates you are, Lardgutt.
Betcher Kybo wouldn't 'ave spat 'em out."
Pakatugg
decided it was time for a wasp sting again. He was chuckling silently to
himself and loading his blowpipe when a tattooed arm circled his neck and a
swordblade pressed against his throat.
"One
move an' yer fishbait, squirrel. We might not know much about forests, but a
searat can sniff the enemy a mile away. Ahoy, lads, lookit what I got!"
They
flocked around; Deadglim, licking his knife-blade and smiling evilly at
Pakatugg. Frink snapped the blowpipe and threw it aside.
"So
it's our wasp, eh. What's yer name, wasp?"
Pakatugg
swallowed hard and tried to stop trembling. "Pakatugg's my name."
133
Frink
twitched his tender nose. "Pakatugg, eh. What'd you call 'im, Ranzo?"
"Hah!
I'd call him Deadsquirrel, or maybe Nopaws. Then again, Slittongue might be an
'andsome title fer a squirrel who follers searats round a-firin' darts at
'em."
They
bound Pakatugg's paws tightly. Dripnose threw a noose about his neck and gave
it a sharp tug.
"Move
lively, matey. We'll see what name Cap'n Graypatch can think up for yeh."
cxo
Clary,
Thyme and Hon Rosie stood to attention in the armory at Salamandastron. Lord
Rawnblade paced up and down, a worried frown creasing his broad brow.
"Longeyes
has reported a smoldering wreck of a ship—Greenfang, it's one of Gabool's.
There may have been trouble farther north up the coast. Clary, I want you to
take your patrol up there, fully provisioned and well armed. Find out what's
been going on and report back to me. But if you are needed up there by any good
creatures, then stay and help out as best you can. Understood?"
Clary
made an elegant salute with his lance. "Leave it to us, sah!"
Rawnblade
allowed himself a fleeting smile. "Thank you, Clary. Move your patrol out
whenever you wish."
oo
The
badger Lord watched them go from his high window. The three hares swiftly
bounded across the beach, sometimes skipping in and out of the small wavelets
at the water's edge. Rawnblade turned back to his forge and quenched a red-hot
spearhead in water. He remembered, long seasons back, three similar hares,
young carefree fighters, their bodies washed up on the tideline after Gabool's
searats had finished with them.
Rawnblade
set the spearhead on the anvil and began beating it with mighty blows. His
heavy hammer rose and fell; sweat mixed with tears and sizzled into the
134
embers
of the forges as the ruler of the fire mountain renewed his vow.
"I
cannot leave my mountain and these shores undefended, but one day, Gabool, one
day you will sail back to here and I will be waiting. Oho, Gabool, all the seas
of the world cannot keep us apart —it is written that we will meet again. We
will meet! We will meet! We will meet!"
Rawnblade
repeated the phrase over and over with each hammer blow upon the spearhead,
releasing his pent-up frustrations. When he finally stopped, the spearblade had
been battered to four times its size and
was
thin as a leaf!
oo
From
the western flatlands fronting the Abbey, a chorus of larks wakened Mariel. She
stood stretching and rubbing her eyes for a brief moment until realization hit
her—it was almost an hour after dawn. The mousemaid slung Gullwhacker around
her neck and opened the door carefully, listening for familiar sounds of Abbey
bustle. Thankfully she noted silence from outside and inside the building.
Stealing quietly down the corridor, Mariel could not help a slight sense of
bewilderment. Usually Redwall was alive and humming by this time. Tip-pawing
through Great Hall, she retrieved the knapsack of supplies she had hidden
behind a column before supper. Thanking her lucky stars, she dashed across the
lawn toward a small wicker gate in the north wall and unbolted it. Taking one
last backward look at the sleeping Abbey, the mousemaid sniffed, wiped her
eyes, took a deep breath and left Redwall with its happy memories behind her.
Flatlands
to the left, woodlands to the right, Mariel strode the brown dusty path that
wound northward. Early dew was drying from the lea already; it was going to be
a hot day. She stayed on the side of the path where Mossflower provided
treeshade. Strange that the Redwallers should sleep so late, she thought.
Still, it
135
was far
better, in a way. Mariel had been dreading any long tearful farewells; it would
be far easier this way, even though she felt rather guilty, stealing off like a
thief in the early dawn. "I, Mariel," the mousemaid called aloud to
Mossflower country, "swear by this honorable weapon known as the
Gullwhacker that one day I will return to Redwall Abbey and all my true friends
and dear companions I leave there. Always providing that I live through the
dangers of the task ahead of me, that is. Oh, and providing of course that I
can find the way back. No, that's nonsense—I'd find my way back if I had only
one leg and the snows were as high as the treetops. But what if I'm slain or I
fail in my quest? Well, in that case I solemnly swear that my spirit will find
its way back to Redwall Abbey. There! That's that. I feel much better now, even
hungry enough for a spot of breakfast."
Without
stopping her march, she munched bread and cheese from the knapsack. A stroke of
luck provided a gnarled apple tree hanging its boughs low over the path, so she
plucked an early russet apple and bit into it, noting her find as a lucky omen
for the journey ahead.
Woodpigeons
cooed within the dimness of woodland depths, bees hummed and grasshoppers
chafed out on the sunlit flatlands. Mariel began skipping, twirling Gullwhacker
at her side, suddenly filled with a sense of freedom and adventure. What better
than to travel alone, eat when you please, rest when you feel the need, camp by
your own little fire at night and sleep snug in some forest glade! The feeling
flooded through her with such force that it made her light-headed, and she
began singing aloud an old playsong, known to mice everywhere.
"The
winter O, the winter O,
With
cold and dark and driving snow,
O not
for me the winter O,
136
My
friend I tell you so.
In
spring the winds do sport and play,
And
rain can teem down anyday,
While
autumn oft is misty gray,
My
friend hear what I say.
When
summer sunlight comes each morn,
The
birds sing sweet each golden dawn,
And
flow'rs get kissed by every bee,
While
shady stands the tree.
The
summer O, the summer O,
Amid
its golden peace I go,
From
noon to lazy evening glow.
My
friend I told you so."
Mariel
held the final note, leaping high in the air and twirling. She came down on the
far side of the path, stumbled and fell. Rolling over, the mousemaid slipped
down the side of the ditch bordering the flatlands.
"Tut
tut, dearie me—leapin' mice, what next? Though I must say, old gel, you held
that last note gracefully. Hon Rosie couldn't have done better. Bear in mind,
though, she wouldn't have dived nose first into the ditch. Not the done sort o'
thing for young fillies. Wot?"
Tarquin
lent a paw to pull Mariel from the ditch. She was completely taken aback at the
appearance of the hare.
"Where
did you come from, Tarquin? I never even heard you following me."
Tarquin
L. Woodsorrel adopted a pose of comical outrage. "Following? Did I hear you
say following, marm? Boggle me ears, I wasn't followin' you, snub-nose, I was
right alongside you, mousy miss. Oh yes, seasons of trainin' y'know. Camouflage
an' all that— dodge an' bob, duck an' weave, disguises too. D'you want to see
me become a daisy or a bally buttercup?"
Mariel
was smiling as she dusted herself off on the pathside, but she chided the
garrulous hare.
137
"Very
clever, Tarquin, but you can't come with melt's far too dangerous."
Tarquin
adjusted the fastenings of an oversized haversack filled to bursting with food.
"Balderdash, young 'un. Absolute piffle and gillyswoggle! I'm goin' my own
way, just keepin' you company on the road to see you don't practice any more
ditch divin'. Come on, step out lively now, leftrightleftrightleitright an' all
that."
Mariel
kept pace with him, jogging to match his lanky stride. "Well, as long as
you know you can't come all the way with me ... but why are we walking so
fast?"
Tarquin
kept on, pawing it out at the double. "Goin' to be late for lunch if we
don't move smartly. Come on now, keep up."
It was
about lunchtime that they rounded a bend in the path to find Dandin awaiting
them with a wild summer salad he had gathered to garnish the bread and cheese,
together with a flask of elderberry cordial he was cooling beneath an
overhanging willow. The young mouse waved to them.
"Hi
there. Good job you made it— another moment or two and I was going to start
without you."
Mariel
placed her paws on her hips, chin jutting out angrily. "What in the name
of fur are you doing here?"
Dandin
smiled disarmingly. "Oh, it's all a bit of a mystery really."
The
mousemaid turned on Tarquin. "And you, how did you know he was here, you
great lolloping flopear? It's a plot, that's what it is. You set this up
between you!"
Tarquin
sprawled on the grass and began constructing a giant cheese and salad sandwich.
"Steady on there, missy, I was waitin' outside the north wicker gate for
you to appear right through the bally night. Then about an hour before dawn
young Dandin here pops out, so I merely told him to get a move on an'
138
we'd
meet him further up the road for a spot of lunch. Rather civilized, don't
y'think?"
Mariel
was fuming with temper, but she plumped herself down and began eating because
the walk had given her an appetite. Through mouthfuls of food she berated the
smiling duo.
"You
can wipe those silly smiles off your whiskers. You are not coming with me,
either of you. Is that crystal clear?"
They
both munched away, smiling and winking at each other as they nodded agreement
with the furious mousemaid.
When
lunch was finished Dandin repacked his knapsack and thrust the marvelous
scabbarded sword into his cord girdle.
"Rightyo,
Tarkers. Let's get moving. I wonder if this pretty mousemaid is going our way.
D'you think she'd like to walk with us?"
"Doubtless,
old lad. We'll string along with her a piece. D'y'know, she's an excellent
ditch diver—you should've seen her this mornin', looped the loop graceful as
y'please, straight into the jolly old ditch on her snout."
Stone-faced
and in high dudgeon, Mariel marched on between them.
Tarquin
and Dandin made perilously light of the situation.
"I
say, Mr. Woodsorrel, that's a strange noise those grasshoppers are making."
"Not
the confounded grasshoppers, laddie buck. Sounds like some wild creature nearby
grindin' their teeth."
"Hmm,
not very good for the old molars, that. Temper, temper! . . . Look out, she's
swinging that knotty rope thing."
By
midafternoon Mariel had simmered down somewhat. She even let slip the odd smile
or giggle at the
139
antics
of her comical traveling companions, and at one point deigned to talk to them.
"It's
getting very hot. What do you say we take a rest in the shade, have a snack and
then push on until dark?"
The
suggestion was well received. They flopped down gratefully with their backs
against a tree-topped oak. When they had eaten, all three napped for a while,
but the long summer day took its toll; what was meant to be a short rest for
hot dusty eyes turned into quite a lengthy sleep.
oo
Dandin
was wakened by a paw across his mouth. He gave a muffled cry as Tarquin hissed
a warning. "Ssshh, not a sound!"
The
young mouse sat up carefully and looked around. Mariel was standing still as a
statue, her Gullwhacker at the ready. The hare bent an ear in the direction of
the woodlands opposite.
"Somebeast
is stalking us," he breathed to them both. "Over there, behind that
yew thicket, I'm sure. Dandin, go with Mariel to the left. I'll take the right.
We'll jump the blighter an' turn the tables in our favor. Go!"
Paw by
paw they crept forward, listening to the rustle of the thicket, where it was
plain some creature was moving about. Skirting to the left, they made out a
dark shape in the shadows. Tarquin yelled out the signal.
"Up
an' at him!"
Throwing
themselves headlong, the three friends pounced upon the miscreant.
"Yow!
Ouch! Whoo! Eeek! Yarrgh! Lerrimgo! Ger-roff!"
Young
Durry Quill watched them as they hopped and leaped about like boiled frogs,
yelling in pain at the spikes, embedded in paws and bodies, that they had
collected from him in their mad plunge. He twitched his nose.
140
"Serves
'ee right fer jumpin' on a young lad like that. Ain't you beasts got no manners
at all?"
Mariel
hopped about in agony and frustration. "Ah ah! You sure you haven't
brought the rest along with you? Ooh ooh! I wouldn't be surprised to see
Mellus, Simeon and the Abbot leap out from behind that hornbeam yonder. How
many more of you are there? Am I taking the whole population of Redwall along
with me? Ow ooch!"
Durry
was quite amused at the idea. "Heehee!" he snickered aloud. "No
no, 'tis only me alone. Now do you stop a leapin' round an' let me get those spikes
out. I'll fix 'ee up, never fear."
They
waited in painful silence as Durry Quill nipped the spikes out with his teeth.
Working smoothly and easily, he made a large wad of dockleaf, wild cloves and
rowan berries.
"'Ere,
rub this on where you be stickled — 'twill ease all pains."
Dandin
was surprised and delighted. It worked like a charm. A short space of time and
it felt as if he had never encountered a hedgehog spike.
Early
evening found them back on the north path, with Durry explaining himself to the
other three travelers.
"My
ol' nuncle Gabe, 'ee wants me to be a cellar 'og. It's a good job, mind, but a
young 'un wants to see summat afore he settles hisself down to a life of
cordial, wine an' ales, ho yes. I 'eard all about it 'ee, Miz Mariel, an' I
couldn't sleep for thinkin' about it. Durry, I says to myself, Durry, a young
'og would be right honnered to tread the roads wi' such a fearless mousemaid.
So I packs me sack, gives you a liddle start— there I tells a whopper, I
overslep' really. Anywise, I follered 'ee, an' 'ere I be, fit as a flea, fat as
a beetle, an' ready fer ought."
They
laughed heartily at the honest and earnest hedgehog.
141
Dandin
pointed up the road. "Look, there's a ford coming up. I can see the sun
glinting off the waters. Hope it's not too deep for us to cross."
Quick
as a flash a big heron flapped down on the path in front of them. His sticklike
legs bent as the long snaking neck curved itself ready for a strike, the fierce
circular eyes contracted and dilated angrily, a dangerous pale yellow beak
pointed down at them.
"Irrrrrraktaan,
this is my waterrrrrrr! Rrrrrrun for yourrrrrr lives. . . . Back! Come near
Irrrrrraktaan's waterrrrr and you die! I am Irrrraktaan, mighty
kil-lerrrrrr!"
142
Graypatch's
eye came close to Pakatugg, and the sea-rat's tone was wheedling, almost
friendly.
"Now
then, matey. You know the lay o' the land 'ereabouts. Don't be afeared of old
Graypatch or none of this riffraff aboard the Darkqueen, you just tell me about
all the snug little berths an' cosy coves in this neck o' the woods."
Pakatugg
felt a little bolder now that the searat Captain had untied his paws and taken
the noose from about his neck, but he was quite nervous about the horde of
grinning searats who lounged on the deck around him. This one called Graypatch,
though, he sounded different—maybe they could talk reasonably. Feeling naked
without his blowpipe and darts, Pakatugg did his best to muster up a commanding
tone.
"There's
not much at all in this region. You've come to the wrong place. Far north's
where you want to be, that's where all you types usually land."
Graypatch
bent his head to one side and winked at the squirrel. "Aharr, is that so?
What scurvy luck fer us, eh? Still, never you mind, we've landed up here, an'
here we'll stay. Now I'll ask you again, messmate, nice an' polite as you
please. I want somewhere with
peace
an' plenty to settle down. Now where
d'you suppose that'd be?"
Pakatugg
mistook Graypatch's reassuring manner for weakness, and he decided to take a
firm line with this ragamuffin rat and his tawdry bunch. After all, the hares
always did it and creatures took notice of them.
"Look,
I've told you once, you're wasting your time around here. Up north is much better
for vermin like you!"
Still
smiling, Graypatch kicked him in the stomach, knocking him to the deck. Looping
a rope around Paka-tugg's footpaws, he rasped out an order:
"Haul
away, buckos!"
Pakatugg
swung upside-down in midair, suspended above the deck as a gang of searats
yanked him higher and higher on the rope.
Graypatch
shook his head sadly. "Did y'hear that, mates? He called us vermin!"
Pakatugg
swallowed hard and closed his eyes as he heard weapons being drawn.
The
searat Captain squinted his good eye at the hanging squirrel. "Have ye
ever fed the fishes, squirrel?"
"N-No.
What d-do you f-feed 'em on?"
A harsh
roar of laughter went up from the crew. Graypatch drew his sword.
"What
do we feed 'em on? Why, you of course. Those liddle fishes'd be right partial
to squirrel carved up into tasty strips."
He
slashed at the end of the rope, which was secured to the mast. Pakatugg came
down on the deck with a bump. Graypatch drew a curved dagger from his belt.
Using his sword blade like a butcher's steel, he rubbed them together, putting
a fine edge to the dagger blade. He grabbed the squirrel by the ear and
brandished the dagger with a fearsome yell.
"Start
from the top and work down to the tail—that's the best way!"
"No,
wait!
There's an Abbey not
far from here.
144
They've
got it all. Food, shelter, plunder—the lot! Spare me, please!"
Graypatch
put up his weapons and aimed a kick at the blubbering squirrel. '"Ere,
Ringtail, Dripnose, take 'im below an' put 'im in chains. Don't be too gentle
now, and don't feed the slug too well. When I'm ready he'll take us to this
Abbey place. Ain't that right, squirrel?"
Pakatugg
nodded vigorously, his tears staining the
deck.
oo
Colonel
Clary, Brigadier Thyme and Hon Rosie had stopped near the sand dunes to take
refreshment and a short rest. Clary was lying back, voicing his thoughts to the
other two.
"No
trouble so far, wot? Longeyes must have spotted the burnt-out ship a bit
further up the coast. We'll patrol further up and camp on the jolly old
seashore tonight — might even try a shellfish stew, eh, Rosie? Long time since
you've cooked one. If we don't catch sight of any bother by tomorrow afternoon
late, we'll head back to Salamandastron."
There
was a whooshing noise and a trident buried itself in the sand not a
paw's-length from Thyme.
"Ears
down, chaps! Attack!"
Throwing
themselves flat facing three directions, the long patrol started instinctively
pushing the sand around them into a barrier. The croaking of countless
natterjacks filled the dunes.
"Dig
your slings and stones out, too many for lances," Clary called to his
companions. "By the left! This is all we need, that villain Oykamon and
his slimy mob attackin' us when we're out on a mission. By the right, center
and by the cringe, I'll show 'em!"
Hon
Rosie slung a flat pebble at a toad charging over the hill. It connected with a
splat, knocking the toad out like a light. "Whoohahahahoohah!" she
whooped. "That bagged the blighter. I'm pretty fair at slingin'. I'll
145
get
that big fat rogue, you watch. Whoohahahahoohah! Good shot, Rosie!"
Thyme
waggled a paw in his ear between launching off missiles. "Stone me, Rosie.
You could scare 'em all off with that pesky laughin' of yours."
"Whoohahahaoohah!
You are a card, Thyme, no mistake. Watch that feller to your left! Oh, never
mind, I'll lay him out. Howzat, middle an' stump!"
Clary
got two toads with one of his special bouncing shots. "Corks! I say, there
must be squillions of the reptiles. We're goin' to run out of stones before
they run out of soldiers, I suspect."
Thyme
banged the heads of two venturesome toads who had climbed the barricade, and
they both fell back senseless.
"One
thing you can say about big chief Oykamon — he keeps his word. He said he'd be
back with a full complement. We're on a sticky wicket, Clary old lad. Any
ideas?"
Colonel
Clary glanced up at the sky before launching off another stone. "Funny you
should say that, Thyme. Matter of fact, I've come up with a pretty good wheeze,
actually. It'll soon be evenin'. Now the minute it starts gettin' darkish, keep
your eyes peeled for a sight of the old arch baddie himself, Oykamon. Rosie,
you're the best shot—choose yourself a jolly good big pebble. I want him
knocked out cold. That'll upset the lads of the sandhills, and they'll prob'ly
crowd round to see if he's dead. Then we'll make a run for it, go straight for
the sea, just about paw-deep, and keep goin' north. Toads aren't too fussy on
salt water, so they'll give up following us if we sprint fast enough. How's
your throwin' paw, Rosie old gel?"
"Top-hole.
Don't fret, Clary. I'll put the old bandit asleep until this time next season.
Now let's see, which is m' biggest stone? Oh, this one's rather pretty, nice
little sticky-out bits. Whoohahahahoohah!"
Luck
was on the side of the long patrol that evening,
146
and
Clary's plan ran true to form. Illuminated by two lanterns, Oykamon appeared
atop a nearby dune, his bulging throat pulsating in and out as he bellowed.
"Krroikl!
You were warned, longears. Now you will die knowing the power and might of
Oykamon. Krrrikk!"
Hon
Rosie popped up, twirling the large rock in her slingshot. "Shall I bowl
him a googly, Clary?"
"Certainly,
Rosie old gel. Shut the fat blighter up."
The
rock flew straight and hard, whacking Oykamon with a force that sent him head
over webs. Clary and Thyme's slings took the lantern holders out. Immediately,
the dunes and shore became a mass of natterjacks. Croaking and clicking with
dismay, they hopped speedily over to their fallen leader. The hares of the long
patrol were up and gone with a turn of speed that would have left a hunting
hawk flabbergasted.
They
splashed along the shoreline in the failing light, a red bronze sun turning the
wavelets to liquid gold as they skimmed and bounced.
"Excellent
shot, Rosie. An absolute bull's-eye, wot!"
"Rather.
He did a full double backflip when that rock beezed him."
"Oh,
d'you think so? Thanks awfully, chaps. Whoohahahahoohah!"
Dandin
spread his paws wide. "Back off. This bird means business!"
Mariel
sprang forward. The heron struck, and she dodged sideways, narrowly getting
clear of the huge pointed beak, which left a deep dent in the path.
"Mariel
get back, he'll kill you," Dandin yelled.
The
heron hopped in on spindly legs, flapping his wide wings and screeching,
"Irrrraktaan will spearrrrr your hearrrrrt! Irrrrraktaan knows no
fearrrr!"
Mariel
rolled over and over, keeping a fraction ahead of the murderous stabbing beak.
A movement caught Iraktaan's quick eye, and he glanced to one side. There
147
was
Durry Quill, rolling past him in a tight ball. The heron struck at the
hedgehog, but his beakpoint encountered a hard spike and bounced back with a
pinging noise.
The
moment's breathing space was all Mariel needed. She whirled Gullwhacker and
struck Iraktaan across the legs, right on the narrow knee joints. The knotted
rope wrapped round the heron's legs several times. He tried to move but crashed
to the ground. Immediately, Tar-quin was there. He sat across the middle of
Iraktaan's neck. Before the great bird could start flapping its wings, Dandin
passed the remainder of the rope across them and stood on the rope's end. Durry
Quill tugged and chewed at some bindweed, snapping several lengths off.
'"Ere,
tie that burd up wi' some o' this."
Tarquin
grabbed a strand and wound it round and round the clacking beak. Dandin took
the rest and hobbled Iraktaan's legs securely, passing it through the joint of
one wing and knotting it off. Breathing heavily, they stood up. Mariel
disengaged Gullwhacker from the heron's legs and whirled it close to the bird's
head.
"Be
still! Be still, I say, or I'll scramble your silly brains!"
The
heron's eyes rolled madly, but he lay still, feathers in disarray, hissing and
blowing through his fearsome beak. Dandin unsheathed the sword of Martin and
placed the point at Iraktaan's crop.
"When
we are gone, you will be able to free yourself. But hear what I say, Iraktaan.
Follow us, and I will slay you with this sword. It has taken more lives than
there are feathers on your body. I am Dandin the Sword Carrier, and you can
believe my word. We wish only to cross the ford in peace. Stay where you are,
wait until we are gone, then loose yourself."
Iraktaan
wriggled a bit and made stifled noises but they ignored him. The ford appeared
neither too wide or deep, but with masses of long trailing weeds waving
148
beneath
the surface. Tarquin took a few paces back as if he were going to rush at it
with a hop, leap and jump. "Wish me luck, chaps. Here goes!"
Dandin
stood barring his path. "Wait, Tarquin. Remember the old saying, look
before you leap?"
"Of
course, old lad. Well, I've bally well looked, and now I'm goin' to jolly well
leap ..."
"Oh
no you're not!"
"I
say, Dandin, you've become rather bossy since you started wearin' that blinkin'
sword. 'My name is Dandin the Sword Carrier,' eh? Righto, give me one good
reason why I shouldn't leap, and I shan't."
Dandin
recited the words of the poem which he had memorized.
"This
trail brings death with every pace; Beware of dangers lurking there, Sticklegs
of the feathered race And fins that in the ford do stir.
Well,
as you can see, we've already met the sticklegs— Iraktaan took care of that.
Our next hazard is fins that in the ford do stir. Let's try out an idea before
we attempt crossing."
Together
they went to the water's edge. Dandin took a crust of bread from his knapsack
and tossed it into the ford. It drifted on the surface of the water. They stood
watching the bread. Like a small golden-crusted boat, it moved slowly
downstream on the calm river.
Durrey
did not seem too impressed. "My old nun-cle'd say that there's a waste o'
good food."
Quick
as a lightning flash, a mighty silver black-banded body whooshed out of the
weeds. There was an explosion of water, a gleam of needlelike teeth, a huge
splash, and the ford returned to its former calm.
Durry
Quill grabbed hold of Mariel's sleeve tightly. "Sufferin' spikes, what
were that?"
Tarquin
sat down in the dust looking decidedly shaky. "Pike, old lad. An absolute
whopper. A fish like
149
that'd
rip you up as soon as look at you. Dandin, I'm never backward in comin'
forward—you were right."
Dandin
was pacing the ford edge. "Look, there's more than one, much more."
Peering
carefully into the reeds, they were able to make out at least eight of the
long, sleek bodies. Nose-on to the current, they backed water, fully grown, hook-jawed
and totally dangerous.
Mariel
sat down with Tarquin. "Time for thinking caps. Glad you came with me,
after all!"
They
sat in silence, watching the setting sun sink beneath the trees. Durry Quill
drew patterns in the dust. "Mayhap we need a bridge."
Tarquin
snorted. "Right you are, let's start buildin' one right away. Shouldn't
take us long—middle of next season, with a bit of luck."
Durry
snorted back at him. "If brains was bees, there'd be no honey between your
ears. Why, from where I'm a sittin' I can see a great dead tree lirnb among yon
bushes. What's to stop us usin' it as a bridge?"
The
hare stood up, bowing gracefully to the young hedgehog. "Profuse apologies
an' all that, young master Quill. Forgive me. The excellence of your suggestion
is only surpassed by your good looks and keen intelligence."
oo
Placed
across the ford, the thick, dead tree limb looked wobbly and unsafe. As Mariel
tested it she noted the position of the voracious pike.
"See,
the fish have come out of the weeds. They're all waiting both sides of our
bridge, just beneath the surface. We'd better not put a paw wrong crossing that
thing."
Mariel
decided that she would go first. Stepping onto the branch, she wound
Gullwhacker about her neck and held her paws wide to give herself a bit of
stability. The mousemaid paced forward carefully, the branch
150
shaking
slightly beneath her tread. Hungry pike nosed closer, their underslung jaws
agape as they watched her.
"Don't
look down, Mariel," Dandin called out. "Keep your eyes straight ahead
on the other side. You're doing fine!"
Now she
had reached the center, the branch dipped slightly, its underside touching the
water. A pike butted the branch with its curving mouth, causing it to wobble
dangerously. Mariel went down on all fours, gripping the bridge firmly. She
waited until it ceased moving then scampered across swiftly, leaping the final
part and landing safe on the other side of the ford.
"Well
crossed, young mouse, well crossed, I say. Who's next?"
Dandin
elected to try, with Mariel sitting on one end of the makeshift bridge and
Tarquin holding the other end down. Dandin held the sword in both paws,
straight out in front; it helped to balance him. The young mouse had a
surprising natural agility. Despite the pike nosing against the branch, he made
it across with ease, even leaping ashore with a fancy twirl of the sword.
Tarquin
nudged Durry Quill. "Your turn, old chap."
The
young hedgehog blinked his eyes and gulped. "If I turns out t' be a fish's
supper, tell my old nuncle Gabriel that I love him dear an' I was a-thinkin' of
him even as I was bein' ate. Ah well! C'mon, Durry. Brace up, Quill. If y'don't
try now, y'never will."
With
these few poetic lines, Durry scuttled out across the branch on all fours. It
shook and wobbled furiously. The others held their breath, not wanting to call
out advice lest they should upset him. The hedgehog was at the center of the
bridge when a monstrous pike hurled itself clear of the water, arching its
sinuous body as it slammed forcibly into the branch. Durry plopped off into the
ford, yelling as the pike closed in on him, "I'm a-thinkin' of 'ee, Nuncle
Gabe. Heeeeeelp!"
151
"Eulaliaaaaa!"
Tarquin
L. Woodsorrel came tearing out along the branch, half in and half out of the
water, the branch flopping up and down madly into the ford. Grabbing Durry by
the snout, he swung him clear of the pike's jaws. Kicking one pike savagely and
braining another with his harolina, the hare carried straight on with his mad
dash. He sprinted out of the water with Durry held tight, a damaged harolina,
and a big female pike latched onto him, its teeth sunk into his bobtail.
Tarquin let go of Durry and performed a mad war dance on the bank.
"Yahwoo!
Leggo, y'beast, leggo!"
Mariel
twirled Gullwhacker and struck the pike, batting it with all her might. It
separated from Tarquin's tail and shot through the air, landing in the ford
with an awkward splosh.
"Hooray!"
Durry cheered. "I ain't ate, and we're all safe 'n' dry."
"Hah,
I'm glad you're pleased, young Quill. Look at me! A chunk of m' bottom and half
a tailbob missin'. What'll Hon Rosie say when she sees my handsome form
disfigured?"
They
made camp in a forest glade farther up the road as night fell. Mariel and
Dandin setting out the supper, Tarquin repairing his harolina, whilst Durry
Quill put together one of his sovereign poultices for the hare's nether end.
Mariel conversed quietly with her friend as they sat eating.
"Dandin,
where did you get that beautiful sword?" "You'd never believe if I
told you, Mariel, but it came to me in a dream."
"A
dream? Surely you're not serious ..."
"Oh,
but I am. Strange, though. I dreamed I saw a
mouse
in full armor. He just stood there, watching me
and
smiling. I felt so peaceful and friendly and at ease
with
him, it was wonderful. He said to me, 'Dandin,
152
go with
Mariel.' Just those four words, then he took his sword and scabbard and laid
them at my side. I knew it was only a dream, a dream which I wanted to last
forever, but it didn't. When I woke before dawn, there were the sword and
scabbard by my side. It must have been the spirit of Martin the Warrior—he
founded our Abbey. Martin is guardian of Redwall. They say he comes whenever the
Abbey or its creatures are in danger. I always thought it was just a nice
story, until he visited me. I'll never forget it, Mariel."
The
mousemaid crumbled a piece of bread and watched the ants bearing the fragments
away, her face a strange picture of wonderment.
"As
you were speaking, Dandin, I remembered. It all came back. I dreamed of your
Martin last night. He was just as you described him, a wonderful brave figure.
He said: 'Be brave, Mariel. Follow your heart's desire.' He was there in my
dreams one moment and gone the next. I know what you mean when you say you'll
never forget. I was so sad when he disappeared."
"Anybeast
want more soup? If not, I'll just have what's left in the pot t' keep me goin'
through the old night watches, wot? I say, Dandin, can you recall the next part
of that rhyme thingummy?"
The
young mouse thought of his friend Saxtus as he spoke the lines.
"After
the ford, one night, one day, Seek out the otter and his wife. Forsake the
path, go westlands way, Find the trail and lose your life."
Durry
sniffed as he beat Tarquin to the last of the soup. "Lackaday, that sounds
cheerful, don't it? I wonder who the otter 'n' his wife be."
Night
closed in on the few red embers of the campfire in the glade as the travelers lay
to rest, Tarquin with his harolina, Durry with a well-licked soup bowl, Mariel
153
with
her Gullwhacker and Dandin with the strange ancient sword of Martin the
Warrior.
154
Orgeye
of the Waveblade had dropped anchor in Terra-mort cove earlier that same
evening. Confining his crew to shipboard, he strode up to Fort Bladegirt, aware
of the reception he would receive coming back empty-clawed. Gabool was in a
murderous mood; even the slaves were hiding and dared not attend him. The King
of the Searats had gone past sleeping. His eyes were completely blood-red, but
he quivered with a furious nervous energy, roaming the banqueting hall,
drinking wine straight from the flagon. Orgeye walked in without knocking.
Gabool did not acknowledge him at first, but strode about shouting, "Look!
. . . Look at this, half-cooked seabird still with the feathers hanging from
it!"
He
hurled the silver platter, splattering food across the walls.
"Not
a slave to look after my needs. Me, the Ruler of all Seas! Wine? This tastes
more like vinegar. They're tryin' to poison me. That's it! They can't get me
while I'm asleep because I won't go to sleep. . . . No sleep . . . No rest for
Gabool ..."
He
appeared to notice Orgeye for the first time. "Saltar! No, it can't be—I
slew him. Haharr, it's Orgeye, my old grogmate. Belay there, I knew you
wouldn't let
155
Gabool
down. I knew out of all those slopbacks you'd be the one to bring me back the
Darkqueen an' Grey-patch's mangy skull!"
Orgeye
moved away until the big table was between him and the Warlord. "Gabool,
listen. I scoured the seas to the far west from here and past the horizon. I
searched the bare rocks and small islands until I ran short of vittles an'
water for the crew an' meself. There's no sign of Graypatch at all. Wherever
he's taken the Darkqueen to, we'll never find him, on my oath!"
The
flagon narrowly missed Orgeye. It smashed upon the door, cascading blood-red
wine everywhere. Gabool looked madly about for something else to throw.
"Garrr!
You lyin' traitor, you useless mud-suckin' scum. If you couldn't find him
west'ard, you should have sailed south."
Orgeye
was backing toward the door. He did not want to be in the same room with this
mad creature.
"Hold
fast there, Gabool. Take it easy. I only put in to Terramort for fresh
provisions. You say go south — right, then I'll take the Waveblade on a
southern course, soon as I've taken fresh vittles aboard."
Gabool
drew his sword and advanced, foaming at the mouth. "Vittles, you bottlenosed
trash. Vittles? I'll give ye vittles, bucko. I'll carve yer tripes out and feed
'em to your scurvy crew. Set course south an' gerrout o' me sight. You don't
get a crust o' my bread or a drop of water until you bring me the Darkqueen an'
Graypatch's head!"
Orgeye
barely had time to slam the door and run. Gabool was tugging and pulling as he
cursed, and his sword was buried deep in the heavy oak door. Behind him the
bell tolled once. He heaved the sword blade from the door and came at the bell.
"Silence,
d'ye hear me! Silence! Boomin' an' bongin' away night an' day so a body can't
even sleep. I'll teach yer a lesson!"
156
Two
dormouse slaves peering through a crack in the door watched fascinated as the
King of Searats attacked a bell with his sword. The bell clashed and clanged as
Gabool hammered at it, both claws gripping his curved blade. The one-sided
fight could have only one possible outcome. The sword blade snapped against the
great bell and Gabool lay facedown upon the stone floor, panting and sobbing as
the metallic echoes of the bell swirled around the banqueting hall.
The
dormouse slave turned to his companion. "Did you see that?"
"Aye,
that I did. It looks like His Majesty is two waves short of a tide. Whoever saw
a rat fight a bell?"
"Right,
mate. And look, he lost. The great Gabool's cryin' on the floor like a baby
squirrel who's lost his acorns. Hahahaha!"
The
laughter rang through into the hall as the two slaves fled back into hiding.
Gabool
gritted his teeth at the bell. "Go on, laugh, yer great brazen lump. Laugh
away, but next time I'll
get a
bigger sword!"
oo
Abbot
Bernard sat at late supper with Simeon, Mellus and Gabriel Quill. Foremole
wandered in and sat picking at the barely touched food on the table.
"Burr,
maisters. No news of 'ee young 'uns, then?"
Simeon
felt the round firmness of an apple as he polished it on his sleeve. "No
news as yet, Foremole. But don't worry, they've got everything on their
side-youth, health, strength and a sense of adventure. I wish that I were with
them, old as I am."
Mother
Mellus tapped the table fretfully. "I wish I were with them, too. I'd tan
that Dandin's hide until he turned blue, the disobedient little wretch. That's
all the thanks you get for looking after them, caring, worrying when they're
ill. What about that scallywag nephew of yours, Gabe Quill?"
"Well,
he fair shocked me, I can tell 'ee. Young Durry
157
were
always a quiet sort of 'og, good worker too. If you were to ask me I'd say as
'ee were led astray by that Storm Gullywhacker. My word, she's a wild 'un fer a
liddle mouse, that she is."
"If
the three were gone together then I think it is for the best."
Mother
Mellus pushed aside her plate. "How can you say that, Simeon?"
"Because
either Dandin or Mariel has the spirit of Martin the Warrior walking alongside
them, though I am not sure which one it is."
Abbot
Bernard looked thankfully toward his friend. "Well, bless the seasons!
Tell me more of this, friend Simeon."
Mellus,
ever the big practical badger mother, stood up from the table. "I'm off to
my bed, can't stop around here all night with young 'uns missing and you lot
yarning away bout long-dead warriors. Martin or no Martin, first thing tomorrow
I'm putting that big otter, wotsisname, Flagg, out on their trail. He'll bring
the rascals back!"
When
she had gone, blind Simeon began recounting his strange but wondrous
experience.
"It
happened last night as I sat dozing in my chair by the window. Oh, pour me some
October ale, will you, Gabe—my throat's a bit dry."
Somewhere
out in the darkness a young blackbird chirruped as its mother drew it under her
wing against the all-enveloping night.
oo
Dawn
broke gray with an unexpected shroud of drizzling rain. The four travelers were
abroad early, continuing their northward trek upon the path. The flat-lands to
the west had been left behind after the ford, now the forest closed in either
side of the path.
"Pretty
good this, wot? The jolly old trees leaning over are like an umbrella, dontcha
think?"
Durry
shook himself. "No I don't, if tain't churnin'
158
up the
path into mud this rain is a drippin' off those trees onto the back of 'ee
neck. Still, as my old nuncle allus says, if it be rainin' then there do be water
pourin' from the sky."
Mariel
smiled and winked at Tarquin. "A wise fellow, your old uncle."
Durry
nodded in innocent agreement. "Oh aye, Nuncle Gabe's never short of wise
sayin's. There do be no better way o' eatin' than with 'ee mouth, a full
barrel's not an empty 'un, an' 'ee can allus tell a squirrel by his tail."
Tarquin
chuckled as he tuned his harolina. "Hmm, that makes sense."
Durry
sniffed. "A course it do. Bet you never see'd a squirrel wi'out one o'
those lollopin' great bushy tails, did you?"
"Er,
ah, no, don't s'pose I did, really."
"There,
that goes to show 'ee then. You can allus tell a squirrel by his tail, jus'
like my nuncle says."
Dandin
kept in close to the pathside. "The rain's getting heavier."
There
was a distant roll of thunder, lightning illuminated the sky. As they trudged
on Durry whispered to Dandin, "Lookit, Mariel's dropped back. Tears to me
she's shiverin' an' un'appy about summat."
They
hurried back to Mariel. She was clutching herself, rain dripping from her face
and paws, shivering as she faltered along the path.
Dandin
looked worried. "Mariel, what's the matter with you?"
The
mousemaid leaned against a spruce tree. "Thunder, the rain and the
lightning. . . . Reminded me of being thrown in the sea by Gabool . . .
Terramort, my father ..."
Tarquin
took charge. "Golly, you look like a whitewashed duck, old thing. Here,
Dandin, lend a paw. We'll get her under some dry trees and light a fire, she'd
better rest up until this lot clears."
159
Slightly
off the path on the east side they found a fir grove. Durry dug a shallow pit
and kindled a small fire with dead branches and dry pine needles. With her back
against a fir, Mariel sat dozing, soaking in the warmth of the fragrant dry
atmosphere. Beyond the trees the rain pounded hard against the path, sending up
brown splotches as it churned the dust to mud. Durry brewed some sage and mint
tea, and they sipped the steaming liquid gratefully.
About
halfway through the morning Dandin became aware that they were being watched by
something crouching in the grass on their left. Slowly he unsheathed the sword,
signaling with his eyes to Tar-quin and Durry. All three rose quietly and moved
toward the long grass until they could see the watcher.
It was
a large snake!
Dandin
had never seen a snake before, though he had heard many stories at Redwall of
the dangerous poisonteeth. He felt a shiver convulse his whole body at the
sight of the slithering coils, the flickering tongue and the twin beads of cold
ruthlessness of the reptile's eyes. It came clear of the long grass, hissing
and weaving its head from side to side as it menaced them. Dandin unsheathed
his sword, whispering to Tarquin, "What do we do now? It looks very
dangerous."
The
hare took the nearest weapon to paw, his haversack of food. He stood at ease,
swinging it experimentally as he replied, "Nothing to worry about really,
old bean. See those black markings on the thing's back? Well, that's supposed
to be an adder. Camouflage, I think—the bally creature's a bit small for an
adder, take my word, laddie. There's lots of harmless grass snakes who mark
themselves up with plant dyes an' whatnot, just so travelers like you an' I
will think they're adders an' become frightened of 'em."
Dandin
kept his sword pointed at the serpent's head. "D'you think so,
Tarquin?"
'"Course
I do, old son," the confident hare snorted.
160
"The
blighter's a fraud, a blinkin' charlatan. Right then, you dreadful snake
thingy. Move out or I'll brain you on the bonce with this havvysack, d'you
hear?"
The
snake, however, had other ideas. It had fixed its reptilian stare on Durry
Quill and was gliding slowly toward him. Durry stood rooted to the spot,
trembling and unable to move under the hypnotic spell of the reptile's evil
eyes.
oo
Sitting
in a half-slumber, Mariel gradually noticed that some creature was talking to
her. She opened her eyes partially and saw the armor-clad figure of the dream
mouse warrior whom Dandin had called Martin. His voice was strong and stern.
"Mariel,
rise up, your friends are in danger. Rise up, Mariel!"
The
mousemaid's eyes snapped open. She took in the situation at a single glance.
Throwing caution to the winds, she acted swiftly.
The
snake's eyes were fixed on Durry as Mariel grabbed her Gullwhacker. With a mad,
silent dash and a mighty leap the mousemaid jumped clear over the snake's head,
bringing the knotted rope down with a mighty crack on the reptile's flat head
as she traveled through the air. The snake instantly dropped like a limp piece
of cord, stunned by the sudden impact of the blow.
"Durry,
are you all right? Durry, speak to me!"
The
young hedgehog blinked and rubbed his eyes as Dandin flung a beaker of cold
sage and mint tea into his friend's face.
"Phwaaw!
I'd sooner be in yon ford wi' pikes than lookin' at that bad thing. I don't
reckon that were no grass snake."
Tarquin
took a quick close look at the snake, which was beginning to recover speedily.
"Nor
do I, old fellah. Still, a chap's allowed a mistake
161
or two,
wot? The bally thing's a real adder! Oh, not a fully grown one, I'll grant you,
but nevertheless ..."
Dandin
grabbed the hare, shoving him out upon the rain-spattered path. "Quick,
let's get out of here. We're not stopping to argue with an adder. Come on, the
rain'll put those fire embers out."
Grabbing
their packs, they dashed out of the grove onto the path, stumbling and
squelching as the snake's angry hiss sounded behind them.
oo
Mariel
felt much better as she ran alongside her companions. Pounding along the muddy
path with the rain bouncing off them, they kept up a breakneck pace until they
were certain the adder was far behind them. Farther along the road they halted,
heads bowed, panting and blowing as they fought to regain their breath. Dandin
glared at Tarquin. "Don't ever do that again, friend."
Tarquin
shrugged nonchalantly. "Sorry, old bean. How was 11' know?"
Durry
shuddered. "You should've chopped offen its head wi' that sword when you
'ad the chance, Dandin."
Mariel
shook her head. "No, we do not need unnecessary killing, Durry. As long as
we are safe and in one piece, the adder has a right to life, the same as any
creature."
oo
By
early afternoon the black cloud had shifted. The rain halted abruptly and a
warm wind chased broken white clouds across a blue sky considerably brightened
by the sun. The companions took food upon the path, walking as they ate. Steam
and vapor rose from their wet fur and clothing as they tramped northward.
Durry's spirits rose, even to performing a passable imitation of Tarquin's
flippant attitude.
"Ho,
I say, old bean, be that a wood pigeon or a great eagle? Blow me, I do believe
it's carryin' me off over the jolly ol' treetops to eat me all up. Ho dearie
162
me, I
don't s'pose it's a wood pigeon. Must've made a jolly ol' mistake, wot
wot?"
Tarquin
took the ragging in his carefree stride.
"Well,
roast my aunt's chestnuts, was that a hedgehog or a noisy pincushion? No, it
couldn't be. I s'pose it was a jolly old talkin' gooseberry, bit too spiky to
bake in a pie, so somebeast slung it out onto the path and it's followin'
us."
Mariel
looped Gullwhacker swiftly about Tarquin's shoulders. "Look out, it's an
adder just dropped out of a tree!"
"Yaaagh!
Whoohooh! Don't do that, miss. You frightened me half t' death."
Dandin
had been watching the way ahead. He pointed forward. "Look, there's the
otter and his wife!"
Durry
kept up his banter. "No tain't, it's the frog an' his gran'father."
But
Dandin was sure of what he could see. "Stop fooling around, Durry. Can't
you see? Look on the left side of the path further on—it is the otter and his
wife."
Mariel
smiled. "Yes, you're right, Dandin, though I never thought the otter and
his wife would look like that!"
163
18
It was
an ill-tempered and pawsore crew that blundered their way through Mossflower
led by Pakatugg, whom Graypatch prodded ahead of them by swordpoint. Far behind
them the Darkqueen lay hidden in the creek.
Bigfang
as usual was voicing his thoughts aloud. "We could be traipsin' anywheres,
mates. I reckon we're lost. Leavin' Darkqueen deserted like that. Me an' Kybo
or any couple of us could have stayed back as sentries. I tell yer, mates, it's
a bad omen, us lost out 'ere in the forest an' Darkqueen wi'out a guard to
watch her."
Graypatch
gritted his teeth. Pushing the reluctant hedgehog pathfinder forward, he called
back, "That loudmouth sounds like Bigfang again. Don't worry, matey, I can
hear ye. If you like to go back an' mount sentry on Darkqueen, don't let me
stop yer. Take Kybo too, if ye've a mind. Aye, y'can laze about on the ship's
deck while yer messmates do all the marchin' an' fightin' for you. Is that what
ye want?"
Bigfang
knew he was trying Graypatch's patience, but he continued, hoping for some
support from the rest of the searats.
"It's
not like the open sea, messmates. This filthy jungle's so thick you can't tell
thither from yon. Aye, I
164
still
reckons we're lost. An' it ain't right leavin' our only ship undefended
..."
Graypatch
tugged on the halter around Pakatugg's neck, bringing him up sharp. His single
eye glared so hard at Bigfang that the complaining searat took a step back.
Graypatch's
tone was dangerously level. "Right, bucko, get back to the ship. Go on,
take two more with yeh. If one o' Gabool's craft sailed up that creek fully
crewed, what d'yer think three, or even four, could do against it, eh? Nothin'!
Not a thing, addlebrain. The snip's safe layin' hidden in that backwater;
nobeast is goin' to find her. I need every fightin' rat I've got for what lays
ahead. Now get marchin', afore I cuts yer adrift an' leaves you for lost in
these woods. One more word from ye, Bigfang, that's all. Just one peep!"
Unaccustomed
to the foreign woodland, the crew stumbled on for the remainder of the day,
insect-bitten and nettlestung, thrashing at the undergrowth with dagger and
cutlass. Graypatch led his sullen band, whilst muttering dire threats to
Pakatugg on the consequences of leading them astray.
oo
Evening
shades were drawing close as Graypatch and his crew sighted Redwall Abbey. The
searat Captain tugged sharply on the rope halter, dragging the miserable
Pakatugg back from the path into the cover of Mossflower Woods. Graypatch
pricked the squirrel's chin with his dagger tip.
"So
that's Redwall Abbey, eh, mate. You did well. I don't reckon there'd be as cozy
a berth within a season's march of here."
Bigfang
hefted a spear. "Come on, let's rip 'em apart an' take the place."
Kybo
and the others moved forward, weapons at the ready. As Bigfang took up the lead
position, Greypatch tripped him. He fell heavily, half rising to find
Grey-patch's sword edge at his throat.
165
"Didn't
take yer long to vote yerself in as Captain round 'ere, did it, Bigfang?"
"You
said it was a cozy berth. Let's take it, less'n you're scared."
Graypatch
kicked Bigfang flat on his back, his single eye watching the rebellious crewrat
scornfully.
"Careful
isn't scared, mate. I'm careful. Who knows how many are behind those walls, or
what manner of creatures they are. All that's got to be found out, then we'll
have the measure o' them. Now take you, Bigfang. You're not scared, are yer,
bucko? No, you're stupid! Thick'eaded an' dimwitted, that's you. Harken, you
scum. Anyone wants to challenge me as Cap'n, let that rat do it now an' we'll
settle it right 'ere."
There
was a murmur and a shuffle from among the large rough contingent, but no rat
took up the challenge. Graypatch nodded with satisfaction, he swung his sword
and cut through a tuft of Bigfang's whiskers before turning confidently away
from his former adversary.
"Good,
that's as it should be. I'm Cap'n 'ere—me, Graypatch. 'Twas me that brought you
'ere; without me you'd still be servin' crazy Gabool, wonderin' who'd be next
to feed the fishes, worryin' whether you'd looked at him the wrong way an' were
due to wake up with a dagger in yer back. Trust me, lads, an' we'll live off
the fat o'the land."
Ranzo
stood alongside Graypatch, brandishing a cutlass. "We're with you, Cap'n.
You just issue orders an' we'll be there."
Graypatch
lounged against a tree and plucked a low-hanging pear. "Lookit that, will
yer! Vittles a-growin' on trees, by thunder! What we'll do is this. We'll drop
anchor 'ere for the night, then at the crack o' dawn tomorrow when they're all
nice an' peaceful, we'll drop over an' pay 'em a visit."
He
threw the halter over a limb of the tree, tugging
166
it
slightly so that the miserable Pakatugg had to stand on tip-paws.
"As
fer you, matey, you stand by 'ere. I'll need you on the morrow. Don't try any
funny moves now, or there won't be only pears hangin' from this tree!"
Simeon
stood upon the west wall ramparts with his friend the Abbot, as they did most
evenings before turning in.
"More
rain tomorrow, do you think, Simeon?"
"No,
Bernard. It will be a fine hot summerday with hardly a cloud in the sky. The
weather should stay fine for Mariel and her party. I wonder where they are
now."
"Who
can say? Rushing and dashing off on quests and adventures—it must be nice to be
young and have all that energy."
Simeon
smiled. "Talking about energy and youthful-ness, I think I hear Mellus
coming from the woods with her party of Dibbuns. I hope their
wildberry-gathering expedition was a success."
Abbot
Bernard folded his paws into the wide habit sleeves. "Success or not,
maybe it has tired them out and they'll sleep soundly tonight. Where are they
now, Simeon?"
The
blind herbalist inclined his head to one side, listening carefully. "Just
coming out of the woodlands slightly northeast of here. Can you see them yet,
Bernard?"
"Ah
yes. Poor Mellus looks as if she's had a full day of it. Rather her than me. I
used to take them out when I was younger, but we never had a pair like those
little otter twins Bagg and Runn then. Don't think I could put up with a full
day's wildberry gathering in Mossflower with that pair. Mellus has seen us,
she's waving."
Simeon
turned in the direction of the badger and
167
waved
back. "Mother Mellus, how did the berry gathering go today?"
Mellus's
gruff boom rang up from the path below. "It was good, Simeon. I got some
herbs that you may need too; arrowhead, motherwort, pennybright, oh, and some
slippery elm bark."
"Thank
you, friend. I hope Bagg and Runn behaved themselves."
"Surprisingly,
they did. Those two collected more berries than the rest put together. That
little mole Grubb was the naughty one today. The wretch covered me in stickybuds
while I took my lunchtime nap, then he began eating the berries the other
Dibbuns had collected and he tied three little mice's tails together with
vines. Next time he can stay behind in the kitchens and help Friar Alder to
peel vegetables. Where is he now? Hey, come back here, you little rip!"
Baby
Grubb had run off in the opposite direction from the Abbey and was scuttling
along at a fair rate. Away he went up the north path, chattering to himself.
"Burr,
oim agoen' to foind a'ventures wi' Gully-whacker an' 'ee others."
Mother
Mellus broke into a shambling run. "Come back this instant, you little
rogue. You're going to bed!"
Grubb
trotted off the path, into the woodlands. Gray-patch and Frink, hiding behind a
broad oak, watched the infant mole unsuspectingly coming toward them. The
searat Captain held a noosed rope ready.
"There
ain't nothin' like a baby 'ostage to make things easy," he whispered to
his crewrat.
Grubb
trundled along, oblivious to all about him. He needed a weapon if he was going
to join the travelers on their adventure. Right next to the broad oak was a
sycamore sprout, little more than a thin stick. Grubb began heaving and tugging
upon it.
"Hurr,
this'll do oi, 'ee'll make a gurt spearer, ho
urr!
As Graypatch
opened the noose
to cast it
over
168
Grubb's
head, Mother Mellus swept the tiny mole up with one huge paw, unaware of the
searats.
"Got
you, mischiefskin! Right, m'laddo, bed for you with no supper. What have you
been told about pulling young trees up by the roots? Just wait until Abbot
Bernard hears about this, you wretch!"
Graypatch
had pulled back behind the oak. He and Frink held their breath as Mellus strode
off with a loudly protesting Grubb under her arm.
"Boohurr,
let oi go, missus. Oi wants a'ventures."
"I'll
give you adventures, you rip. Adventures in bed!"
"Gurr,
when oi get ter be a biggun, oi'll spank 'ee furr thiz!"
Frink
wiped his brow and sat down heavily. "Shiver me sails, Cap'n. Did you see
the size of that ol' badger?"
"Did
I? Now y'see what I said earlier is true, Frink. Careful is best. If we'd roped
the liddle mole, that ol' badger would've done fer the pair of us with one
swipe, you mark my words!"
oo
At the
open gate, Abbot Bernard carried Grubb inside. "Come on, Dibbun Grubb,
berry pie and custard for supper."
"Burry
poi an' cuskit, oh joy! But zurr, Ma Mellus says oi ain't a-getten none fer
bein' pesky."
The
Father Abbot set Grubb down upon the lawn. "Hmmm, did she? Tell you what,
little Grubb. You can have some this time, but next time you're pesky it's
straight off to bed without any. Go on, hurry and get washed up or it'll all be
gone."
Grubb
smiled one of his most winning smiles at his benefactor. "Oi knowed you
wudden let a hinfant starve. You'm a gudd beast, zurr!"
Simeon
joined the Abbot to follow up Mellus and her herd of Dibbuns.
"Ah,
Simeon, smell that. Young Cockleburr makes
169
the
finest cornflower custard I've ever tasted. Can you smell it?"
Simeon
looked pensive. "Hmmm, I think my senses are trying to tell me something
and it's not the smell of custard, Bernard. It's. . . . It's. . . . Oh, it's
probably nothing, friend. Let's go inside. You're right, that custard does
smell delicious."
oo
The
four travelers stood facing the rock which reared up from the earth on the west
side of the path. Mariel looked up at it.
"So
that's the otter and his wife. I expected real otters, not a great lump of
stone. Still, it does look very lifelike. I wonder who carved it."
Tarquin
rubbed his paw up and down the smooth brown rock. "Somebeast must've done
this when the land was young, more seasons ago than we could ever imagine.
Jolly fine work, wot? I think the rock once looked naturally like an otter and
his wife. Whoever did it only had to improve on what mother nature had already
started, eh?"
Dandin
nodded agreement. The rock was a sort of double lump, looking not unlike a male
otter standing on his hindpaws with a female otter sitting at his side. Long
ago some clever creature had carved the details of the otters' faces into the
stone, giving them a very lifelike appearance.
The
four friends made night camp at the base of the figures on the woodland side.
Tinder and flint kindled a small fire. Tarquin, taking his turn as cook,
decided on candied dried plums, sweet chestnut scones and dandelion cordial.
They sat around the bright flames, which provided an island of golden light
against the gloomy vault of the forest in front of them. Dandin recited the next
stanza of the rhyme which provided guide rules for their quest.
170
"Seek
out the otter and his wife. Forsake the path, go westlands way, Find the trail
and lose your life. When in the woods this promise keep, With senses sharp and
open eyes, 'My nose shall not send me to sleep' For buried ones will surely
rise."
Durry
Quill's eyes were drooping. He was beginning to nod.
"And
frogs will fly on mayday morn, While fishes sing aloud at dawn.
Huh, I
can't make top nor tail of it. It all sounds like nonsense to a pore lad who's
been hippotized by a serpent."
Mariel
stirred the fire with a green twig. "It may sound like gobbledygook but
it's proved true so far, Durry. We'll just have to wait until it's light and
find out for ourselves, I suppose. What d'you say, Tarquin?"
The
hare nibbled on a candied plum reflectively. "Don't know really, old gel.
Y'see I've never patrolled this far up north. Strange country, very strange.
Take these woodlands west of the path; they're not even mapped, y'know. I'm not
sure they're even part of Mossflower."
Dandin
hunched closer to the fire. "I'm certain they're not. They don't have that
comfortable homey feeling you always get in Mossflower Woods. This area looks
wilder, more grim, hostile somehow. But as you say, Mariel, we'll find out for
ourselves tomorrow. I take it we have this statue of the otter and his wife to
use as a bearing point and strike out west from it."
"Sssnnnnggggghhhhrrrrr!"
Durry
Quill was not listening, he was lying on his back with all four paws in the
air, making the most uproarous noise.
Tarquin
sniffed. "Listen to the beast, snorin' like a
171
flippin'
hog, just as I was going to play a few tunes on me harolina to cheer us
up,"
Mariel
lay down, using her haversack as a pillow. "Oh please, it's bad enough
having a snoring hedgehog without the addition of a caterwauling hare singing
lovelorn ditties. Let's all go to sleep while we have the chance of a full
night's rest."
Dandin
and Mariel soon joined Durry in slumber. Tarquin still sat up, a little sulky
as he fondled his unplayed harolina.
"Caterwaulin'
indeed. Shows how much mice know about music. Now if Hon Rosie were here I'll
bet she wouldn't object to a chap havin' the odd plunk on the jolly old
harolina. Ah well!"
He fell
asleep humming and serenading himself quietly.
"A
hare beyond compare, so spiffin' and so fair,
Oh,
Rosie, Rosie, dear my honey Hon,
I
wouldn't swap your affections for a heap of
confections,
Not for
... blackb'rry pie, oh my oh my. October Ale would surely fail, Summer salad
couldn't stop my ballad, Hazelnut pudden'd just taste wooden, As for cheese on
toast it'd make me weep. Feel so hungry, Rosie, I'd better go ... to ...
sleep
..."
Overcome
by weariness, the travelers slept at the fringe of the darkened forest, whilst
on the path the stone figures of the otter and his wife stood like eternal
sentinels in the silent watches of the night.
oo
Out at
sea a shroud-like fog had dropped. Completely lost, without bearings by the
stars or the sight of landmarks, Orgeye abandoned the helm of the Waveblade,
which had been sailing a southern course until the fog descended. He posted two
searats with weighted ropes
172
to test
overboard for shallows and reefs. Cursing Gabool for his uncontrollable mad
temper which had driven them into this unknown position, Orgeye went below to
his bunk to await the coming of dawn.
oo
Hidden
in Mossflower Woods a mere stone's throw from Redwall Abbey, Graypatch and his
crew also awaited the arrival of dawn.
oo
Pacing
his bedchamber in Salamandastron's mountain, Lord Rawnblade Widestripe awaited
yet another dawn, knowing that each fresh day brought his time of encounter
with the searats a little closer.
oo
Wandering
the empty halls of Fort Bladegirt on Terra-mort Isle, Gabool the Wild awaited a
dawn that would dispel his nightmares of ringing bells, badgers and avenging
mice.
In fact
there were many different creatures in diverse parts, each waiting to see what
the new day might bring: adventure, danger, victory, defeat, peace of mind, or
death.
173
BOOK
TWO
The
Strange Forest
Light
tendrils of mist clung to the burgeoning greenery of Mossflower Woods, and the
rising sun tinged buttermilk hues across a sky of powder blue in the shimmering
peace of dawn. Graypatch shook dew from his claws as he stamped about,
restoring circulation around limbs unused to sleeping out in the woodlands.
Dead-glim sat gloomily chewing on young dandelion stems, sulking because his
Captain would not allow a fire, lest the telltale wisps of smoke betray their
position.
Graypatch
wiped his sword blade dry as the other searats awoke, rubbing sleep from their
eyes.
"Come
on, hearties," the searat Captain chuckled. "You're like a pack of
dormice staggerin' about after a hard winter. Rouse yer carcasses, the sun's
gettin' up an' it's going to be a good day to inspect our new home. Thank yer
lucky stars we're not out on the seas. There'll be a fine old fog there that'll
last until noon. If you was aboard ship now in blue waters, you wouldn't be
able to see the tail behind your back, hahaha! Gather round now an' listen to
me. I'll tell you about the plan I've got charted for us. Leave it to ol'
Graypatch—we'll soon be livin' like kings!"
Flagg
the otter was always ready and willing to oblige.
177
Mother
Mellus had asked that he track down Dandin and Durry Quill. She was sure that a
fellow as big and capable as Flagg would have them back home at Redwall in no
time at all. Determined to start his journey bright and early, Flagg shouldered
supplies, checked his slingshot and stone pouch, then slipped out by a wicker
gate in the Abbey's north wall. Scarcely had he let himself out into the
woodlands when he became alert. Watching from the shelter of an ash grove,
Flagg witnessed a curious sight.
Graypatch
had assembled his oarslaves, mostly dormice and shrews. They grouped on the
path in a ragged bunch, thin and underfed. The five score searats who comprised
the crew of the Darkcjueen lurked in the path-side ditch, fully armed.
Graypatch issued his orders.
"Lissen
now, mates. You lot stay in the ditch an' keep yer heads down. As for you
scurvy oarpullers, you don't breathe a word, just follow me an' try to look
hard done by, haharr, though that shouldn't be too hard. Mind though, if one of
you steps out o' line the crew in the ditch'll deal with ye. Ringtail, you're
in charge down there; wait my signal. As soon as these country buffers open the
big gate to bring us food out. I'll tip yer the sign an' you rush in. Slay any
that look like trouble right off. The rest we'll let live to serve us."
Flagg
had heard enough. Luckily he had asked Mellus to leave the gate open until
morning. The big otter scuttled back through the woods, across the fields and
slipped inside, bolting the gate securely behind him.
Mellus
was strolling toward him from the direction of the unfinished bell tower.
"Flagg,
I thought you'd be gone by now ..."
The
otter held a paw to his lips. "Sssshhh! Not so loud. We've got trouble—no
time to explain now. Check all the wallgates are tight shut and bolted. I'm
going to rouse the others. Please, marm, don't stop to
178
ask
questions, just do as I say like your life depended on it. This is
urgent!"
The
badger caught the tone and look in her friend's eyes. She nodded wisely and
hurried to do his bidding.
oo
The sun
was nearly up. Mist hung low on the path and flatlands as Graypatch halted his
bedraggled column of oarslaves at the main gate of Redwall Abbey. Glancing up,
he was slightly taken aback to see a line of grim looking Abbey dwellers
staring down at him from the threshold of the high walls. Fixing a friendly
smile on his face, the searat Captain called out a greeting.
"Good
mornin' to yer, sirs. Whew! It's goin' to be another scorchin' summer's day
again. I wonder, could I have a word with whoever's in charge of this
marvel-ous place?"
Abbot
Bernard kept his tone polite. "I am the Father Abbot of Redwall Abbey.
What can I do for you, my son?"
Down in
the ditch, Kybo jostled Ringtail and sniggered. "Did ye hear that,
matey—his son! Now we know what Graypatch's daddy looks like. Heehee!"
Ringtail
silenced him with a smart slap. "Stow yer noise, fool. Be quiet an'
listen."
Graypatch
touched the dagger hidden behind on his belt, "Ah well, what better
creature to ask for help than the Father Abbot himself. As y'can see, sir,
we're poor wretched seafarers who lost our ship in a great storm. We've been
adrift fer nigh on half a season now, wand-erin' round woodland an' plain like
birds without wings, an' we're sore in need of a bit o' food an' water. Have ye
any vittles to spare?"
The
Abbot nodded. "Tell my friends what you need." He stepped back,
letting Flagg and Rufe Brush come forward.
Graypatch
allowed himself a smile; they were halfway home. "Good day to you, sirs.
We need water an' bread, nothin' more. Oh, I know we look rough an'
179
dirty,
but we're all honest creatures. You've nothin' t' fear from us ..."
Flagg smiled
back. "How many d'you have with you,
cully?"
The
searat Captain shrugged. "Only what y'see here, matey. If you was to open
yer doors we could come in an' rest awhile, save you the trouble of bringin'
supplies out to us. I've never been inside an Abbey."
Rufe
Brush gripped his javelin tight as he murmured, "No, and you're not likely
to get inside this one."
Flagg
continued smiling. "What about that gang hidden in the ditch?"
Graypatch
waved toward the mist-shrouded ditch, a look of injured innocence on his
villainous face. "Ditch? Gang? What d'yer mean, shipmate?"
Flagg
fitted a pebble to his sling. "I'll show you . . . shipmate!"
The
stone zinged down, plowing a furrow through the ground mist.
"Yowhoooo!"
Bigfang's
head appeared out of the white shroud. He was clutching his nose, which was
bleeding like a tap.
Ringtail's
voice rang out. "Get down an' shuttup, yer big oaf!"
Rufe
Brush leaped to the battlements, his javelin poised. "This is for you if
you don't shift yourself fast, searat!"
Graypatch
took the warning seriously. He dashed across the path and leaped over the
ditch, landing on the flatlands beyond.
"Come
on, mates. Out o' that ditch an' show 'em who we are!"
The
crew scrabbled out of the ditch to stand on the flatlands at their Captain's
side. He took his sword from Frink and waved it.
"I'm
Graypatch, Master of the Darkqueen, and this is my crew. Haharr, bet you
country bumpkins never clapped eyes on the likes of us. We can fight an' slay
180
just
like we do all over the high seas, so listen to me now, you woodland clods.
Surrender, or I'll bring this place down round your ears. You know nothin' of
warfare an' we're all covered with the scars of many a battle, d'ye hear
me?"
Young
Cockleburr, Friar Alder's kitchen assistant, could stand no more. His fighting
spirit was roused. Using his apron strings as a sling, he launched a small
rock-hard turnip at Graypatch.
"Bubbling
brothpans! Take that, you simmering sea-scum!"
It
struck Graypatch hard in his one good eye. The searat Captain fell back,
completely blinded, blackness interspersed with bursting colored stars filling
his vision.
Ringtail
quickly picked him up, supporting him as he shouted at the woodlanders on the
walls, "That's it, you've done it now. This is war!"
Driving
the oarslaves in front of them, the searats retreated back up the path to the
shelter of Mossflower. The Redwallers laughed and cheered, congratulating each
other on their brave stand.
Cockleburr
was delirious, he patted Flagg heartily. "Galloping gravyjugs, we showed
them, didn't we!"
Foremole
waddled up, his normally merry face creased with worry. "Hurr, may'aps 'ee
did, but 'twere only luck, maisters. Them'ns is searat spawn, gurt warriors an'
wicked cruel slayers. Ho urr, you marken moi words, they vermints'll be back,
doant doubt et."
The
cheering died away.
Simeon
spoke up. "Foremole is right. We're not warriors, though we have the might
and safety of these walls in our favor. We must take extra care in the coming
days, post lookouts, stay within the Abbey and its grounds, and be constantly
on guard against tricks. From what I could hear, this Graypatch sounds to me
like a very cunning beast."
The
Abbot turned to Flagg and Rufe Brush. "I leave
181
you in
charge of all arrangements. Unfortunately I am no use at all when it comes to
matters of war. Both of you have my complete confidence. You are brave beasts,
and I trust your judgment. What do you say, Mellus?"
The
badger shook her great head, halfway between maternal instincts and righteous
rage. "Did you see those poor slaves? Some of them weren't much more than
Dibbuns. Can't we do anything about them? They looked so thin and wretched; we
must help them somehow."
Flagg
placed a gentle paw on Mellus. "I know how y'feel, marm. I think every
creature here would love to give the sorry little things some aid. But you must
understand we have to defend the Abbey, we're all needed here. What good would
it do those slaves if Redwall fell into the claws of Graypatch and his
crew?"
Saxtus
had stayed silent in the background throughout the whole incident, but now he
felt the time had come for him to speak.
"Mother
Mellus, I have never experienced war in my life. I do not think I will like it.
However, if it is war, then Redwall Abbey comes first, before slaves, or even
ourselves. Perhaps if we defeat these searats then we can think of rescuing
others. Meanwhile our Abbey is our main concern."
Flagg shrugged.
"Hard words, Saxtus
mate. But
you're
right, of course."
oo
Inland
the mist had vanished with the advent of a hot summer morn. Tempers were also
running hot in the woodland camp of the Darkqueeri's crew. Graypatch sat back
in the shade with a leaf poultice held against his throbbing eye. The injury
had resulted in temporary blindness with his eye swelled shut. The searat
Captain dearly wished he could lay claws upon Bigfang for yelping out aloud and
giving the game away, but knowing he was at the mercy of his own savage crew,
he
182
had to
wralk a diplomatic tightrope. Graypatch tried to make light of the encounter.
"Yah,
what are they, eh? A bunch of root crunchers. We could take 'em with one claw.
Stupid mob of straw-suckers, what do they know of fightin' an' killin',
eh?"
Kybo
tried disguising his voice so the Captain could not identify him.
"Strawsuckers, matey? Huh, they still sent us packin'. We should've did
like Bigfang said and rushed the place soon as we arrived here."
Graypatch
knew the voice. He made a mental note to see Kybo as soon as he regained his
sight.
"Rushed
'em? What good would that've done? I don't think things would have turned out
any different."
Bigfang
picked dried blood from his top lip. "Hoho, don't you, then? Listen, rat,
if we'd rushed 'em, I could have taken that place."
Graypatch
tried to control his temper. "Tcha! But instead you got a stone on the
nose and yelped like a fieldmouse at a funeral. Go on then, bucko—tell us what
you would have done!"
Bigfang
was a large, barrel-chested searat. He picked up a dead branch and snapped it
in two pieces.
"I'd
have broken 'em with the element of surprise-charge and kill! An hour before
dawn I would have set light to those big gates. When they burned down, the crew
would have been in there a slayin' an' rippin'. But you know better, don't you,
Graypatch. What did we do? Hid in a ditch, playin' peekaboo like frogs hidin'
from a hawk. And you, matey, you, the great Gray-patch, terror of the waves,
put out of commission with a turnip by a little cook, hahahaha! Wheedlin' round
the road like a lame beetle. Please, sir, give us bread an' water, kind sir. .
. . Hah! Bilgewater! Some searat invasion that was, mates, I'll tell yer!"
There
was a murmur of agreement from the crew.
Tied in
a line with the oarslaves, Pakatugg trembled nervously. Bigfang had wanted to
kill him. If there was
183
a power
shift among the searats and Bigfang became their leader, the squirrel's life
would be worthless.
On an
impulse he yelled out over the rumblings of disagreement, "Graypatch is
right. There's more sense in tricking your way into the Abbey than just burning
and slaying!"
Ranzo
leaped up and knocked Pakatugg flat with a spear butt. "Slaves an'
prisoners tellin' us what t' do, eh, shipmates! I think we're all goin' soft in
this forest!"
Bigfang
threw a claw about his shoulders. "Aye, Ranzo's right. We were better off
with the deck of the Darkqueen under us. That craft'd outrun any vessel on the
seas. I say we set sail for the open waters in Darkqueen. Who's with me,
mates?"
A roar
of approval went up from the crew. They seized their weapons and any supplies
lying about, forming in a mob with Bigfang at their head. As they marched off
into the woodlands, dragging the oarslaves with them, Bigfang called out to his
disabled adversary:
"Don't
worry, Graypatch, I'm not goin' to kill yer. I'll leave that to this
country—see how long you'll last in the woods without yer good lamp to see
through. Hoho, you'll die with the flies crawlin' over yer, cursin' my name an'
the day you tried to do me down. I'm Cap'n now."
The
crew marched off through the woodlands, laughing and jostling each other, happy
to be going back to the life they knew aboard the best craft of all Gabool's
fleet, the good ship Darkqueen.
One
searat remained, however. Fishgill the steersrat strode across to Graypatch and
sat beside him.
"Let
'em go, Cap'n. They'll either end up in Gabool's clutches or come back to you
after gettin' sick of that bigmouth Bigfang. He's a fool an' a hothead—he'll
either get himself or the crew killed."
Graypatch
breathed a sigh of relief. "Fishgill, matey, I knew you wouldn't let me
down. Stay with me now. This eye'll be better in a day or two, then we'll see
184
who's
the real Cap'n of Darkqueen, and the best steersrat
too."
oo
Clary
and the long patrol had become alerted when they found Pakatugg's secret den
empty. Using their considerable skills as trackers, they had trailed the
squirrel across the dunes. The hares found the river crossing the beach at
midmorning. Checking the aftermath of the battle with Greenfang's crew, they
traced the river course inland.
At
midday they sighted the Darkqueen tied up alongside the tree-fringed creek.
"Whoohahahahooh!"
Hon Rosie whooped with delight. "Who's for a trip aboard the
Ski/lark?"
Brigadier
Thyme jumped aboard. "Deserted, eh. Where d'you s'pose the scurvy
blaggards are now, Clary?"
"Haven't
the foggiest, old fellah. Still an' all, I'll tell you where they won't be
goin': to sea in this bally tub again. We'll make sure of that. Come on,
chaps!"
In a
short time the rudder was detached and hidden in the woods, the oars were
weighted and sunk in the creek, the steering wheel was dismantled and flung
widespread into the bushes, and the mooring ropes were hacked through so that
Darkqueen drifted in and heeled at a crazy angle in the shallows. They
jettisoned the worst of the provisions and made a leisurely meal off the
choicest bits of the remainder.
Clary
found some of the bows and arrows in the weapon locker. "Righto, chaps,
settle down now. You take first watch, Rosie. Shout out at the first sign of a
scurvy whisker and we'll give 'em billyo."
"Oh,
I say, super! I'm rather good at the old archery game, y'know, I could score a
bull's-eye on a rat's eye with no bother. Whoohahahahoo!"
Clary
nibbled a ship's biscuit until a weevil poked its head out at him, he spat out
quickly and tossed the offending morsel overboard.
185
"Phwaw!
I think I'd turn to a life of crime if I had to eat tucker like that. No wonder
they look mean an' ugly!"
186
2O
The
mist was heavy in the forest as Mariel and her friends struck westward into the
strange new territory. Durry Quill kept repeating the lines of the poem aloud.
"Find
the trail and lose your life. When in the woods this promise keep, with senses
sharp and open eyes, 'My nose shall not send me to sleep.' "
"Your
nose doesn't have to, your bally voice would send anybeast to sleep,
Durry," Tarquin snorted. "Didn't they teach you singin' at
Redwall?"
"Floppyears,
I weren't singin', I were recititatin'. So there."
"Can't
you two stop arguing and keep quiet?"
"Oops!
Sorry, old gel, m'lips are sealed from now on, promise."
Dandin
had to hack away at hanging vegetation and thick fern to keep the path clear.
He did not like this forest at all. It was dank and steamy, with little
sunlight showing through the matted treetops, the ground was squelchy underpaw
and the going slow.
The
travelers were not inclined to stop in the gloomy atmosphere. They snatched
bites of food as they pressed onward, each with their separate thoughts.
187
Dandin
thought of Redwall and Mother Mellus, the good badger who had reared him:
Despite her scolding and reprimands, he missed her. He wondered how Saxtus was
faring, now that he was the only one of the terrible duo left for Mellus to
watch over.
Durry
thought of his uncle Gabriel, his friends Bagg and Runn and the moles whom he
felt a great kinship to. He imagined summer afternoons in the orchard with cool
cider and cakes beneath the shady trees.
Mariel
thought of her father, wondering where he could be and how his health was. She
remembered the quiet strength of her father the bellmaker, his ready smile and
gentleness, the care he had taken of her and the pride he took in his little
daughter, whose name he likened to a bell ringing over meadows on a summer
evening. She blinked away a silent tear and gritted her teeth as she thought of
cruel Gabool and the retribution she would mete out one day when she faced him.
Tarquin
thought of sitting alongside Hon Rosie at the annual haredance and banquet in
Salamandastron. Rosie always treated him mockingly, but that was just her way.
Secretly he imagined she longed for him. The words of a new song came bubbling
out of the irrepressible hare.
"If
I were a cake upon the table,
You
would take a bite from me
and I
would shout if I were able,
Rosie,
you're a sight to see.
Dolly
ting bang clang, diddly ding ..."
"Mr.
Woodsorrel, I've told you once politely, now clamp a lid on it!"
"What?
Oh, er, right you are, m'lady. It's just that lovely smell, reminds me of
Rosie's perfume that she wore to the banquet."
Durry
Quill sniffed. "My spikes, so that's what perfume smells like. A lad like
me never smelt it afore. Whaaaawwwhhooommmm! 'Scuse I."
188
Mariel
was about to silence Durry when she yawned aloud also.
Dandin
stopped swinging his sword into the tangled creepers. He leaned against a willow
and yawned aloud, rubbing his eyes. "Hoooommmmm! Funny sort of smell, not
like I'd imagined perfume to be. Bit sickly sweet, if you ask me ..."
Tarquin
sat down on the trail. His harolina slipped from his paws and he blinked
owlishly. "Hooooooah! Take m' word for it, laddie, that's what perfume
smells like. Whoooohaaaw! Corks . . . can't keep . . . the ol' eyes oooooooh .
. . pen."
Mariel
lay down slowly, clutching the Gullwhacker to her like a baby mouse going to
bed with her dolly. Through half-closed eyes she watched shadowy figures rising
from the earth around them. The last thing she heard before sleep rode in on
the cloying waves of heavy scent was Durry Quill's voice.
"My
nose shall no—Whooooaw!"
oo
Mariel's
head ached furiously and a dark mist swam before her eyes, changing to brown
then dull green. She caught a whiff of the fetid scent as a face swathed in
barkcloth came close to hers.
"Heehee,
dis'n wak'nin' up, athink!"
"Dese'n's
near wak'n too abit."
"Eer's
Snidjer, lookitout!"
The
realization that she was bound to a tree woke Mariel completely. She tugged and
strained at her bonds as a creature hobbled toward her. It was covered in
trailing weeds and wore a barkcloth wrapper around its face, as did many others
she could see crouching in the background. The creature carried with it the
whiff of heavy scent. It stood in front of the mousemaid and spoke in a high,
squeaky voice.
"Yerrherr,
Snidjer gotcher—anyerr fren's!"
Tarquin
had awakened. They were all tied tightly to
189
the
same big tree. "Oh, great golly, rrt'poor head, it's burstin'. Who the
devil are you, sir?"
The
creature prodded Tarquin with a long thorny branch. ' 'You sh' rupp. Snidj er'
s talkin' nochoo. Ennyow, werryerfrom?"
Dandin
was awake. He lay with his eyes closed as he interpreted. "I think his
name is Snidjer and he wants to know where we're from."
Snidjer
giggled. "Heehee, smarteemouse dis'n—a smarteemouse!"
Durry
was last to wake. He strained forward, trying to reach his head with bound
paws. "Gwaw! My poor skull. This shouldn't happen to a good young lad like
me. I think it was that scent which knocked us out. Oh, nunky, help! Send those
'orrible beasts away!"
Snidjer
and his tribe giggled as they danced around the tree in front of their victims.
Dandin watched them closely, trying to figure out what sort of creatures they
were under the barkcloth facewraps and body hangings of thick weed.
"Tarquin,
who are they? Have you ever seen anything like them before?"
"I
should jolly well hope not, old boy. What a dreadful load of idiots—can't even
talk properly. Rosie'd have a word or two to say to 'em about their sad lack of
elocution, believe me!"
Snidjer
pranced up to Tarquin, waving a torch made of smoldering herbs under his nose.
The hare was not well-pleased.
"Pooh,
take it away, you rascal. It's that beastly scent again."
Snidjer
giggled. "Sleepasleep, sleepasleep, yerrher-raherrherr!"
Mariel
groaned aloud. "So that was what the poem meant about my nose sending me
to sleep. It's those smoldering herbs; they must be full of a sort of sleep
drug. 'Buried ones will surely rise . . . ' Ha! I remember that bit. Just
before I was knocked out by that smell, I
190
dimly
remember seeing those creatures coming out of the ground, though how they did
it I don't know. Wh-where's my Gullwhacker? Oh, I wish my head would stop
aching."
Snidjer
wriggled with delight, the loose weeds quivering all over him. "Wannasee
how we do it, clever-mouse? Wannasee 'ey? D'Flitchaye cleverer than you a
bigbit, yousee."
The
weird creature stamped his paw several times upon the ground. Mariel watched,
her eyes wide with amazement. All around the earth, clumps of weed and grass
lifted like rough lids as more of the peculiar creatures came out of hiding
from their subterranean pits. In a short time the area was thick with
bark-masked, weed-clad beasts. They shuffled about, chanting in their
high-pitched voices:
"We
d'Flitchaye Flitchaye Flitchaye!"
Dandin
struggled against his bonds as he roared aloud, "Hey, come away from that
stuff. It's ours!"
Snidjer
was waving Martin's sword about as his tribe emptied the contents of the
travelers' packs onto the ground, fighting and grabbing for the food and drink.
One of them swung Gullwhacker close to Dandin's head.
"Nahh
sh'rup, you'n's Flitchaye pris'ners!"
Tarquin
gulped against the rope that circled his neck. " 'S'no use, old lad. Stiff
upper lip an' ignore the blighters—we're outnumbered at least ten to one. I
say, what's the next bit of the jolly old rhyme? Maybe that'll help us,
wot?"
Dandin
promptly reeled off the required stanza.
"Beat
the hollow oak and shout, 'We are the creatures of Redwall!' If a brave one is
about, he'll save any fool at all.
That's
it as best as I recall. Let's look about for this hollow oak to beat, then we
can start shouting."
191
Durry
blinked painfully as he tried to focus his eyes. "Phwaw! I'm lookin',
though outside o' this clearin' I can't see nothin' but trees. My ol' nuncle Gabe'd
say it were like lookin' fer timber in a woodland."
By now
the supplies had either been eaten or squashed into the ground, though one or
two of the creatures were still squabbling over flasks of cider and cordial.
Snidjer swung the sword at an overhanging bough. He missed and landed himself
flat upon his back. The Flitchaye chief lay sniggering as three smaller ones
thrummed roughly away at Tarquin's beloved har-olina. The hare fought against
his tight bonds, crying out against the outrage.
"I
say, put that instrument down! You're an absolute bunch of yahoos, d'ye hear
me? Yahoos and hooligans!"
Concealing
her voice beneath the surrounding hubbub, Mariel whispered to Dandin, "I'm
working my paws loose. It shouldn't take long. The moment I'm free we'll have
to see if we can grab our weapons and hold this lot off until we find the
hollow oak."
"Hollow
oak, old gel," Tarquin chuckled. "No need to look any further, we're
tied to the bally thing!"
Durry
groaned aloud. "An' I could've saved my poor eyes all that lookin' an'
searchin'. 'T'aint fair."
Dandin
glanced upward. "Hmm, so we are," he whispered back. "Right,
when Mariel's loose we'll untie each other quietly. If we can reach our
weapons, all well and good; if we can't, then the best plan would be to
surround Tarquin and keep him protected while he beats the oak. Those long legs
of yours should come in very handy for that, Tarquin. Er, Durry, what is it
that we all have to shout out?"
"We
are creatures of Redwall, good an' loud!"
Snidjer
and the Flitchaye who was holding Gullwhacker hurried across to the prisoners.
Snidjer carried the sword and some smoldering herbs. He glanced at them
suspiciously.
192
"Worrayou
talkabout, 'ey?"
Tarquin
sniffed. "Actually, old bean, we were just remarking on what a vile smelly
load of old forest weeds you bods are."
Snidjer's
eyes glinted angrily and he waved the smoking herbs under Tarquin's nose.
"You sh'rup, y'hear, sh'rup or Flitchaye send you sleepasleep
s'more."
The
hare coughed violently, his eyes watering as the Flitchaye chief held the
reeking herbs closer. Suddenly Tarquin shot out both his long legs. Bound
together as they were, the powerful limbs caught Snidjer a mighty kick that
sent him head over heels.
Mariel
freed her paws and unknotted the rope that held them to the oak and unbound
Dandin's paws. With their backs to the dead oak the four companions faced the
howling mob of Flitchaye creatures. Mariel tugged Durry's paws loose as Dandin
untied Tarquin. Snidjer leaped up, quivering with fury as he waved the sword
menacingly.
"Hawhaw
y'done it now, cleverbeasts. D'Flitchaye killyer now, killyer good 'n' dead.
Gerrem, Flitchaye, gerrem!"
Again
the mousemaid remembered attacking Gabool with the sword when her life was
threatened. This time it was not only her, but also three good friends who were
in danger of being slain.
Mariel
felt the old Storm rise within her. Grabbing the ropes that had bound them, she
knotted the ends and passed them to Dandin and Durry.
"These
will have to do as Gullwhackers. Get thumping, Tarquin!"
The
hare needed no second bidding. He pounded his long hindlegs against the hollow
trunk, raising his voice to join the others:
"We
are creatures of Redwall! We are creatures of Redwaaaaalll!"
The
first wave of the Flitchaye mob struck them,
193
armed
with sticks and small daggers. Mariel and her comrades thwacked away at them
with their knotted ropes for all they were worth. Most of the Flitchaye were
repulsed, some knocked senseless, whilst others, half-conscious, clung onto the
bodies of their attackers.
Snidjer
stayed well back, swinging the sword as he urged a fresh wave of attackers to
the fray. "Gerremall, Flitchaye. Grabbem, holdem—I cut'm up wid dis
sworder!"
Durry Quill
went down, felled by a heavy blow. Dandin and Mariel stood shoulder to
shoulder, swinging their knotted ropes. Tarquin lay on his back, pounding the
oak with his hindpaws while he lashed out at the enemy with his front paws,
joining voice with his companions:
"We
are creatures of Redwall! We are creatures of Redwaaaaalll!"
They
were struggling against the odds, more so when Snidjer gathered a fresh batch
of Flitchaye about him and headed the charge at his weakened opponents.
"D'cleverbeasts
fallin' now. Gerrem, Flitchaye!"
Mariel
and Dandin went down beneath the masses of weedclad bodies, still shouting as
they were submerged beneath the Flitchaye mob:
"We
are creatures of Redwaaaalll!"
oo
Thick
white fog enveloped both sea and shore as if the very clouds had dropped out of
the sky. Sound was muted and nowhere was there vision or sight for more than a
paw's length. Rawnblade Widestripe chuckled grimly to himself as he donned the
long spiked helmet he always wore with his battle armor. Salamandastron was
deserted; he had sent out all his hares to patrol on one pretext or another,
some to the south, others to the east. The great badger Lord pulled down the
helmet visor, focusing happily through the twin slits. Rawn-blade's eyes should
have been tired, but they were not. He had lain awake most of the night,
listening to the
194
muffled
silence fog brought in its wake, restless, turning. Rawnblade had finally left
his beloved mountain to stroll on the tideline along the shore by Salamandastron.
That
was when he had heard it.
The
sickening crunch of ship's timbers upon rock was unmistakable.
00
The
searat Captain Orgeye was below sleeping when he was thrown forcibly from his
bunk onto the cabin floor. Shouts from the Waveblade's two lookouts brought him
scrambling up on deck.
"Belay,
we've run aground in this cursed fog!"
"Hell's
teeth! She's run bow-on to a reef!"
Rawnblade
had strained his ears to catch the shouts from the Waveblade.
"Cap'n
Orgeye, what'll we do?"
"Bilgescum!
You've been sleepin' on watch. If she breaks her keel on these blasted rocks,
I'll rip out yer livers. Get over the side onto the reef an' see how she looks.
Move yerselves!"
"Cap'n,
she's nose-up on the stones, holed near the waterline an' trapped tighter than
meat between yer teeth. What do we do?"
"What
can we do, slophead? There's naught for it but to wait till this fog clears.
May'aps we can beach
her for
repairs then."
oo
Rawnblade
expanded his massive chest, letting out a great sigh of pure joy at the memory
of his night stroll. It was not often the big badger got a shipload of searats
delivered to his doorstep. That was why he had sent his hares away. The Lord of
Salamandastron wanted this one all to himself. Picking up his formidable
broadsword, he swung it easily across his shoulders and strode silently back to
the tideline. Standing with waves lapping his studded leg greaves, Rawnblade
Widestripe resembled a great carved statue set at the edge of the
195
sea.
Fog swirled about his armored body as he listened to the sounds of the cursing
searats, who were waiting for the fog to lift.
So was
Rawnblade.
He
remembered the dead bodies of his three hares swaying in the shallows of the
tideline, the work of searats. A huge rumble of satisfaction welled up in his
throat as he anticipated loosing his wrathful battle-sword upon Orgeye and the
Waveblade's crew.
c/o
Colonel
Clary notched an arrow to his bow, and the other two members of the long patrol
followed his example. The fog had thinned to a milky river mist in the creek
where the Darkqueen lay crippled. Clary's ears stood straight up as he listened
to the noise of the Darkqueen's crew. They were crashing heedlessly through
bush and shrub, careless and noisy, as they made their way back to the ship.
Ringtail
was first to spot the Darkqueen's masts amid the forest greenery. He dashed
forward with the light mist swirling about him.
"Ahoy,
mates. There she lies. The DarkqueenY'
Even as
the rest of the crew dashed forward, they saw Ringtail fall with a gurgle, an
arrow through his neck.
"Down!
Get down. The ship's been boarded!" roared
Bigfang.
The
searats obeyed, dropping down instantly behind
trees
and bushes.
Ranzo
lay alongside Bigfang, pale with fright. "Ringtail's been done for. Who
killed him?"
Bigfang
peered through the mist-shrouded trees. "I don't know, mate, but I'll soon
find out. 'Ere, bring up them oarslaves."
Brigadier
Thyme raised himself from the heeling deck to obtain a better shot at the
foebeast. He groaned aloud and sat down again.
"Oh,
dash it, look what they're up to now!"
196
Clary
and Hon Rosie stood up in dismay. Bigfang was approaching with the rest of the
searats, and they were using Pakatugg and the wretched oarslaves as a shield in
front of them. They stood in a bunch at the woodland fringe on the creek bank.
Hon
Rosie relaxed her bowstring. "Golly gosh, I say, that sort of thing's not
on, you know. Hey there, you bunch of moldy old cowards. Come out an' fight,
beast to beast."
Bigfang
prodded Pakatugg with his cutlass. "Moldy ol' cowards is better than
foolish dead heroes, rabbit. Now what d'ye say we parley a bit eh?"
Clary
twitched his whiskers firmly. "We don't parley with the likes of you,
bottlenose."
"Bottlenose
yerself, rabbit!" Bigfang snatched a spear from Kybo and hurled it. The
spear landed with a quivering thud, pinning Clary's paw to the Darkqueen's
side. Immediately, Rosie and Thyme took a chance; shooting slightly upward,
they sent their arrows over the tops of the oarslaves' heads, wounding Frink
and slaying a searat named Reekhide.
The
searats broke and ran for the cover of the bushes, dragging the oarslaves with
them. Hon Rosie acted swiftly. Tugging the spear free, she pulled Clary into
the scuppers.
"Knew
they couldn't kill you, you old piewalloper. Are you hurt?"
Clary
gritted his teeth, trying hard with one paw to stanch the flow of blood from
the other. "Ahem! That feller's not very good at givin' a manicure with a
spear, though I think he meant it to be a haircut."
Rosie
could see by the tight-drawn expression on Clary's face that he was suffering
greatly. She searched her pack for bandages.
"Not
to worry, you'll soon be right as rain again, old lad."
Thyme
put aside his bow and arrows now the confrontation was over. "Well, chaps,
it looks like we're
197
stuck
aboard this tub until Clary's able to use the old
paw
again, wot?"
oo
Out of
sight and earshot of the hares, Bigfang was having trouble with his new
command. Kybo had elected himself spokesrat for the rest, and he and Bigfang
argued fiercely.
"We
should've charged them when I flung that spear!"
"Huh,
an' get caught in the water by those two with the bows—not me, matey. Did you
see the Darkqueen? They've crippled 'er."
"I
could get her seaworthy an' sailin' again,"
"You!
All you've done so far, Bigfang, is to get Frink wounded an' Reekhide killed.
It was foolish chuckin' that spear. We should've got closer to 'em, then we
could've done some real damage."
"Oh
aye, an' what would you have done, scumbags?"
Kybo
flung himself on Bigfang. They rolled over and over, grunting and kicking at
each other. Bigfang was gaining the upper paw when he tripped and became
tangled with the oarslaves. Kybo quickly sat on his adversary's chest. Pulling
out a wicked skinning knife, he pressed the blade across Bigfang's throat. The
former leader lay still, knowing that Kybo had won.
Kybo
retained his position, breathing heavily. "Now you listen to me,
addlebrain. I'm speakin' fer all of us, see! The Darkqueen's scuppered—oars,
rudder an' steerin' wheel gone, didn't y'see—an' they've heeled her over.
She'll sit on the bottom of that creek like a stone in mud. I'm takin' this
crew back to Graypatch; that Abbey is the only place where we'll have it safe
an' easy. He was right. Now you can come peaceable or die here. What's it t'
be?"
Bigfang
swallowed, feeling the blade scrape his throat. "You win."
198
Mother
Mellus crept up on Bagg and Runn the otter twins, who were hanging perilously
over the north ramparts. She seized each one by an ear and pulled them down as
they squeaked piteously.
"Now
then, you two young fiends, what are you up to out here, eh?"
"Owow,
leggo! We were keeping guard, that's all!"
"Eeeek,
me ear! Somebeast's got to watch out for searats."
Mellus
released them, shooing the delinquent pair down the steps to the Abbey lawn.
"Run along now. Searats would eat two Dibbuns like you for tea."
"Ha,
bet they wouldn't. We'd make 'em into searat pudden an' eat 'em!"
"No
you wouldn't, they'd have your tails on toast. Then what would I tell the
Abbot?"
The two
small otters shuffled off disgruntled. Flagg the big otter called along from
the west wall to Mellus, "The only tails on toast those scurvy rats'll
have is their own tails, marm. You leave it t' me an' young Saxtus."
The
badger gave a worried frown. "I hope you're right, Flagg. They're certain
to be back. Searats like that lot don't give in easily."
Saxtus,
who was on the east wall and within hearing range, called back at the same time
as Flagg, "And neither do we!"
199
21
Snidjer
approached Mariel, brandishing the sword. Weighted down by Flitchaye, she was
unable to move. Helplessly she watched him raise the glittering blade. . . .
From nowhere a huge voice rang out:
"I
was born on a dark night in a storm! I'm the roaring child of Heavywing
McGurney! Shake in your fur, Flitchaye. Stonehead's arrived!"
A barn
owl of awesome proportions swooped down and hurled Snidjer high in the air.
With a noise somewhere between a hoot and a roar, he launched himself into the
fray. Mariel had never seen anything like it. The weed-clad, bark-masked
Flitchaye scattered everywhere like ninepins.
Stonehead
was aptly named. He used his massive head like a battering ram, thudding and
butting with the speed of a striking snake as he shouted aloud at the terrified
Flitchaye tribe:
"Stand
and fight, you forest weeds! Why, if I couldn't slay a dozen of you before
breakfast I'd die of shame! I can drink a river dry and eat an orchard bare!
I'm Stonehead McGurney, bravest of the brave!"
Mariel
and her companions got the feeling they would offend the big barn owl by
joining in the fight, so they stood to one side, watching as he enjoyed him-
200
self to
the full. The Flitchaye who were not laid out flat took to their holes and
closed the lids. As Mariel retrieved her Gullwhacker and Dandin picked up the
sword, Tarquin tuned his harolina and nudged Durry.
"I
don't think I'd like to meet that chap when he's cross, do you?"
Durry
kicked Snidjer on the bottom as he tried to rise. "Dearie me, he do 'ave a
right ol' temper an' no mistake."
Six
Flitchaye were backing off toward the woods. Stonehead spotted them and yelled,
"Get back here! Down your pits and shut the lids! Run away and I'll follow
you to the ends of the earth! You know I never lie! We McGurneys aren't the
wisest owls anywhere, but by thunder we're the bravest!" He turned to the
four travelers aggressively. "So you're Redwall creatures, eh! Should
never let yourselves get caught by this lot! Flitchaye! Hah! I'll show you what
they are! Come here, you!"
Snidjer
came, but not quickly enough. Stonehead grabbed him in one powerful talon and
ripped away the barkcloth mask and trailing weeds.
"There's
a Flitchaye for you! Skinny little weasels dressed up, that's all they are!
Here, do you want me to butt him right over the top of that hollow oak? I can
do it easily, you know!"
Dandin
interceded on Snidjer's behalf. "I think he's had enough, sir. Thank you
for rescuing us. I am Dandin of Redwall —these are my friends, Tarquin, Mariel
and Durry."
The owl
shook their paws with his talons until they ached, then he kicked open the lid
of a Flitchaye hole and beckoned to Snidjer.
"In
there, you, and look sharp about it!"
Snidjer
obeyed with alacrity. Stonehead took a huge dead treelimb in his claws and
tossed it on top of the lid, locking Snidjer inside.
"There,
that's the way to treat them! Don't take any
201
nonsense!
You don't think I was too easy on them, do you? Sure you don't want me to throw
a few over the treetops?"
"No
no, old chap. You did splendidly. Do you live alone in these woods?"
Stonehead
blinked his eyes at Tarquin and snorted. "Alone? I'll say not! We
McGurneys have always lived here! Got the wife, Thunderbeak, and four little
ones-two sons and two daughters! They're only chicks, but you should see them
fight! Come home with me for supper, meet my family!"
The
savage golden eyes glared at them. They did not
refuse.
oo
If at
all possible, Stonehead's wife Thunderbeak was even fiercer than her
belligerent husband. The four babies sat at the foot of a dead ash with them,
fighting uproariously at every opportunity, much to the amusement of their
parents. The food was surprisingly good. There was a white mushroom salad
specially laid on for the travelers. The owls did not eat. Dandin decided that
it would not be polite to ask them what their diet was, though the odd
barkcloth and weeds in the bushes left him in little doubt.
After
supper Tarquin sang and played his harolina, an impromptu song.
"If
you're ever caught by the Flitchaye
And the
situation looks grave,
Then
call for a McGurney,
The
bravest of the brave.
He'll
fight all night
And
battle all day
Until
you hear those Flitchaye say,
'Have
mercy, have mercy, have mercy on us all!' "
Mariel
smiled fondly at the owlets. "Bless them, they've fallen asleep."
Thunderbeak cuffed them roughly awake. "Where's
202
your
manners! Dozing off when the nice rabbit's singing you a song! Wake up this
instant!"
Mariel
wrapped her Gullwhacker into a pillow and lay down. "Oh, don't scold them,
please. They need their sleep, the same as me. Actually, if that nice rabbit
starts singing another song he'll feel the knot of my Gullwhacker between his
big bunny ears."
oo
Tarquin
sat up late, remembering the next lines of the poem and discussing their future
route with Stonehead, though the owl did not appear to be a great deal of help.
Tarquin racked his memory, whilst pretending to be attentive to Stonehead's
advice.
"Let
me see now, something or other about saving any fool at all, I think the last
bit was. Oh, but that was you, wasn't it?"
Stonehead
blinked fiercely. "What's that you say? I'm any fool at all! I think you
could do with a lesson in politeness, rabbit! It's true we McGurneys aren't
wise owls, but we're the bravest of the brave! Now defend yourself, or get
kicked right over that tree!"
Tarquin
held up his paws placalingly. "Sorry, old chap, I wasn't alluding to you,
not a bit of it. The fools I was talking about is us, me and my jolly old
friends. Point of fact, you may be able to help us with our route. I've
remembered the lines, goes somethin' like this:
Beware
the light that shows the way, Trust not the wart-skinned toad, In his realm no
night or day. Fool, stay to the road.
That's
it. Y'see it mentions us again—fool! I don't suppose you happen to know what
place the rhyme means, wot?"
Stonehead
got up and paced about a bit. One of the babies gave his leg a drowsy bite as
he passed, and he cuffed the sleeping infant affectionately.
"Wouldn't
like to be a Flitchaye when she grows
203
up—wonderful
little battler. Yes, of course I know the place your poem mentions! You and
your friends want the swampdark! Never go there myself—rotten place! Take you
there in the morning. Get some sleep now, rabbit! You're quite a good singer;
never have time for such nonsense myself, sooner have a good clean fight! Must
warn you, though, if you start warbling and wake my wife up she'll probably rip
your leg clean off! She's not named Thunderbeak for nothing, you know! Sleep
well. Good night!"
Tarquin
put his harolina carefully aside and lay down, gazing around at the dark
dripping forest and the six savage owls in slumber.
"Blow
me! I'd never take Hon Rosie picnickin' to this
place."
"What's
that, rabbit? Did you say something?"
"Er,
no, old bean. Just good night."
"Good
night! Now shut up and sleep! Or else . . . !"
oo
Gabool
the Wild was not affected by sleep anymore. He was driven night and day by an
insane nervous energy, roaming the rooms of Fort Bladegirt. The non-arrival of
Graypatch was preying upon his mind, though he did not doubt that his
traitorous Captain would show up sooner or later. The King of Searats now began
hoping that Graypatch would be brought back alive. He descended a winding
stairway, muttering and chuckling to himself.
"No,
don't kill him, that's too quick for me old shipmate Graypatch. Gabool's got
somethin' nice fer him, a surprise, aharrharrharr! Aye, GraypatchTl remember
old Skrabblag. I was Cap'n of the Ratwake an' he was mate when we brought
Skrabblag from the warm isles in the deep seas to the south. Haharr, good old
Skrabblag. Let's see if you're still alive an' foul-tempered."
Still
laughing to himself, the mad King reached the bottom of the steps. He entered a
side room and took a spear from its wallhanger. At the center of the room
204
was a
circular stone with a thick iron ring attached. Gabool thrust the spear through
the ring and levered the stone upward. Sliding it to one side, he took the
spear and crouched over the hole in the floor.
"Skrabblag,
matey, it's me, Gabool. Sing out—are y'there?"
There
was no reply. Gabool jabbed down into the inky darkness with the long spear.
There was a dry, rustling sound, accompanied by an odd clicking noise. The
searat grinned.
"Aharr,
you murderous villain, I can hear yeh. What's it like down there, livin' on
rotten fishheads an' scraps o' dead seabird?"
The
rustling and clicking increased. Something caught the spear blade, but Gabool
pulled it back quickly.
"Hoho,
not so fast, bucko. I know you'd like to drag me down there, but you bide your
time and old Gabool will give yer a little gift. Remember Graypatch? Aye, he
was the one that helped catch you an' take you from your nice warm island to
this cold dark berth, Well, you stop down there an' think what you'd like to do
to Graypatch. Pretty soon now I'll let him drop in an' pay you a call. You'd
like that, wouldn't yer?"
The
clicking and rustling increased. Gabool laughed heartily as he slid the stone
back into place with the spear.
Outside,
the wind moaned around the rocks of Terra-mort and the stones of Bladegirt. The
restless sea pounded coves and inlets as seabirds deserted the skies for nests
and perches. Gabool sat once more in his banqueting hall, chin in claws as he
slouched across the table and spoke to his bell.
"Hah!
Yer gettin' dirty now since there's no slaves to spit an' polish yer shiny
hide. An' that's the way it should be, big an' dirty with a brassy voice. One
day the bell tower will be built, then I'll string you up there an' make you
sing every time I tug the rope. I'll make
205
yer
sing or be quiet, just as I please. What've y'got to say to that, eh?"
The
great bell remained silent, Gabool sat watching it until his weighted eyelids
began drooping over weary blood-seared eyes. A ship in flames passed his
vision, followed by another lying on its side in a creek, overgrown by trees,
and yet a third ship washed up and holed upon a reef. Bluddrig, Garrtail,
Saltar and Orgeye floated lifeless in the waves sweeping across his fevered
dream, dead rats all. Through the shifting gray mists a huge armored badger
strode. Raising his sword, he struck.
Gabool
was awake once more, glaring his hatred across the table at the bell whose very
presence haunted his every moment.
206
22
"Haharr,
me old shipmates, how was your voyage?"
Graypatch
had his sight back now, though his eye was still quite swelled. He sat on a
fallen log with Fishgill, watching his sheepish crew. Bigfang kept noticeably
out of the way. Kybo, still the unofficially elected spokesrat, unfolded the
unfortunate encounter with the hares and reported on the sorry state of the
vessel Darkqueen. Graypatch listened to the woeful narrative as he sat
sketching on the ground with his sword-point. When Kybo had finished, the other
searats gathered around to hear what Graypatch had to say. He kept them waiting
awhile before he spoke.
"A
sad an' mis'rable tale, mateys, but what ship can last forever? Darkqueen was a
good craft, but she'd be a floatin' death warrant for us against the might of
Gabool. Leave 'er to rot in the creek, I say. Redwall Abbey's worth a hundred
Darkqueens, we'll be Lords of this land, country gentlerats if y'please,
instead of floatin' bilgeslops at the mercy of wind 'n' water, tryin' to grab a
livin' with one claw while usin' the other to fend off that madrat Gabool. No
more of that fer us, messmates. This is the warm soft country, and it can be
all ours if yer willin' to follow me. Well, what d'yer say?"
207
There was
an immediate roar of approval. Many
claws reached out to pat the searat Captain's back.
"We're
with you, Skipper!"
"Aye,
Graypatch always led us right!"
"You
give the word, Cap'n, an' we'll follow yer to Hellgates an' back!"
Graypatch
tapped his swordpoint at the drawing he had been working on. "Right then,
buckos, here's me plan. This here's the Abbey. Now what we'll do is this:
there's nigh on a hundred of us, closer to a hundred an' twenty countin' the
oarslaves. Bigfang, here's yer chance, mate. Rush 'em an' burn the gates you
said, as I recall. Well, that's exactly what you're goin' to do. Take Frink,
Fishgill, 'ere, and five others. Keep the oarslaves so you'll look more like an
army. Try burnin' those big Abbey gates down any way you can. Now then, I'll be
in front on the flatland t'other side of the ditch with Ranzo, Dripnose an' a
score or so others. We'll make a great show of firin' arrows an' slingin'
stones; that way the attack will look like it's comin' from the front, but it
won't. Kybo, you take the rest round the east side and sneak through the
woodlands— they're good 'n' thick there. Use ropes an' grapnels, just as if you
were takin' a tall fat merchant ship. Ropes an' grapnels, lads, that's the key.
Nice an' quiet like, slide over those walls. There's a little wallgate I've
noticed on the north side. Get that open an' we'll be with yer in a trice.
Bigfang should have the gates well ablaze by then. Do as I say an' we'll be
takin' supper in Redwall Abbey tonight!"
Everyone
cheered aloud, with the exception of Bigfang. Somehow he felt as if he had been
tricked by Graypatch, though being in disgrace and having the whole crew
against him left him in no position to complain.
CXO
Hot
summer vegetable soup was being served with large flat oatcakes, there was
fourseason plumcake and
208
elderberry
cup to follow. The sentries on the Abbey walls took theirs as they watched the
surrounding countryside for signs of movement. The food was being served in the
orchard. Sister Sage and Mother Mellus dished it out to the little ones, and
each carried their portion to a corner of the orchard where the Abbot, assisted
by Simeon and Foremole, stood ready to give them a lecture- Seated in a group
beneath a gnarled apple tree, the Dibbuns began eating. Abbot Bernard cast a
kindly eye over them, shook back his habit sleeves and began.
"Righto,
my little friends. Carry on eating while I talk to you. Er, Grubb, stop dipping
your oatcake into Baby Turgle's soup and listen to me, please."
Grubb
did as he was told but immediately started complaining. "Yurr zurr Habbit,
'ee squirrel Turgle's a-drinken moi drink!"
The
infant squirrel grinned over the top of Grubb's beaker and sucked noisily at
his stolen elderberry cup. The Abbot turned his eyes skyward as if looking for
patience. Foremole went among the Dibbuns and took charge of the situation.
"Gurr,
you liddle terror, give 'ee drink back ter Grubb, an' yew, maister Grubb, touch
yon Turgle's soup agin an' oi'll bite 'ee tail offen."
The
Abbot took a deep breath and continued. "Now, as you may know, there are
some very naughty creatures who've been hanging about outside our Abbey, but
there's no need for you to worry or be frightened— we'll take care of them.
Meanwhile, I want all you Dibbuns to be very good little creatures. Do what you
are told by those who look after you, Mother Mellus, Sister Sage, Sister
Serena, Simeon, Brother Saxtus, myself ..."
"An'
Bruvver Hoobit, too?"
"Yes,
and Brother Hubert too."
"An'
Foremole as well, Habbit?"
"Yes
yes, Foremole as well."
209
"An"
Muvver Mell's too?"
"Yes,
I've already said Mother Mellus. Now listen to me please ..."
"An'
the fishes inna pond?"
"Now
don't be silly, I said listen to wha -"
"An'
a big red strawberry too?"
"Big
red strawberry? What big red strawberry? Oh dear, Simeon, help me,
please!"
The
blind herbalist spread his paws wide and cried out, "The Grockledeeboo
eats noisy Dibbuns!"
Immediately
a silence fell; the little ones sat wide-eyed in fright. Simeon took the
opportunity to finish the lecture.
"But
we'll chase the Grockledeeboo away if you're all very good, so listen to me.
You must obey all the grown-up creatures—do as they say. If you are sent
indoors, go straight in. Do not try to leave the Abbey; we don't want you going
outside. Stay out of the way, eat all your food, keep yourselves clean and go
to bed on time. Most important of all, stay away from the walltops. If there is
fighting, you could be hurt, and we couldn't have that now, could we?"
"No,
sir, Simeon, sir!" the chanted chorus came back at Simeon.
"Hurr,
liddle goodbeasts, you'm eaten up all 'ee vit-tles naow an' run along ter
play."
Foremole
chuckled as he strolled off with Simeon and the Abbot. "Oi'm a-thinken
they'm got the message,
zurrs.
0X0
Leaning
against a battlement, Flagg twirled his sling idly, scanning the northward
path. "All quiet this side, young Saxtus."
Saxtus
licked plumcake from his paws before shouldering his spear. "This side
too, Flagg. But I'm wondering for how long."
"Hmm,
can you feel it too, mate? It's as if there's a sort of calm before the storm.
I don't like it."
210
Dandin
and Mariel were anxious to be away, but half the morning was gone and still
they had to wait about. Stonehead's wife, Thunderbeak, had insisted on
repro-visioning their empty packs, and she was somewhere off in the woods.
Stonehead and his four owlchicks put on several exhibitions of wrestling,
butting and kicking. Tarquin and Durry had to keep avoiding being used as
demonstration examples. Finally Thunderbeak arrived back with the knapsacks.
"Not
much, I'm afraid, but it'll have to do! Plenty of apples, some white mushrooms,
wild damsons, not too ripe, bit of celery, some other bits and bobs. Oh,
there's some woodland scones, though they've been lying about a bit—my own
make, very nourishing."
They
thanked her, allowed themselves to be pecked and kicked one last time by the
owlchicks, then struck westward, led by Stonehead.
oo
The
strange forest grew dimmer and more gloomy until finally they were in a world
of black shadow and green light. Trees were immensely tall, with long bare
trunks crowded together like black columns, the foliage growing at their tops
completely blocking daylight, turning it into sinister green shafts. Little or
no shrubbery grew on the forest floor, which was composed of squishy dark leaf
mold with massive tree roots crisscrossing like dark giant veins. Mariel
noticed that the silence was total. Whenever they talked their voices echoed
spectrally around the gaunt trees. To cheer things up a bit, Tarquin twanged
his harolina and began a ditty.
"Old
missus hedgehog, here's what she likes, A little fat husband with lots of
spikes, And a quarrel with a squirrel Who wears flowers round his middle, And a
chestnut for her supper on a winter's night ..."
211
He came
to a faltering halt as Stonehead turned his great golden eyes upon him.
"Do
you have to make that silly noise, rabbit? One more song out of you and I'll
wrap that hare-liner thing round your skull! This is bad country; we don't want
to attract attention to ourselves, do you hear me?"
Tarquin
walked behind Durry and Dandin, muttering under his breath, "Sure sign of
a savage, no appreciation of good music. Huh, bet the bally feller wouldn't
complain if it was a piece of boiled Flitchaye instead of a piece of beautiful
music."
"Aye,"
Durry whispered back, "an' what's a poor lad t' do, wanderin' round like
an ant lost in a dark well bottom? What I wouldn't give fer a flagon of my ol'
nuncle's giggly juice right now."
Mariel
watched the back of Stonehead's enormous figure, sometimes hopping before them,
other times winging low between the trees. How he knew the way westward was a
mystery to her. She had lost all sense of time and distance, tramping through
this eerie world.
Quite
suddenly, after what seemed an endless trek, Stonehead fluttered onto a fallen
tree and turned to them. "This is it, Swampdark land! Never go any further
than here myself! Not afraid of it, just don't like the place! Right, you're on
your own now. I won't say good luck, because you'll end up dead or devoured,
I'm sure of it! Always remember, though, if you ever get back to my part of the
forest give me a call! We McGurneys aren't the wisest owls anywhere, but it's
an acorn to an appletree we're the bravest!"
With
that he was gone, winging away through the trees before they had a chance to
thank him or say goodbye.
Dandin
sat on the fallen tree and undid his knapsack. "Well, goodbye, Stonehead
McGurney. I'm starving. Let's sit here awhile and have lunch in peace for a
change. Golly, look at this!"
They
climbed up onto the fallen trunk, staring in the
212
direction
they would be taking. It was practically pitch-black. Low-hanging trees with
heavy weed trailing from them held out knotted and gnarled branches like
predatory claws waiting to seize the unwary traveler. The ground was a greeny
brown with odd clumps of blue and white flowers sticking up. Through it all ran
several raised paths, humps of solid rocky earth which meandered off in various
directions. The whole scene was one of complete depression; it weighed on their
spirits like a millstone.
"Oh,
corks, you chaps. The place is enough t' give a bod the complete pip just
lookin' at it, wot?"
Mariel
busied herself collecting twigs and dry bark. "Doesn't it just! Well, I'll
tell you what I'm going to do —light a fire and cook up something tasty. Who
knows the next time we'll get a decent feed, roaming through that lot!"
The
suggestion was wholeheartedly endorsed. With flint and tinder they soon had a
merry blaze going. The gloom was dispelled temporarily as they delved through
their packs.
"Let's
toast some o' these liddle mushrooms an' wrap some apples in wet leaves to
bake." Durry was toasting away even as he spoke. Dandin took a bite at one
of Thunderbeak's scones. He winced and held the side of his jaw.
"Ouch!
I wonder how many seasons ago these were baked!"
Tarquin
chuckled. "We could always sling 'em at any enemies we meet."
Dandin
rummaged farther down his knapsack. Suddenly he gave a cheer. "Look, it's
my flute! I'd forgotten that I'd packed it—must've stuck in my pack lining.
Thank goodness the Flitchaye never found it. Well well, can you beat that,
eh—the flute of my ancestor Gonff the Thief. Let's see if it still sounds all
right."
Trilling
an old Abbey reel called "Otter in the Orchard," Dandin set his
companions' paws to tapping
213
as the
music skirled and tootled around the lonely trees. Hot food, a glowing fire and
merry music lifted the spirits of the travelers. Even the blinking eyes that
watched them from the dark swamp stopped winking and stayed wide open with
fascination as they awaited the travelers' next move into their miry world.
oo
Fleetleg,
Shorebuck and Longeyes returned from the south beaches patrol to
Salamandastron. They were first back. The hares found little welcome; the
mountain chambers were deserted. Longeyes saw something at the doorway of the badger
Lord's forge room: deep-scored marks in the solid rock. He groaned in despair.
"Lord Rawnblade did this with his bare claws, gouged the rockface like
this. I knew it would happen someday."
Shorebuck
ran his paws across the scars in the solid rock. "The Bloodwrath has come
upon Rawnblade Wide stripe!"
Fleetleg
picked up his lance. "Come on. We must find him. No badger Lord has
suffered the Bloodwrath since Boar the Fighter. But be careful. Rawnblade might
kill anybeast foolish enough to stand in his way."
oo
The fog
had long dispersed. Beneath the high bright sun on the tideline the three hares
found the results of their Lord's terrible madness. Fully a hundred searat
corpses drifted and rolled in the shallows around the reef, hewn, hacked or
cleaved through. Blood spattered the stones and swirled in the water, broken
swords and shattered spears decorated the rocks. Shorebuck slumped against the
reef, his eyes shut to blot out the awful carnage.
"So
this is why he got rid of us, sent out all the patrols. I've seen battlefields
before, but never anything like this!"
Fleetleg
leaned upon his lance. "It is written that a badger Lord can slay many
when the Bloodwrath is
214
upon
him, but how did these searats come here? Where is their ship?"
Longeyes
had been wading around the west side of the reef. He called out, "Here,
round here. There's one still alive!"
The
searat was mortally wounded. With his life ebbing fast he gasped out what he
had witnessed.
"Ship
. . . Waveblade, ran onto the reef in fog, stuck and holed. Cap'n Orgeye . . .
waited until fog went. We fixed ship up, here on reef . . . waitin' for tide to
lift us off ... Ohhhh . . . ohhhh . . . monster! Badger came rushing out of sea
. . . Eulaliaaaaa!"
Longeye
cradled the searat's head on his lap. "That was Rawnblade!"
"Rawn
. . . blade ... I don't know. Giant . . . water rushin' off his armor, spikes,
studs, silver metal . . . Like some wild beast out of the sea. Aaaaahhhh! That
sword, like a great jib boom. We didn't stand a chance! D'ye hear me, mates? .
. . Fivescore searat fighters an' we didn't stand a chance! Roarin', shoutin',
'Gorsepaw! Crocus! Sergeant Learunner! Killin', slayin' ... I tell yer, mates
..."
Longeye
looked at Fleetleg. "Sergeant Learunner, wasn't he your father?"
Fleetleg
stared out to sea. "Aye, Gorsepaw and Crocus were brother and sister
too—my brother and sister. I was only a newborn infant then. Our mother never
lasted more than a season after they died. Rawnblade reared me and when I was
old enough he told me that he had found them floating on the tideline,
delivered there by Gabool and his searats."
The
injured searat lifted his head and stared at Fleetleg. "Screamin',
shriekin' an' a-wailin' . . . An' dyin' . . . Dyin'!"
The
searat's head lolled to one side. He died with eyes wide open, horror frozen on
his face as his spirit sailed for Hellgates.
215
Somewhere
out on the blue deeps of the crested sea, the ship Waveblade ran before
whichever course the wind chanced to take her. Summer breezes sent spray
skimming over the decks, washing them clean of blood and battlestain. Stretched
out on the forecastle, oblivious to all about him, Rawnblade Widestripe slept
deeply, still fully armored, his great sword hanging loosely from one paw,
unmindful of the stinging salt water which dewed his fresh scars. The awful
Bloodwrath had left him; he knew not when it would visit him again. He slept
on, as peaceful as any infant at its mother's side.
216
Evening
shadows began closing in on a cloudless sky as the sun reddened and began its
descent into the west. The stones of Redwall took from it their dusky red brown
hue; heat shimmer on the flatlands gave way to purplish twilight. Gabriel Quill
had relieved Saxtus on the walltop. The fat cellarmaster yawned, looked north
along the path, blinked and rubbed his eyes before calling across to the west
ramparts:
"Sister
Serena, marm. What d'you make of this 'ere?"
Serena
hurried across. Shielding her eyes with a paw, she peered shortsightedly in the
direction Gabe was pointing.
"Hmm,
don't know, Mr. Quill. Very pretty, though. It looks like a lot of party
lanterns bobbing along the path, little golden lights ..."
Rufe
Brush came bounding up the steps. He caught the last phrase. "Little
golden lights? Where? Oh, by the fur of my fathers! Sister, those little golden
lights are fire! Torches, being carried toward the Abbey. I'll sound the
alarm!"
In a
twinkling Rufe was down from the ramparts, across the lawn and up in the half-finished
bell tower. Grabbing the wooden cudgels, he began pounding on the hollow log.
217
Thonkthonkathonkthonkathonkthonkathonkl
oo
As soon
as the sound reached his ears, Graypatch sent the rope and grapnel brigade
dashing into the woods on the east side of the path. Jumping across the ditch
onto the flatlands with his own contingent, he stood with a thin smile playing
on his lips, watching Bigfang.
"Rush
'em an' burn the gates, eh, shipmate. Well, it was your idea in the first
place, so go to it, matey, go to it!"
Desperation
and fear showed in Bigfang's face as the flickering torchlights illuminated it.
He knew the element of surprise had gone with the sounding of the Abbey alarm.
Furthermore there were only seven proper searats with him. Graypatch had sent
them more to keep the oarslaves in line and watch his performance than to fight
alongside Bigfang. Oarslaves and a frightened squirrel—that was all he had with
him. Graypatch was trying to get him killed —that much was obvious. Bigfang
laughed, a half-hearty cackle that grated on his own ears. He tried to sound
belligerent in his reply.
"I'll
burn 'em out, matey, never fear. Just make sure you're there to back us up and
rush in when we do!"
oo
Saxtus
and three young otters stood with Flagg over the threshold. Piles of stones
were heaped by them, ready for slinging. Friar Alder, with a mixed group of
moles and mice, ranged the east and west walls, carrying spears in bundles.
They were little more than sharpened yew stakes, but in the right place they
could wreak considerable damage. Foremole headed a group that was in charge of
large baskets of rock and rubble placed around the east and west walls so they
could be conveniently tipped onto foebeast heads below. Sister Sage, Rufe Brush
and Gabe Quill led a small contingent of archers. The Abbey was not a place of
war; as a
218
result
the weapons were sadly piecemeal, ancient and few.
Mellus
paced the walls slowly, her gruff homely voice reassuring the Redwallers, who
were all first-time warriors. "Be calm now, don't panic. They're outside
and we're safe within. Don't go firing or throwing anything. Let them make the
first move. Besides, they may just want to parley."
Flagg
could not help snorting a little. "Just like a fox parleys with a baby
mouse, if you'll pardon me turn of phrase, marm."
Mellus
nodded confidently. "They look more like a bunch of searats than hungry
foxes, though I'm pretty sure they'll find we're not baby mice, by any
means."
oo
Graypatch
walked the far side of the ditch edge until he and his cohort were directly
facing the threshold above Redwall's main gate. Bigfang faltered just short of
the gate, and stood undecided amid the bearers of the blazing torches. There
was an audible silence, finally broken by Saxtus as he called down to
Gray-patch:
"What
do you want this time, rat?"
Graypatch
smiled as he looked from side to side at his searats. Savage, bloodthirsty and
eager, each one a picture of barbarism, decked out in their tawdry finery, they
displayed an array of the most fearsome-looking weapons.
"We
want this Abbey. You might have known we'd come back. Why don't you just give
up now while you're all still alive, save yourselves and us a great lot of
trouble?"
Saxtus
picked up a sharpened stake and held it ready to throw. "It's no trouble,
rat. Why don't you turn your vermin round, go back the way you came and save
yourselves the trouble."
The
searat Captain decided the time for talking was
219
over.
He raised his sword, yelling at the top of his lungs:
"Attack!
Kiiilll!"
Saxtus
dropped to one side as an arrow sped by his head. Straightening up, he hurled
the spear hard at Graypatch.
The
searat saw it coming and ducked. Unfortunately there was another rat standing
directly behind him who took the hurtling spear straight through his middle. He
fell with an earsplitting scream.
The
battle was joined!
Mellus
watched as Bigfang and his gang of torch-bearers made a rush at the gates.
Straightaway she countered the move.
"Foremole,
rubble over here, quick! Aim it down onto them. Try not to kill the
slaves!"
Foremole
and his crew hurtled the baskets of mixed rock and rubble over the parapet
wall. Bigfang was about to swing his torch at the gates when the first basket
hit him, extinguishing the flames as it stunned him. He lay spread on the path.
The oarslaves backed off, but Frink and Fishgill threw their torches. One hit
the gates and bounced back, but the other fell just right, at the bottom of the
woodwork. Flagg was about to see to it when he tripped over Saxtus. The young
mouse was crouching down, head in paws, sobbing uncontrollably. The big otter
grabbed hold of him.
"Saxtus,
matey, are you all right? Have ye been wounded?"
Blinded
by tears and hardly able to speak, Saxtus shook his head. "Oh, Flagg, I've
just killed a living creature. It's horrible! One moment he was alive, and
suddenly my spear hit him. Did you hear him scream? He's dead, Flagg. . , .
Dead, and I killed him!"
Flagg
turned to Mellus as she passed. "They've fired the gates. See what you can
do, marm. I'll be with you in a moment."
Flagg
raised Saxtus's tearstained face with a rough
220
paw.
"None of us wants to kill anybeast, matey, but this is a war! It's kill or
be killed now. We're not just protectin' our own skins, there's the whole of
Redwall an' what it stands for. What about that dormitory of Dibbuns— do you
want t' see them slain by searats? Make no mistake about it, young 'un, those
rats'Il kill us all if they conquer our Abbey. Come on now, Saxtus, me old
Cully. Let's see you up on your paws defendin' your home!"
Saxtus
wiped away his tears. Grabbing his sling, he fitted a rock and sent it hurtling
into the searats.
"Come
on, fight, you dirty cowards. You won't conquer us!"
Rocks
and spears, arrows and lances filled the air, zinging backwards and forwards
between searat and Redwaller. Mother Mellus and three moles, Buxton, Drubber
and Danty, rolled a barrel of water from the Abbey pond to damp down the back
of the gates. Fore-mole and his crew hurled baskets of earth over the ramparts
to smother the flames licking up the front of the gates.
Grubb
the baby mole, together with the little twin otters Bagg and Runn, had escaped
from the dormitory. Wakened by the noise and clangor of battle, they decided to
take part and distinguish themselves as warriors. Wandering through the
deserted kitchens inside the Abbey, they searched for suitable armament. Bagg
gave a shout. "Whohoa! Looka these!"
Friar
Alder's large vegetable chopping knives lay sharp and gleaming upon the worn
worktable. They selected one each, dancing about and waving the dangerous
blades.
"Heehee,
let's make searat pies!"
"I'm
goin' to chop their chief's head right off. Choppo!"
"Burrhurr,
this hinfant'll skin 'ee a few. OiTl make they squeal!"
221
Creeping
out onto the Abbey lawn, they ducked behind some bushes as Mellus and the moles
hurried by, trundling another big barrelful of water toward the main gate. Runn
held a paw to his lips.
"Ssshh!
Come on, this way."
They
mastered the steps to the top of the north wall near the east end, helping each
other to scramble up the big roughhewn stone stairs, pushing the knives ahead
of them as they went. At the top an argument broke out over which knife
belonged to whom.
"Hey,
that's my knife—this one's yours!"
"No,
Tain't—I had the pointy one with the brown handle."
"Yurr,
give yon knoifer t' me—moin were the big 'un."
As they
were sorting out the weaponry, a three-hooked grapnel narrowly missed Bagg's
head. It caught a crack in the stones, and the rope attached to it was pulled
taut. Grubb patted Bagg's head.
"Boi
'okey, that were near a gudd shot. It nurly went roight daown you'm ear!"
The
whirring and clanking of grapnels increased as all along the east wall metal
hooks clamped into stonework cracks and ropes pulled twangingly tight. Runn
climbed up on Grubb's head and peered down into the forest darkness.
"It's
searats, lads. Climbin' up the ropes to get in here!"
Bagg
glanced over to the west wall, where the battle was concentrated. "Huh, no
good a-shoutin' f'r that lot, they got enough t' do. 'Sides, Ma Mellus'd tan
our hides an' make us go back t' bed an' not give us no breakfast tomorrow an'
keep us in our room all day an-"
Grubb
placed a grimy paw over Bagg's mouth. "Oh, tell oi no more 'orrible
stories, otter. Usn's cut 'ee ropes wi' our gurt knoifs. Hoa hoa! 'Ee rats'll
fall bump on
222
they
bottems when 'ee ropes do be cutted. Oi'll start in 'ee middle, you two come
frum both ends, hurr hurr!"
Kybo
was nearly at the top of the wall. Holding his sword between his teeth, he
looked back at the others swarming up the ropes, their eyes glinting
triumphantly through the darkness as they hauled themselves upward, claw over
claw. It was a great distance from the walltop to the woodland floor, and Kybo
was not too fond of heights. He partially closed his eyes and tried not to look
down, staring at the wallface in front as he pulled himself ever higher. The
searat's claw was about to stretch up and grab the battlement at the walltop,
when there was an ominous chuckle, a sawing noise and a discordant twang as the
rope parted company with the metal grapnel it had been lashed to.
"Oh
noooooooooo!"
Kybo
sailed outward from the walltop and dropped like a stone.
Several
searats looked up in amazement, their eyes following Kybo as he plunged to the
dark floor far below. In a very short time ropes were popping and cracking as
they were sliced through by the Redwall Friar's keen vegetable knives. The thud
of bodies and the terrified screams of searats filled the night air. One rat
plunged earthward without a sound, staring in puzzlement at the loose rope
still firmly clenched in his claws.
Bagg,
Runn and Grubb were truly having fun. It took only three slices to cut through
the toughest rope, stretched taut as they were.
"A
wunn, a two, an' a three, an' away 'ee do go, vermint!" Grubb chanted
happily.
And
away the "vermint" did go, with a loud wail of despair!
oo
Meanwhile,
at the Abbey front Graypatch had drastically changed his opinion of the
creatures he once called
223
bumpkins;
the accuracy of their stone-slinging had driven him and his searats off the
flatlands and down into the ditch. Shaking with frustration, he ducked smartly
as another salvo of rocks and homemade spears rattled overhead. The fire at the
gates had been smothered under heaps of rubble. Bigfang was still lying
senseless on the path; Frink, Fishgill and some others had their claws fully
occupied trying to catch the little oarslaves, some of whom had crossed the
ditch and were dodging about on the flatlands. Dripnose scrambled along the
ditch bed to Gray patch. He was nursing a fractured limb, keeping his head well
down as missiles rained in from above.
"Aagh!
These creatures fight like mad things, Cap'n!"
"What
did you expect them to do, weevilbrain— throw flowers at us?"
"Maybe
not, but we're out of spears an' arrows. The crew are havin' to make do with
throwin' back the stuff that's been flung at us. Huh, they don't seem t' be
short of arms atop o' that wall."
Graypatch
spat contemptuously. "Homemade rubbish! There's not a proper sword or
cutlass between the lot of 'em. Just wait till Kybo an' his buckos come over
their precious wall —we'll soon sort out the warriors from the wetnoses!"
Deadglim
was nearby. He shook his head doubtfully.
"Well,
where is Kybo an' the rest? They've been around there long enough to build a
blasted wall, never mind climb one!"
A
second later he regretted the outburst as Graypatch turned to him. "Avast
there, smartmouth. Get yourself round to the back of the east wall an' see
what's keepin' 'em. Look lively now. Dripnose, get Lardgutt an' see if you can
drag that oaf Bigfang back down the ditch here. He's neither use nor ornament
lyin' spark out on that
path."
oo
Mother
Mellus seized a full basket of rubble and heaved
224
it
toward the ditch with a mighty effort. The screams and curses from below
confirmed her accuracy. She winked at a group of enthusiastic slingthrowers.
"That's the stuff to give 'em. Keep it up —we've got them pinned down
tight. How are you doing, Saxtus?"
The
young mouse dodged a flying rock and slung one smartly back. "Fine, marm,
just fine. Though it's all a bit puzzling; I've noticed that we only seem to be
fighting about thirty or so searats, and they had nearly a hundred by Flagg's
count. Where's the rest of 'em?"
The
badger weighed a large chunk of rock in both paws as she pondered the question.
"I don't know, really. I wasn't counting. Maybe we'd better check around
the walls to see they're not laying some sort of trap. You take the south wall
and I'll cover the eas— Oh, thundering fur! The east wall, look, there's Dibbuns
over there!"
The
three small comrades in arms were looking for more ropes to cut when Mellus,
Saxtus and Flagg descended upon them.
"You
naughty little rascals! What are you doing out of your beds, eh?"
"Burr,
us'n's oanly a-cutt —"
"Give
me those knives this instant! You could have cut the paws off yourselves,
playing around with them. Oh, you scallywags!"
"But
we was on'y savin' the Abbey!"
"Not
another word, do you hear me! Wait until Friar Alder sees his best vegetable
chopping knives. I wouldn't like to be in your fur!"
Flagg
picked up a three-pronged grappling hook. "Hold on there, marm. Look at
this —there's lots of 'em lyin' about. I wonder where they came from."
Grubb
shook his paw severely at Mother Mellus. "That's what oi be tryin' a-tell
'ee, missus. 'Twere us'n's who chopped 'ee ropes off'n they 'ooks."
"But
we won't nex' time if you start a-shoutin' an' a-scoldin'. So there!"
225
Saxtus
was peering over the wall. "Golly! Look at this!"
Upward
of half a dozen searats had been killed by the fall, impaled on broken branches
or crushed by their falling comrades. The rest lay about in a pitiful state,
moaning as they nursed broken and aching limbs. Flagg scratched his whiskers in
disbelief.
"Well,
give me fins an' call me a fish! So that's what the rest of the pesky vermin
were up to ..."
Grubb
shook his furry head. "Not oop, maister. Only arfways oop!"
Saxtus
laughed loud at the joke, but his merriment withered under Mellus's icy stare.
Flagg, however, was shaking paws, hugging and patting the three Dibbuns.
"Well
done, fellers. Strike me, you saved the Abbey an' no mistake!"
Bagg
and Runn sat against the wall, rubbing their eyes and yawning. The badger swept
them up, one in each big paw. She tried to look stern but could not help
smiling.
"Come
on, heroes. Bed for you three, and stay there this time."
Grubb
rode down the wallsteps piggyback upon Flagg's broad back. "Oim not
afeared of nobeast. Mar-then 'ee Wurrier, that be oi!"
oo
Graypatch
stood out on the path, his sword tight at Pakatugg's neck as he called up to
the ramparts, "Truce, or I kill the squirrel!"
Rufe
Brush slackened off his sling. "Truce then. Speak your piece, rat."
All
along the west and north walls the defenders put aside their missiles to
listen. Graypatch stood in a pool of moonlight and delivered his message:
"Stop
throwing and let us withdraw."
Rufe
chuckled scornfully. "Had enough, mangy chops?"
226
Pakatugg
squealed slightly as the sword pressed closer. Graypatch was in no mood to
bandy insults.
"Aye,
we've had enough . . . For one try. You may have won the battle but I'll win
the war. Now let us walk away in peace, or this one dies."
Simeon
appeared, leaning on his friend the Abbot. "Go then. You could have done
that anytime without threatening the life of a helpless squirrel."
At a
signal from Graypatch the defeated searats began their retreat north along the
path. Graypatch could not resist a parting shot.
"Wait
and wonder when we will return, mouse-then you will really see what a battle is
like."
Simeon
turned his head in the direction of Gray-patch's voice. "Alas, I will
never see anything for I am blind; but I can sense a lot. I can feel you are
both evil and desperate. They say you have only one eye. I am surprised at
you—even a fool with half an eye could see that you will never triumph against
good if you are evil."
227
After
their meal and a short rest, the four travelers struck off westward once more,
into the gloomy dark swampland.
Mariel
took the lead. Peering into the deceptive half-light, she chose a relatively
straight path. The other three followed her in single file along the raised
trail, avoiding smooth slippery rocks and testing each fraction of the way with
hesitant paws. To both sides of them the overhanging trees grew out of
stagnant-smelling smoothness, which occasionally threw up a liquid bubble,
betraying the treacherous nature of its surface.
Durry
sounded apprehensive. "Oh, nuncle, it wouldn't do a poor lad much good to
fall in there."
Dandin
brought up the rear of the file, his paw on Durry's shoulder. "Aye, be
careful and take your time. I just wish it were a bit lighter in here—it's like
trying to plow your way through pea soup, all muggy and dark green. What is it
we have to beware in here? The wart-skinned toad?"
Second
in line, Tarquin turned his head slightly as he spoke.
"Not
a sign of the old wart-skinned blighter. I hope we're goin' the right way,
trail leader old gel."
Mariel
kept her eyes straight ahead. "As far as I can
228
see, we
are. I chose the longest and straightest of the paths. Aha! What's that up
ahead? Stop a minute, please."
They
halted. Directly ahead of them a light was shining in the gloom, a small
flickering golden glow. It stopped, hovering farther up the path. When Mariel
moved forward again, it moved also. Dandin recalled the rhyme.
"Beware
the light that shows the way!"
"Right
you are, Dandin old lad, wot? There's the very light we've jolly well got to
watch out for."
Mariel
halted once more. "Lie down and be still, you three."
They
dropped down and lay perfectly still. Mariel flattened herself against the path
and began inching forward. This time the light remained still, glowing a short
way above the trail.
Durry
lifted his head for a quick peep. "Where's she a-goin' to?"
Dandin
stifled the hedgehog's mouth with his paw. "Ssshhh! Keep quiet and be
still, Durry."
Mariel's
crawling figure had now disappeared into the murky gloom. Ahead of them the
light still glowed steadily. They waited with bated breath, pressing themselves
flat to the earth. Suddenly from along the path a dismayed croak sounded,
followed by a whoop from Mariel and the familiar thwack of Gullwhacker.
Springing up, the three travelers made their way along the path as speedily as
circumstances would allow.
The
mousemaid stood over a stunned toad. It was an indescribably ugly specimen,
completely covered in large wartlike growths. In one paw Mariel twirled her
Gullwhacker, while in the other she held a curious contrivance. It was a
lantern on a small carrying frame, wonderfully made from thin-cut rock crystal.
Inside the lantern half a dozen fat fireflies buzzed, giving off a pale golden
light.
229
Mariel
prodded the toad lightly. "Two puzzles solved with one Gullwhacker: the
wart-skinned toad and the light that shows the way. Three, in fact—take a look
ahead."
By the
light of the lantern, they saw that the path ended sharply a short distance
from where they stood.
Durry
shivered. "If we'd follered that 'orrible beast with his light we would've
gone ploppo! Right into that swamp!"
Dandin
prised a rock from the trail. "Aye, ploppo is the right word!" He
threw the rock into the swamp. It disappeared, making a small hole which
swiftly filled in, leaving the surface undisturbed.
The
wart-skinned toad was beginning to recover, groaning pitifully and rubbing his
head with slimy webbed paws. Mariel thumped the Gullwhacker down close to the
repulsive creature.
"Want
some more?" she inquired.
The
toad recoiled in fear. "Muurraakk! No more. Rrrreb!"
Dandin
unsheathed his sword and tickled the creature's nose. "Listen, I don't
know what your game is but we want to get out of this place and you're going to
lead us. Understood?"
Still
rubbing its head, it nodded unhappily.
Dandin
turned to Mariel. "Right, let's get going. Keep this creature in the
lead."
"
Kwirraawwwk!"
The
wart-skinned toad took off with a sideward leap at the swamp. Dandin reacted swiftly,
but not fast enough. He barely grabbed the toad's back leg as it sailed through
the air. The toad flopped into the swamp, pulling Dandin off balance. With a
squeak of dismay he toppled from the raised path, slithering on its sloping
side for an instant before plunging bodily into the treacherous ooze. Spreading
its bulk flat and extending its webs, the wart-skinned toad slithered off
230
across
the swamp surface, leaving behind Dandin, who was rapidly disappearing into the
bottomless waste.
"Help,
do something, I'm being sucked under!"
Holding
Tarquin's paw, Mariel stretched out, flicking her Gullwhacker toward Dandin.
"Here, catch on to this!"
Dandin
struggled to reach the rope, without avail. The swamp had pulled him in up to
his neck now. Tarquin threw his harolina to Dandin. "Here, old lad, put
both y' paws on top of this. It might help to keep you up!"
Dandin
did as he was told, but he could feel the tug of the swamp, and panic filled
him completely.
"Help!
Oh, help me, someone!"
An
urgent voice was whispering to Mariel, "The tree! The tree!"
She
looked up at the tree hanging low overhead and immediately understood.
Clambering up into the tree, she edged out along a thick dipping bough. Below
her she could see Dandin, ashen-faced as he hung on to the harolina, the swamp
oozing around his chin and lips.
"Hold
on, Dandin. Hold on!"
Knotting
Gullwhacker tight to the end of the bough, she called out, "Tarquin,
Durry, get up here and lean on this branch, belly down!"
Without
questioning Mariel, they clambered up into the tree, scrambling out along the
branch until they were close to her. Both Tarquin and Durry followed Mariel's
example, straddling the bough stomachs down, jerking to exert more pressure on
the limb.
The
swamp had closed over Dandin's mouth. He took a final breath as it started to
flood into his nostrils, fighting back the welling panic as it oozed around his
eyes.
Mariel
felt the branch bend lower. Grabbing Dandin's outstretched paws, she noosed the
Gullwhacker tight
231
around
them, calling to her companions, "Back off now. Back along the branch.
Quick!"
Following
them with all speed, she managed to cry out as they hung over the path.
"Jump!"
The
swamp had sucked Dandin under, his head disappeared from view.
Mariel,
Durry and Tarquin jumped heavily from the tree to the path, falling in an
awkward heap atop each other.
The
bough straightened with a tremendous rush. Dandin was hauled clear of the swamp
with a huge squelching plop\
He hung
there, dangling above the swamp at the rope's end by both paws, covered from
ears to tail in thick foul mud. Pulling the sword from where it stood quivering
on the trailside where Dandin had dropped it, Tarquin leaned out, supported by
Mariel and Durry. Holding the sword by its blade, he hooked the crosstree hilt
into Dandin's belt and pulled him in. Mariel and Durry grabbed Dandin's limp
body. Tarquin swung the sword upward with a mighty slash, severing the end of
the bough that the Gulhvhacker was tied to. All four fell back in a heap on the
pathside.
While
Tarquin undid the knots to free Dandin's paws, Mariel poured water from their
flasks over his face, washing away the ooze that caked it. Durry forced his
mouth open whilst Mariel poured water into it. Dandin struggled feebly and
coughed. Mariel sighed her relief. Her voice choking with emotion for her
friend, she tried to sound busy and practical.
"Thank
goodness for that. I thought he was gone for a moment there."
Tears
were flowing down Durry Quill's homely face as he joked. "Our Dandin a
goner? Naw, he'll be a'right, I 'member Father Abbot sayin' he use to eat
mudpies when he were a Dibbun. Hahahaboohoo!"
232
Laughing
and crying at the same time, Durry hugged Dandin's paw.
A fire
was lit, though only a small one with the limited supply of fuel in the swamp.
Tarquin took a turn at making some mushroom and turnip broth while Mariel
tended to Dandin. The young mouse had recovered sufficiently to sit up. He
looked away from the darklands swamp and shuddered.
"Uuuuuuhhhhh!
It filled my nose and eyes and sucked me under. Right under! It was horrible.
I'll never forget it as long as I live!"
Mariel
patted his back gently. "There, there, it's all right, you're safe now.
Good job you thought of the tree, Durry."
The
hedgehog looked at her oddly. "I didn't mention no tree, missy."
"Oh,
it must have been Tarquin then. Thank you, Tarquin."
"Don't
mention it, old thing, but y'don't mind me sayin', what tree?"
"You
mean it wasn't you who said, 'the tree, the tree'?"
"Nope,
sorry, must've bin some other beastie."
Dandin
and Mariel looked at each other. Dandin smiled.
"Aye,
the same one who told me to hold my paws up straight after I went under. Good
old Martin the Warrior."
After a
few hours they were able to resume their journey, backtracking until they found
another path which looked fairly straight and safe. Mariel walked in front,
holding the wart-skinned toad's lantern; it made the visibility slightly
better. Tarquin followed at the rear, cleaning mud from his harolina.
"Supreme
sacrifice, wot? Chap keepin' another chap afloat in a bally swamp with his
harolina. Not many'd do that y'know. Bet Hon Rosie'd think it was a jolly
233
noble
effort on my part—fact I'm sure she would!" He turned to the big frilled
lizard that was following him. "I mean to say, a chap's harolina is a very
personal possession, wot? Omigosh! Eulaliaaa!"
Tarquin
suddenly brained the lizard with the harolina, knocking it flying into the
swamp. Other lizards sinuously scaled up from the sloping pathsides where they
had been following the travelers. There were at least twenty or thirty, an
assortment of newts and frilled lizards, their reptilian tongues flickering in
and out as they watched the four travelers through cold basilisk eyes.
Durry
threw up his paws in despair. "Lackaday, what now? We've 'ad sticklegs,
pikes, adders, Flit-chaye, mad owls, a warty toad, an' now this, dragons! My
nuncle Gabe wouldn't believe a word iffen I told him. More like he'd say that I
'ad been a-drinkin' of his strong blackberry wine. Mariel, tell a poor lad
who's far from home, what do we do now?"
It was
a strange scene. They stood on the trail, holding a hasty conference/ watched
by the silent unblinking lizards.
"We
have two choices, Durry: stand and fight, or make a run for it."
Dandin
drew his sword. "I'm with you, Mariel. Just say the word!"
"Now
steady in the ranks there, chaps," Tarquin interrupted. "I've already
cracked a valuable harolina on one blinkin' reptile's bonce. Hold fast a
moment, will you. I could be mistaken, but just a moment ago I swear I felt a
bit of a light zephyr."
Durry
wrinkled his snout. "A what?"
"A
light zephyr, me old scout. A vagrant breeze, a fortunate breath, a bally puff
of wind, in fact. Just give me a moment, will you ..."
Tarquin
walked back down the trail to a tree, brushing aside a newt. "Beg pardon,
old lizard, 'scuse me."
With an
agility which belied his awkward figure, the
234
hare
climbed the tree. He stood on a high branch, paw to forehead, gazing out,
nodded with apparent satisfaction, then descended the trunk swiftly, pushing
through the lizards.
"D'you
fellows mind not hoggin' the trail? Bad form, y'know, idlin' about an' stickin'
your flippin' tongues in an' out like that."
Returning
through the dumbfounded lizards to his companions, Tarquin murmured under his
breath to Mariel, "Tarquin L. Woodsorrel reportin' back, marm. Don't show
too much excitement, but I could see the sea from up in that tree, about a
couple of hours' good hike from where we are. Does that alter the situation?
Just thought you ought t' know, bein' expedition leader an' all that."
Dandin
gave a wriggle of suppressed joy. "The sea! Well, that does change things,
but we've still got these lizards to contend with. Look, there's more coming
out of the swamp."
The
lizards from the mud joined their fellows upon the trail, waving long,
prehensile tails and strutting about slowly with sinuous reptilian grace.
Mariel
weighed the situation carefully. "Hmrn, they haven't made any move to
attack us yet. Maybe it's just a display of strength in numbers, though if we
made a run for it they could easily stop us. This is their territory, they know
it better than we do, and we're outnumbered at least ten to one. Right, one
thing's clear— we can't stand here much longer or something's bound to happen.
I've got an idea that might work. Hold my Gullwhacker and give me that sword,
Dandin. Don't ask questions, just trust me."
Wordlessly
Dandin gave her the sword. Turning from her companions, the mousemaid faced the
gathering of reptiles crowding the path. "Which one of you is the
leader?"
There
was no reply. The lizards merely stood staring at her.
235
"Don't
you have a chief, some creature in command?"
Further
silence. Mariel brandished the sword of Martin. She gave a great leap and
yelled, "Redwaaaalll! I am Mariel the Warrior. I'll fight you all together
or one at a time! Come on, send your best killer out here and I'll meet him in
combat! Lizards don't bother me, buckos. I've ate lizard stew before
today."
Behind
her she could hear Durry and the others snorting to suppress a fit of laughing
giggles.
"Sounds
like Mariel Stonehead to me!"
"Lizard
stew? Oh I say, that's goin' it a bit!"
"D'you
reckon they can understand her? Teeheehee!"
Mariel
ignored them. She approached a large crested lizard who stood half a head above
the rest.
"What
about you, sliptongue? You're big and lazy enough to be a chief. Do you fancy
your chance against Mariel the Warrior?"
The
lizard blinked, turned slowly and walked majestically away, with Mariel shaking
the sword at it.
"So,
you're not only dumb, but cowardly with it! Well, let me tell you, slimenose,
if any of your tribe try attacking my friends, you're the first one I'm coming
after. I'll chop off your tail and stuff it up your nose! We're leaving now. I
hope you'll heed my warning!"
Swaggering
outrageously, the mousemaid joined her companions, telling them from the side
of her mouth, "Right. Get moving. I'll stay at the back. Don't run, keep
it to a brisk walk. Off we go!"
Tarquin
led the way, almost helpless with laughter. "Good egg, Dandin. Did y'see
that swagger? Hohoho, I thought she was going to wriggle clear out of her skin.
Never seen anythin' so funny in all me life, young mouse."
"Haha,
and did you see the way that big lizard looked at her when she called him
slimenose? Cawhaw! His face was a picture."
236
"Chop
off his tail 'n' stuff it up his nose!"
Mariel
stifled a chuckle, picturing herself as the others saw her. "Don't laugh
too much, pals— they're still following us."
And
sure enough they were. Still silent, tongues flickering, eyes fixed staringly
on the travelers' backs, the pack of lizards followed at an even pace.
"Not
to worry, chums," Tarquin called back. "I can feel that breeze quite
clearly now. Hey, d'you suppose the big chappie'd give me a ride on his back if
I asked him nicely? After all, we are going the same way, aren't
we
00
Two
hours later the swamp thinned out, overhanging trees became few and far
between, and the path petered off, giving way to firm ground and fragrant
gorse-bushes. But the greatest joy to the four travelers was the clear blue
summer sky overhead. After days of dark forest and swamp, the fresh air tasted
like springwater to them. They halted and looked back to the darkland swamp.
The lizards were gathered on its fringes, still silent, flickering-tongued and
beady-eyed, though some of them were preening and stretching in the sudden
warmth of the sun, settling themselves down languorously to bask.
Free
now of the reptilian threat, Mariel and her friends could not resist shouting
their humorous goodbyes.
"Cheerio,
you baggy-skinned blighters. Don't get your noses too muddy in the jolly old
swamp, wot wot!"
"Bye-bye,
tonguepullers. Give our regards to the old warty-skinned toad!"
"Yes,
goodbye, you great bunch of dumbos. By the way, I've never tasted lizard stew before—
it'd prob'ly make me sick. 'Bye now!"
"Ta-ta,
vermints. D'you think you could make your
237
way to
our Abbey someday, just in case my nuncle Gabe don't believe me when I tell 'm
about 'ee?"
Across
the gorsefields they trekked, toward a range of high hills which fronted the
westerly edge. Seabirds wheeled in the sky above while the irrepressible
Tarquin strummed away on his cracked harolina.
"O,
I wouldn't go through the swamps no more,
Not for
an Abbot's feast.
Not
even for a kiss from Rosie dear,
Though
she's a lovely beast.
Give me
the summer sunshine,
Don't
mind a cloud or two,
Rather
than that bally bog
And a
pot of lizard stew!"
238
Graypatch
and his searats were back sooner than any creature at Redwall Abbey expected.
Smarting from the ignominious defeat and with the crew beginning to mutter
behind his back again, the searat Captain decided to turn the tide in his favor
with a shock attack.
He
camped his crew farther up the path for the remainder of the night, waking them
at dawn light to explain his scheme.
"Fire-swingers!
That's the thing, buckos—the old fire-swingers!"
Bigfang
was feeling a bit cocky now Graypatch's first attack had failed.
"Fire-swingers me tail! I already tried fire, an' it didn't work. What's
so good about your plan?"
Graypatch
ridiculed Bigfang. "I'll tell you, matey. My plan'll work because I've got
a brain an' you haven't. Rush the gate an' set fire to it—huh, I could think of
a better plan than that in a storm at sea with both claws tied behind me back.
So you either shut up an' listen, or I'll cut you loose in this country to fend
for yerself, unnerstand?"
Bigfang
subsided into sullen silence while Graypatch continued.
"Cut
up all those lengths of rope we used for grap-
239
nels,
tie rocks to the ends, all wrapped in dead grass an' soaked with lamp oil.
That'll make good fire-swingers. Now, we sneaks along that there ditch so's
those Redwallers don't see us a-comin'. Then we gets out on the flatland,
lights up our fire-swingers an' twirls 'em an' hurls 'em. Think of it, mates—a
good fire-swinger has more range than any weapon, so they won't be able to
touch us with bows or lances or spears. We can stand around all season flingin'
fire into their precious Abbey, an' they can't do a thing about it. Sooner or
later some part of the buildin' will take flame. Haharr, then they'll be ready
to talk terms, or be roasted alive. Well, what d'ye say, shipmates?"
The
scheme was not greeted too enthusiastically, but Graypatch worked upon them,
painting pictures of the good life to come when they would be masters of
Redwall. His eloquence finally won, and they set about making large numbers of
fire-swingers.
oo
Midmorning
at the Abbey found a repair crew clearing away the debris from the previous
night's battle. The front gates had been made good and piles of green branches
and rubble stacked in front to prevent them being set alight again. Because the
normal Abbey routine had been disturbed, a large late breakfast was being
served upon the southern wallsteps. Friar Alder and his young assistant,
Cockleburr, had made crusty country pasties, and these were being served with
melted yellow cheese and rough hazelnut bread. There was new cider, strawberry
cordial and a number of latticed pear and redberry tarts to follow. Bagg, Runn
and Grubb were the heroes of the hour, regaled with outsize portions of
everything as they related their feats of derring-do, embroidering and
expanding as they pleased.
"Hohurr,
oi cloimed down 'ee roaps an' foighted with they'ns awhoil, then oi clambers
back oop an' cuts a few more o' they roaps."
240
"That's
true, I let some of 'em climb right over the top, 'cos I'm not afeared o'
searats, then I jabbed 'em in their bottoms with my big sharp knife, so they
screamed an' jumped back over the wall. Eek! they went. I'll bet there's a few
sore be'inds 'mongst 'em today!"
"As
fer me, I went choppo choppo with my sharp knife, though I let some of 'em
climb right up on the battlements so I could stand on Grubb's shoulders an'
punch 'em in the nose. Puncho! Ain't that right, Grubb, me old warrior
pal?"
"Aye
't were so. They was a-cryen an' a-wailen. Oh mercy me, spare oi, they was
moanen. Hurhurr, we'ns spared they aroight—more like splattered they all over
t' woodlands. Burrhurr, us'n's the boys aroight."
Friar
Alder squinted vindictively at the heroic trio. "Yes, and you used my best
vegetable knives to do it with. I think you must have been chopping stones with
those knives. I've been up since an hour before dawn, trying to sharpen new
edges on them."
Ignoring
the caustic remarks, Bagg and Runn propounded new ideas.
"We
could have a Dibbuns army, y'know."
"Good
idea, mate. An' we could fight lots of battles an' all that."
"Aye,
that'd show some o'these old fogies."
"Haha,
we'd send them all t' bed early."
"Burr,
wi' no supper or brakkist on the morrow."
"Heehee,
I'd scrub 'em all be'ind their ears, twice a day."
"Hoo
urr, oi'd spank a few o' they, just fer nuthin' 't all!"
They
froze at the sound of Sister Serena's voice behind them.
"Personally
I've never spanked any creature for nothing at all. But I hear there were three
of our Dibbuns missing from their beds in the dormitory last night. Sister Sage
said that they were out on the east
241
walltop,
playing with Friar Alder's sharp knives. Now, if I found out who they were I'd
give them a real good hide-tanning for being naughty little creatures. But I
don't suppose you three would know who they were, would you?"
"Us,
er, phwaw, er, oh no, not us, Sister!"
"We
were in bed fast asleep, all night!"
"Burr
aye, a-snoren like hinfant 'ogs, us'n's wuz,
marm!"
oo
Saxtus
was coming from the dormitory with a scroll he had been studying. As he crossed
the Abbey lawn he witnessed a strange incident. A whooshing noise in the air
caused him to look up. He saw what looked like a small comet of fire with a
rope tail. It soared upward, mounting high into the blue, then dropped toward
earth, plummeting like a stone. The young mouse mentally charted its course and
yelled aloud:
"Sister
Serena, look out!"
Saxtus
was rushing toward the south steps as he shouted. Serena, not knowing what the
alarm was, immediately did the thing closest to her dutiful instinct: she flung
herself upon the three Dibbuns sitting on the lower step, shielding them with
her body. Hurtling through the air, the blazing rock, bound around with
oil-soaked grass, shattered on the step where Serena had been sitting. Friar
Alder gasped with shock as a sliver of rock cut his face and a heap of burning
material landed on his spotless white apron. Creatures disturbed from their
meal dived for cover, beating at smoldering garments and ducking the flying
shards of rock that ricocheted from the stone wallstairs.
Saxtus
beat at Sister Serena's habit. Luckily it was only scorched, and the Dibbuns
she had protected were shocked but unharmed. Farther over to the center of the
Abbey grounds, another fire-swinger shot out of the sky and burst on the
winding gravel path, showering splintered rock and flame across the lawn.
Saxtus, Flagg
242
and the
Abbot dashed about, roaring out warnings at the top of their lungs.
"Under
cover, everybeast. Quick!"
"Inside
the Abbey. Hurry!"
"Get
those Dibbuns inside!"
Saxtus
and Flagg ran upstairs. Rufe Brush was already there. Notching an arrow to his
bow, he aimed in the general direction of the grinning, jeering crew of searats
standing on the flatlands around a fire. Rufe gritted his teeth, drawing the
bowstring back to its limit.
"Scum,
I'll wipe the smiles off your dirty faces!"
The
arrow fell miserably short, causing further merriment among Graypatch and his
crew. Saxtus, Flagg and Rufe stood watching as Deadglim dipped a fire-swinger
into the fire; it flared up instantly. The searat began swinging it in
clockwise circles alongside his body. Faster and faster it swung until it was
like a blur of light. He let it go and off it sped like a rocket, out and
upward.
Flagg
could only stand and watch as it whooshed by overhead. He followed its course.
Luckily it shot straight into the Abbey pond, extinguishing with a splash and a
hiss. The big otter took the bow and arrows from Rufe.
"Here,
matey. I'll put one across their bows!"
Flagg
was a powerful fully grown male otter. He drew back the shaft to its point and
let fly at Graypatch.
Again
the arrow fell woefully short. Flagg grabbed a spear and hurled it with all his
considerable strength. It did not even go as far as the arrow. Saxtus tried his
slingshot. It went farther than either the spear or the arrow, but still not
far enough. On the flatlands the searat crew howled their derision, dancing and
jigging as they screamed out insults at the Redwallers.
"Yah
country bumpkins, what's up? Can't y'throw?"
"Here,
mousy, fire an arrow at me. Haharr!"
"Couldn't
hit a crab in a pail. Hohoho!"
243
The
three defenders watched helplessly as another fire-swinger came roaring over.
This one had been thrown by Bigfang. It hit the partially finished bell tower,
setting light to the wooden-frame scaffolding.
Saxtus
hurried from the wall. "We'll have to organize fire-fighting crews!"
"Aye/'
Flagg agreed miserably. "Those things they're chuckin' have twice the
range of any of our
weaponry."
oo
It was
midafternoon. The Dibbuns would normally have been playing outside, racing
around the orchard, paddling at the pond's edge, or frolicking on the lawns.
Now they had to stay inside the Abbey building. It was a hot dusty afternoon
and they were becoming fractious.
"Wanna
go ou'side. Gonna play inna pond!" "You come back here this instant,
young squirrel!" "Oi wants to sit in 'ee orchar'. 'Tis wurm in
yurr!" "You'd be a lot warmer if one of those flaming things hit you.
Now lie down and take a nap. That'll cool you off if you lie still."
"I'm
lyin' down, an' I'm still roastin'. When's tea-time?"
"Not
for a while yet. Now be good!" "Burr, oi wantser be naughty, oi loiks
'aven a liddle naughty now 'n' agin. 'Tis noice."
A
fire-swinger hit the main Abbey door with a loud crash, and the Dibbuns broke
into startled squeaking. Mellus distributed candied chestnuts as she reassured
them.
"Hush
now. It's nothing. Saxtus and Flagg will deal
with
it."
oo
Graypatch
tore at the roasted meat from the fire. Grinning wolfishly at Kybo, he winked.
"This
is the life, eh, messmate! A whole Abbey at
244
our
mercy an' nobeast to stop us. Ahoy, Ranzo. Any more of these skylarks
skylarkin' round?"
Ranzo
fitted an arrow to his bow, squinting upward. "Leave it till evenin'
Cap'n, they start to come down then."
The
searat sprawled on the grass in the warm summer noon. "Aharr, this is a
land of plenty, not like those cold northern isles." He stuck an apple on
a stick and began toasting it.
Bigfang
came to the fire to light another fire-swinger. Graypatch leaned close and
whispered in his ear, "Brains, Bigfang. That's what it takes—brains. You
leave the thinkin' to old Graypatch, matey. I'll guarantee they'll want to talk
terms by this time tomorrow."
Bigfang
held his silence, determined not to rise to Graypatch's bait. He would wait to
settle their score.
oo
Evening
brought no change in the situation. The fire-swingers poured in with perilous
regularity, each one coming from a different angle to land in an unexpected
place, according to the mood of the searat that hurled it. Tired and red-eyed
from fighting conflagrations which had sprung up all over the Abbey grounds,
Saxtus and Flagg with their fire crews sat drinking cold mint tea, awaiting the
next fire-swinger attack. Rufe Brush and his sentries on the west wall shouted
warnings at the approach of each missile.
"Hiyo
the grounds, fire coming in high and north!"
They
dashed over as the incendiary missile appeared at the north end, Sister Sage
calling out, "It's hit the north wall wicker gate. Quick!" Stumbling
and tripping in the dark, they reached the blaze and began beating the flames
down with wet sacking and green boughs. It took a while to defeat the blaze as
they were bone-weary and dog-tired.
"Hiyo
the grounds," Rufe Brush's voice called out once more. "One coming in
dead center, right over me!"
245
The
fire-fighters hitched up their habits and began dashing off in the direction of
the main gateway. Saxtus tripped and fell flat. He rested a moment with his
scorched face against the grass. A rapping sound caused the young mouse to look
up. He gazed around in the darkness quizzically. There it was again. Saxtus
stood up and investigated the noise further. It was coming from the wicker
gate. Now there were voices.
"Y'don't
suppose they've bally well gone to bed, wot?"
"Hardly,
old chap. After all, they are under invasion, y'know."
"Imagine
sleepin' through a fire-swinger attack. Whoohahahahooh!"
"Please,
Rosie, don't laugh so close to me poor old ear, it's jolly well deafenin'. In
fact, don't gurgle at all if y'can help it, old gel. Just think happy thoughts,
eh."
"Oh
come off it, Clary you old bodger. If I didn't have a good hoot now and again
I'd prob'ly swell up an' burst!"
"Hmm,
no such blinkin' luck, wot?"
"Oh,
whoohahahahooh! You are a card, Brig Thyme."
Saxtus
unbolted the wicker door. Searats didn't laugh like that!
246
In the
fading eventide light the four travelers breasted the big hills to find
themselves confronted by a breathtaking sight. A long rocky beach lay beneath
them. Lapping up to the shore, the rippling waves broke in a dark blue cascade,
glittering red as the setting sun caught the sea, turning it to an iridescent
green midway, which faded to purply black on the horizon. The huge crimson
half-circle sank slowly in the west, throwing up gold and umber shadows on the
undersides of long cloud layers with cream tops. Dandin and Durry had never seen
the great waters before. They stared at the magnificent spectacle, awestruck by
the immensity of sky and sea.
Durry
sat down on the hilltop, spreading his arms wide. "I've seen the Abbey
pond and that stream wi' the pikes a-swimmin' in it, but this . . . 'tis too
much fer one poor lad's eyes to take all in."
Dandin
could add nothing to the truth in his friend's simple words.
They
descended to the shore and found that what looked like a rocky beach from above
was a mass of tall stone outcrops which gave them the sensation of wandering
through a mazelike canyon.
Tarquin
glanced up at the huge blockform monoliths.
247
"We'll camp
somewhere hereabouts for
the night, wot?"
"Ye'll
be washed away by the night tides if ye do!"
A fat
old dormouse had appeared from nowhere. He stood smiling at them over the top
of his quaint square eyeglasses. "My name's Bobbo."
Tarquin
bowed with the old-fashioned elegance common to hares. "Pleasant evenin',
Bobbo. Allow me to introduce us ..."
As Tarquin
went through the formalities, Mariel quietly assessed their new acquaintance.
The dormouse was quite old and plump; he carried a knobbly stick which he
leaned heavily upon; his garb consisted of a faded velveteen longcoat, tied
about the middle with tough dried seaweed; all in all a curious character. His
homely eyes twinkled behind the glasses as he wagged his stick up at a towering
rock close by.
"Weary
travelers all, come ye up to my abode. Follow Bobbo, if ye please."
He was
such a friendly, harmless-looking old character that they followed, reeling
instinctively that somehow they could trust him.
The
dormouse's house was a sizable cave set high in the rock, and they made their
way to it up natural ledges which formed a stairway in the stone.
oo
A
cheerful sea-coal fire illuminated Bobbo's home; the walls were hung with
homemade fishnets and odd-shaped pieces of driftwood sculpted by sand and tide;
rush mats scattered about served as seats, and delicious odors wafted from a
black stockpot set on a tripod over the fire. Bobbo took a ladle and stirred
the contents of the pot.
"It's
only shrimp-and-sea-cabbage stew with a few turnips thrown in, but ye be
welcome to share it."
He
issued them with deep scallop shells and bade them help themselves.
Durry
nearly sat on a small yellow-throated newt,
248
which
scampered fearfully away to a ledge at the back of the cave. It sat watching
them, eyes blinking, throat pulsating. Bobbo strained some of the cooked shrimp
from the pot and placed it on the ledge beside the newt.
"Take
ye no heed to him, wayfarers. He fell from yon hilltops at high tide and was
washed here by the sea waters. I named him Fid. Though he never speaks to me,
he's a grand listener, aren't ye, Firl?"
The small
newt blinked and began eating. Bobbo drew them each a drink of cloudy liquid
from a gourd he kept hanging near the entrance, where night breezes kept it
cool.
"'Tis
dandelion flower and wild-barley water. The plants grow plentiful on the
hillside. Do ye like it?"
Durry
took a long draught from his shell bowl. "By 'ecky! Most afreshin'. My old
nuncle Gabe would dearly like t' know how you brew this, Mr. Bobbo. Would
y'tell me how to make it?"
The
dormouse added more sea-coal to his fire. "All in good time, Master Durry.
'Tis a long night and I've sat alone here many a season, longing for the sound
of another voice. But first, let me tell you how I came to this place, then you
can tell me all about yourselves and your long journeys from the good homes you
left."
Outside,
the tide washed in through the rock canyons, swishing and hissing as it threw
spray against the walls of sea-scoured stone. The wind made a hollow moaning
dirge of its night passage through the flooded maze. High in the safety of the
dormouse's den the four travelers sat in comfort, listening to him. The
high-toned singsong voice causing them to blink and nod around the fire as
Bobbo's uncomplicated tale unfolded.
"Ah
me, 'twas more seasons ago now than I do remember, a winter's night, and there
was I, chained to a galley bench in a searat ship. They had taken me captive
when I was very young, do you see. I had no memory of parents, home or even my
name; the galley bench was all I knew. Well now, didn't an awful storm
249
spring
up, a fearful thing! Waves washed over the side and flooded the galleys where
we poor wretches were chained to the oars, pulling until our backs were nigh
broken, whipped, starved and ill-treated. Myself was chained next to a poor
weak creature, a vole who just gave up life and died, right next to me, there
on the galley bench. Listen now, for I tell you true, the master of this ship
was a searat, the blackest-hearted scoundrel who ever stepped aboard
ship—Gabool the Wild was his name!"
Mariel's
eyes came wide open, but she did not interrupt Bobbo, who by now was in full
flow.
"Ah
well, there was I, chained to an oar and a dead creature, trying to pull my
weight with the others as we battled against wave, storm and the slavedriver's
lash. Gabool came down into the galleys.
"
'Why isn't that oar workin'?' says he. 'Because one of 'em's dead/ says the
slavedriver. Then Gabool says; The way that oar isn't pullin', it looks like
they're both dead. Throw 'em overboard an' get two more in their place!' Now
before I could call out, the slavemaster bashes me over the head and I'm in the
sea, chained to the poor dead vole. What took place next I cannot be telling
you for I must have passed out. But the chains and the body of my dead oar
partner saved my life, as I awoke next morning, high up on these rocks where
the tide had thrown the two of us. The body of the vole was caught in a
crevice. Without him I would have been washed back into the sea again, for I
was hanging in my chains by both paws, high up on top of this very rock, with
the shore far below me. When I could muster the strength, I climbed up to my
dead partner. His paws were so thin and wasted that I found little difficulty
slipping the manacles and chains from them. Do you know, I often wish that he
had lived, for then I would have had some creature to talk with. Be that as it
may, 'twas in climbing down these rocks that I found this cave.
250
"So
here am I, Bobbo. The vole lies buried on the green hillside—I think he would
have liked that. When I had freed myself of the chains, I threw them far into
the sea from the high rocks. Here I have lived a solitary peaceful life, though
not without its perils. I did try to make my way inland but was lost in the
swamps for many days. Lucky I was to find my way back here. 'Tis best that here
I stay. Maybe one day I will teach little Firl to speak, then we can talk
together."
Bobbo
left off, staring into the fire.
"So
then, there you have it all. Look now, I can see you are for sleeping. Lie down
and rest; you can tell me about yourselves in the morning. It is warm and safe
here. You will sleep well."
Tarquin,
Dandin and Durry needed no second bidding, but Mariel was not tired. The
mousemaid sat up far into the night, questioning Bobbo about Gabool, though the
dormouse had little information to impart. He was, however, eager to hear about
the travelers, so in return for his kindness Mariel did not keep him in
suspense until the morrow. She related all their adventures as Bobbo sat keenly
drinking in every word, with Firl making tiny snoring sounds on the ledge
behind them.
The
squeal of sea gulls wakened Dandin as rosy dawn banished the coverlet of night.
He lay still, only his eyes moving about, taking in their new surroundings. The
other three were still fast asleep. Dandin rose and stretched as Bobbo stumped
in, followed by Firl, his faithful newt. The dormouse bore twigs and a full
sack. "Dandin, it is a good morning I am bidding you. Look, dried
applewood and sweet herbs to burn—it makes my abode smell fresh in the
mornings. Now, you will find a small rockpool outside to wash in, and I will
prepare wild oatcakes, small fish and gorseflower honey to break your
fast."
251
The
young mouse grinned. "That sounds excellent to me, Bobbo. Thank you."
He was
back in a short while, splashing water over his sleeping friends. "Rise
and shine! Wakey wakey! Oatcakes, honey and fish! Last one washed doesn't get
any!"
Tarquin
sprang up, shaking himself. "I say, you sly young cad, why didn't y'wake
me earlier? By the pattern on me aunty's pinny, Bobbo, that smells good!"
oo
Morning
sunlight was beginning to flood the cavern as they sat eating.
Mariel
had a surprise to reveal. "You'll never guess what I learned last night
while I was talking to Bobbo."
Durry
licked honey from his paws and juggled with a hot oatcake. "No, marm,
you're right. We'll never guess, so hurry up an' tell us."
The
mousemaid recited the appropriate lines of the poem:
"Where
the sea meets with the shore,
There
the final clue is hid;
Rock
stands sentinel evermore,
Find it
as I did.
The
swallow who cannot fly south,
The
bird that only flies one way,
Lies
deep beneath the monster's mouth,
Keep
him with you night and day.
Do you
remember that part of the rhyme? Well, last night while you were all snoring, I
sat up telling Bobbo of our quest, and guess what?"
Tarquin
dipped his oatcake in the amber honey impatiently. "Whatwhatwhat?"
Mariel
smiled intriguingly from one to the other. "Bobbo knows where the swallow
is!"
"I
say, good egg! What a spiffin' old Bobbo you are, wot!"
252
"Even
more cleverer than my nuncle Gabe, an' that's
a
fact!"
"Do
you really know, Bobbo? Oh, tell us, please!" The dormouse stood up,
brushing crumbs from his
longcoat.
"Do you come with me and I will show it to
you."
00
Bobbo
hobbled in front, with Firl at his heels. He led them on a southerly tack
through the twisting winding canyons, keeping up a surprisingly lively pace,
now disappearing into shadowed recesses and materializing into bright sunlight.
Sometimes they crunched upon small pebbles, other times pattered across damp
sand, occasionally splashing through sun-warmed shallow pools. Finally they
arrived at their destination. Bobbo leaned against a monumental edifice.
"Well
now, friends, here is the very place!"
This
rock was much larger than any they had previously encountered. It was almost a
small mountain set in the sands, giving the impression of some vast primeval monster
squatting upon the shore with its back to the sea. The dormouse led them to the
east side of the rock, where a huge overhang projected over a pool that was
both wide and deep.
Dandin
looked about, expecting to see a swallow perched somewhere close.
Bobbo
pointed to the pool. "See, right at the bottom, lodged between two
rocks."
Gathering
around the rim, they peered into the underwater grotto. Through the clear
limpid water, aided by lancing rays of sunlight, it could be dimly seen. No
bigger than the size of a mouse's paw, a swallow fashioned from metal, its
outspread wings partially obscured by the rocks which held it captive amid the
brightly hued sea anemones and corals on the bed of the pool.
Dandin
shook his head in amazement. "How did you ever find it, Bobbo?"
253
"Fishing,
young master. I was fishing for shrimp one day, sitting here staring down into
the pool, when I saw it glint in the early sunlight."
"And
didn't you try to get it out?"
"Ah
well, I did try for nearly half a day with my hook and line, but it was too
smooth and firmly lodged in the rocks. So I had to leave the little bird, do
you see. Then after I found Firl I brought him along to this place to dive for
it. Newts are excellent swimmers."
"Of
course they are. Why didn't Firl get it?"
The
small newt scampered down from the rock and cringed against Bobbo, eyes wide
and throat palpitating madly.
"Ah
well, do you see, it is not only the little bird who lives down at the
bottom," the dormouse explained. "There is also a great shell
creature, one with claws like vises, great eyes on stalks and long whiskers.
Poor Firl lost his tail to the beast; it has only lately grown back. I would
not let him go down there again, no not ever!"
Bobbo
produced a piece of oatcake from his longcoat. Powdering it, he mixed it to a
paste with some water and molded it around a small pebble.
"Watch
now and see."
He
dropped the coated pebble into the pool close by the edge. They gathered around
and marked its progress as it sank rapidly to the bottom of the water. Near the
part where the swallow lay, the pebble came to rest. It had no sooner landed
than a gigantic blue-black lobster rushed out of a crevice, pounced on the
stone and retreated swiftly with the object held tightly in its enormous
pincered claws. It all happened so fast that the onlookers were stunned into
momentary silence.
Bobbo
shrugged. "So you see now, wayfarers. Is it not a dreadful monster?"
Durry
blanched. "It's even too 'orrible to look at, Mr. Bobbo!"
254
Mariel's
jaw was set, firm and resolute. "But I've got to go down there and rescue
the swallow!"
"If
you go down, then I do too!" There was determination in Dandin's eyes.
"Er,
er, oh, dash it, count me in as well, you chaps!"
Mariel
shook her head. "No, Tarquin. You and Durry stay up here with Bobbo. We'll
need you two to lower us down and pull us out quick. Now let me think awhile.
I'll have to figure out the best way to do this ..."
Durry
mopped his brow and blew out a sigh of relief. "Thank my stars! My old
nuncle'd 'ave a fit if half a poor nephew walked back in on 'im one o' these
days. Best we stay up 'ere, Mr. Woodsorrel. Just think what your Hon Rosie'd
say if you turned up with no nose and on'y one ear. Bet she'd be rightly
peeved."
"Peeved?
Peeved ain't the word, young Durry. Rosie'd take a screamin' blue tizzy if she
saw a magnificent specimen of harehood minus a hooter an' a lug. Good grief,
I'd have to run off an' become a bally searat, or somethin' equally foul!"
oo
It was
noontide before Mariel and Dandin came up with a workable solution. They went
back to Bobbo's cave, where they gathered together what rope they could find,
plus all the cooked shrimp and small fish they could lay paws upon. Back at the
pool, Mariel explained her strategy to the others.
"The
idea is to throw as much food to the lobster as possible. Let's start right
now. Durry, Tarquin, chuck the shrimp and fish in. I want you to keep your eyes
on the lobster. Once it stops coming out to get the food, let me know. Dandin,
you and I will search about for two rocks. We need something to weight us down
and make us sink to the bottom of the pool. While we're down there, you keep
watch, with the sword ready. I'll get the swallow, then Durry and Tarquin can
haul us up out of it."
255
Soon
the final preparations had been made. Mariel and Dandin sat on the rock lip of
the pool with ropes tied about their waists. The mousemaid put aside her
Gullwhacker; it would be useless underwater. Dandin took off his scabbard and
held on to the sword. Durry and Tarquin were still dropping odd bits of food
into the water.
"I
think the old lobster villain's had enough. He's not botherin' to come out for
any more tucker. The water's teemin' with jolly nice fish an' shrimp, but he
seems to have had a tummyful—great glutton!"
Both
mice picked up their rocks. Bobbo gave final instructions.
"Now
then, do you go straight down and get the bird, tug on the ropes and we will
haul you up fast. If we see the creature come out we will pull you up, whether
you have the swallow or not. I wish you both luck and good fortune. Now take a
slow deep breath."
Side by
side Mariel and Dandin slid into the water, the coldness forcing them to take
deep breaths, then the weight of the stones took over. With eyes wide open, the
pool closed above their heads and they began their descent, into the silent
aquamarine depths of the watery world.
256
BOOK
THREE
The
Sound of a Bell!
The
hare shook paws with Mother Mellus inside Great Hall as the fire-swingers
roared outside on the lawns and in the orchard.
"Long
patrol from Salamandastron at y'service, marm. Colonel Clary, Brigadier Thyme
and Hon Rosie."
Mellus
inspected Clary's paw. "You've been hurt. I'll get a proper dressing for
that wound. Sister Sage! Bring a clean dressing and some salve, will you."
Clary
winced slightly as the dressing was applied.
"Much
obliged, marm. Only a scratch, really. Good healin' fur us Meadowclarys have,
wot? The young mouse chappie, wotsisname, Saxtus, he's told us what the
position is. Not to worry, we'll have the vermin sorted out by dawn for you
—dealt with their types before. Oh, by the way, marm, can I count on you to be
on the west walltop in, say, two hours?"
Mellus
nodded. "You can count on me for anything, as long as it gets those filthy
searats away from Redwall Abbey, Colonel Clary."
Hon
Rosie gawped around Great Hall in open admiration. "Oh, I say, what a
super-dooper cottage y'have here. Whoohahahahooh!"
This
time it was Mellus's turn to wince. "Colonel
259
Clary,
would it be possible for Hon Rosie to do her laughing outside? We have infants
in the dormitories, trying to sleep."
Clary
saluted. "Right you are, marm. Rosie! Put a lid on the giggles, old gel.
Keepin' the babies awake, wot!"
"Oops!
Silly old me, I'll go an' have a swift chortle in the shrubbery. Whooha—
Sorry!"
Thyme
went about his business efficiently. Mounting the west wall, he introduced
himself to Rule Brush and tested a bow and arrow.
"Hmm,
this all the archery equipment you've got? Sadly lackin', old lad. Now let me
see, range, trajectory, distance . . . Hmmm, yersss! Is there a wicker gate in
your east wall leadin' out into the jolly old woodlands?"
Rufe
nodded dumbly, slightly overawed by the militaristic hare.
"Good
show! Next question: where'll I find your grub wallah— y'know the cook chappie,
the chef?"
"In
the kitchens, gettin' tomorrow's breakfast set up, I s'pose. Inside the Abbey,
one floor down below Great Hall."
"Top-hole!
See y'later. Face front now, don't turn y'back on the bally enemy, old chap.
They'll shoot you in the behind, wot!"
Rufe
was left so bewildered he nearly forgot to duck as a low-flying fire-swinger
sped overhead.
"Hiyo
the grounds, fire-swinger come in over main gate!"
"Hurr,
maister Brush," a mole cried out from below. "You'm a bit late, baint
'ee? Durned foir-s'inger near burned moi nose offen."
Friar
Alder reluctantly parted with his three best vegetable knives again. "Take
care of them please, Mr. Thyme."
"It's
Brigadier, sah, Brigadier— but you can call me Brig. Not to worry about the old
frogstickers, we'll have 'em back good as new."
260
Saxtus
and Flagg sat with their backs to the Abbey building, taking a breather and a
drink of cool dandelion and burdock cordial while Gabriel Quill and Friar
Hubert took over the fire-fighting relief column. Flagg rubbed the cold stone
beaker against his brow.
"Whew!
I 'opes those hares c'n help us. Nice folk, though a little snooty in their
manner o' talkin' like."
Saxtus
took a long draught of his drink. "They're Salamandastron hares, Brother
Hubert said, battle-trained and ready for anything. Leave it to them. They'll
know what to do, Flagg."
oo
Out in
the woodlands beyond the east wallgate, Clary trimmed shoots from a thick
yewpole with Friar Alder's knife.
"There,
that should be just the ticket, wot? Six long staves, good solid yew. How's the
oak comin' along, Rosie old gel?"
"Capital,
Clary. We found a big old one, quite dead an' ready to topple, but loads of
sound branches on it, just the right length too. Hahahahooh."
Thyme
looked up from his labors. "I noted lots of fishin' line in the kitchens.
We can plait it together; should be ideal."
Clary
smiled grimly. "Well done, Thyme. Come on, let's go!"
00
An hour
before daybreak Deadglim shook Graypatch awake. He went to the fire and warmed
himself.
"How's
it goin', mateys?"
Swinging
his arm around ever faster, Frink suddenly let a fire-swinger go. It roared off
into the lightening sky like a shooting star,
"Great,
Cap'n, though we're usin' green vines instead o' rope now —there's loads of it
growin' over yonder, plenty o' dead grass too. We could keep this up all
season. It's bags o' fun."
Graypatch
helped himself to roasted bird, tearing at
261
it
hungrily. "Haharr, so it is, shipmate. Get summat to eat now. I'll take
over fer a while. Hoho, they must be run ragged inside those walls by now.
Pretty soon they'll be too tired an' slow. Then a fire'll start that they won't
be able to cope with. That's when we'll pay em a visit. Come on, me lucky
bucks, keep a-slingin' those flames in!"
Bigfang
stood up. Rubbing sleep from his eyes, he stared toward the Abbey walls in the
gathering daylight. He ran across to Graypatch.
"Cap'n,
look! It's those three big rabbits who were aboard the Darkqueen. See 'em,
large as life on the walltop!"
Graypatch
spat out some burnt feathers and picked at his fangs. "Noddletop! Those
ain't rabbits. Don't y'know a hare when y'see one? Any'ow, what difference does
it make to us who they are? They'll burn same as the rest of 'em. Wake yerself
up, addlebrain,
an'
start throwin'."
C/D
They
met on the walltop in front of the threshold, facing the plain from where
Graypatch and his entire contingent could be seen around the large fire which
provided ignition for the missiles—Colonel Clary, Brig Thyme, Hon Rosie, Mother
Mellus and Flagg.
Saxtus
stood to one side. He watched as Clary took command, all traces of jocularity
and fun gone from the hare's normally quirky voice. There were six bows and a
large stock of arrows on the threshold. Clary picked up a bow and a single
shaft.
"I'm
aware that you all know how to fire a bow, but I'll go over this once to
refresh your memories. This bow, like the others we have made, is a longbow—
solid yew and more than twice the size of the ones you are used to. It is
strung with a cord plaited from fishing lines to give it extra power. The
arrows, as you can see, are far longer than normal arrows; thicker too. They
are oak, fire-hardened tips and leaf flights. Now, I have
262
chosen
you because you are the biggest, strongest creatures in the Abbey, the very
ones to fire these longbows. Let me demonstrate."
As
Saxtus watched, Clary notched an arrow onto the bowstring.
"Stand
side-on to the bow, keep it upright, draw back the string so that the shaft is
fully occupied and the string taut. Bring the arrow up to the jawline, sight
with one eye along the shaft, allowing for the arrow to take a curving course,
mounting upwards and coming down right on the object aimed at. Right, now for a
target."
Thyme
pointed. "The rat dipping a swinger into the fire—get him!"
Clary
adjusted his eyeline, drew the arrow back to its limit and let fly. The taut
longbow string twanged as the heavy oak shaft hissed off into the dawn light.
Saxtus held his breath.
Ranzo
was about to start whirling his fire-swinger when the arrow struck him. It
knocked him backward, dead before he could blink, the fire-swinger dropping
from his nerveless claws.
Saxtus
was still a novice in the art of war, and the sudden death shocked him.
"Y-you k-killed him! He's dead!" he stammered to the grim-faced hare.
Clary
issued longbows to the others. "Aye, young mouse, it was a clean shot.
Keep your head down and issue us with arrows as we call for them. In case
you're feeling sorry for that wretch, let me tell you something: fire is the
most dangerous thing to any living wood-lander. Once it takes a hold it means
death and destruction to everyone and everything. Only a searat would use fire.
Sometimes I think it is because they do not realize the danger, being creatures
who live on the great waters. But most of the time I think it is because they
are evil vermin. We at Salamandastron have battled against searats all our
lives. I would not dare tell you some of the sights I have seen. Searats are
complete
263
enemies.
They live only to kill and conquer; they are completely merciless."
Thyme
notched an arrow to his bowstring. "Righty-ho, chaps. Give 'em vinegar,
wot!"
Five
more messengers of death hissed through the early morning.
It was
then that Saxtus decided the hare's manner was merely a front, presented to
others because they would forget the real purpose behind the guardians of the
shores. The young mouse doled out arrows, knowing that he would never get used
to warfare—and be a jolly fellow one moment, and a ruthless fighter the
next.
oo
Pandemonium
reigned in the searat camp. Graypatch ran hither and thither, trying to stop
his searats retreating out of the range of the deadly longbows, exhorting them
to carry on with his plan, which had worked quite well until the appearance of
the hares.
"Come
on, shipmates. Don't let a few arrows scare yer off! Lardgutt, Kybo, get back
here. We were beatin' 'em—we still can!"
Bigfang
sat well out of range, a smug expression on his face. "I told yer about
those rabbits, Graypatch, but you wouldn't listen, would yer? Oh no, you knew
best."
The
searat Captain's temper broke completely. "You lily-livered, worm-hearted,
bilge-scrapin's! Mutineers, deserters, the whole pack of yer! We had the battle
nearly won, an' now you've turned tail an' slunk off like a load of sea slugs!
Look at me. Am I afraid? Am I scared? Haharr ha ha ha! I laugh at 'em!"
Graypatch
grabbed a fire-swinger. Putting light to it, he began swinging it furiously.
"I'll
show yer, Abbeyscum, I'll bring yer Redwall down in flames!" He dodged,
ducking a flying arrow. The fire-swinger lost momentum right at its peak and
the burning section fell onto his footclaws.
264
"Yaaheeeoooooh!"
Graypatch
hopped about, beating at his burning limb, fur smoldering as he threw himself
upon his back, screeching and thudding his scorched footclaws against the
ground.
oo
Hon
Rosie fell back, whooping hysterically. "Whoohah-ahahooh! Oh, I say,
chaps, that was a real old hotfoot!"
oo
Down in
the orchard, Gabriel Quill and Burgo Mole sat looking at each other.
"Yurr,
they vermints baint chucken no more foir at us'n's?"
"Nor
they aren't neither, Burgo. Hoho, your eyes are all red 'n' smoky!"
"Hurrhurr,
talk about 'eeself, Gabe'l Quill. You'm gotten a sutty nose!"
Brother
Hubert wandered wearily across. "Whew! Just look at the state of my
paws—scorched, soiled and grubby. A fine state of affairs for an Abbey
Recorder, I must say."
"Ho
urr, scruffy old Hoobit. No more foirs now tho', zurr."
"Indeed.
It's thanks to those hares — splendid creatures."
"I'll
drink t' that, Hubert. What d'you say we go to my cellars and have a small drop
to drive away the heat an' dust of our night's work?"
"Burr,
oi'm with 'ee, Gabe'l. Tis a tumble thurst come on oi."
"Marvelous
idea. Count me in, Mr. Quill!"
The
three old friends trundled off paw in paw.
oo
As
Abbot Bernard watched them go, he felt Simeon pulling on his sleeve.
"I
think there should be room for two more in Gabriel's cellar, Bernard."
265
"Yes, they'll manage to squeeze us in somehow,
-imeon."
Simeon.
Inside
the Abbey, young Cockleburr had been given charge of Dibbuns' breakfast time.
He mopped his brow as he chased Grubb about with a bowl of corn pudding.
"Oh,
wanderin' woodpigeons, will you come an' eat this breakfast, you dreadful
scoundrel!"
Grubb
hid beneath the table with Bagg and Runn. "Nay, oi baint eaten no
brekkist. Us'n's a-goen out t' play."
"Sister
Serena said there's no more fire an' we can go out."
"I
don't like corn pudden, wanna play inna orchard!"
"Fidgetin'
frogs. Mother Mellus told me nobeast goes out without eatin' breakfast first,
'specially Dibbuns."
"Ho
well, do 'ee sling it unner yurr an' us'n's will force et daown."
266
28
Mariel
and Dandin dropped silently to the bottom of the pool.
Dandin,
with sword in one paw and weightstone in the other, immediately turned to face
the lobster's den. He could see the big crustacean—it watched them as it lay
unmoving, one great claw hanging in front, the other by its side. The lobster
looked peaceful enough for the moment. Still, Dandin did not relax his
vigilance for a single instant.
Mariel
let go of her weightstone and tried to dislodge the tiny metal swallow, but it
was lodged firmly between two slabs of rock. She chose the smaller of the two
slabs and began wresting it out of the way. By this time both she and Dandin
were longing for a breath of air. Struggling with the cumbersome rock, Mariel
could feel the blood pounding round inside her head. She set her footpaws on the
large rock and gave the smaller rock a mighty shove. Without warning it
shifted, giving off an odd crumbling noise underwater. Clouds of silt and sand
boiled up as it toppled to one side.
Disturbed
by the noise and movement in its pool, the huge blue-black lobster came
scurrying out. Dandin barely saw the monster come; he backed water, thrusting
the swordpoint at its eyes. Mariel snatched at the
267
swallow,
but it slipped from her grasp and slid into the sand. In the confusion of
disturbed cloudy water she realized that she had lost the precious object. Now
the lobster had Dandin trapped up against the rock. Thinking quickly, he pushed
forward, landing in between its claws. It was a clever move. He was stuck up
against the hideous face of the creature, too close for it to use its
cumbersome oversized nippers; they clacked across his back like giant shears,
unable to bite him. But it was like being caught in a vise. Dandin was held
fast in the embrace of the heavy-shelled joints. The sword was squeezed from
his grip and fell to the bottom of the pool.
He
shouted aloud in desperation, but the sound was only a boggle of noise, lost
amid the air bubbles that escaped from his mouth. However, Mariel had heard it.
Forgetting the swallow, she turned to the aid of her friend. Lungs bursting,
she scrabbled about on the pool bed until her paw came in contact with the
sword.
The
lobster doubled up to rid itself of Dandin, and the hefty fanlike tail caught
Mariel a swipe as she tried to get close. The air was now forcing itself out of
the mousemaid's mouth in huge bubbles. She wondered why her friends on the
surface were not attempting to haul them up. Her limbs felt like lead and her
head was ringing. Blindly she struck out with the sword and pierced the lobster's
back, down near its tail. Infuriated, the lobster turned, lashing out with one
claw.
Instantly
freed, Dandin felt himself being hauled quickly to the surface. The lobster
locked on to the sword blade with its viselike pincer. Mariel felt herself
being hauled up on the rope. She was now upside-down in the water, clinging
grimly on to the sword, the lobster below her hanging on to the sword blade
with one claw whilst trying to get at her with the other.
A large
rock came splashing down onto the lobster, followed by another and another. It
let go of the sword as it was battered to the pool bottom by yet more rocks.
268
Mariel
was pulled clear of the pool with a whoosh of spray and a rush of air, and she
fell upon the sand, spitting out water and gasping for breath.
Tarquin
sat her up, pushing her back and forward. Mariel's head was rising and falling
as it nearly touched her footpaws, and the water gushed out as she coughed.
"Come
on, old gel. Just like the village pump, wot!" Tarquin chuckled
cheerfully.
Dandin
was in slightly better shape, having been pulled out marginally sooner than
Mariel. He sat with his back against the rocks in the sunlight as Durry fussed
about him.
"Any
more water t' come up, matey?"
"No,
thank you, Durry. Just let me rest. I'll be all right."
They
sat Mariel beside him. She wiggled a paw in her ear.
"Well,
what about that little adventure, eh, and all for nothing!"
Bobbo
squatted in front of her, smiling behind his glasses. "Well now, why do you
say all for nothing, young mouse?"
Mariel
scuffed the sand irritably. "Because we never got the swallow."
Bobbo
pressed something into her paw. "Then tell me what this is!"
Mariel
stared at the tiny metal bird she was holding. "But how . . . ?"
Bobbo
chuckled and patted her paw. "It was Firl. I told you that the newts are
very good at the swimming. He went in and got it while you and your friend
Dandin battled with the creature. We could not risk pulling you up, you see.
The water was too cloudy and disturbed, and we could not see what was
happening. Then Firl dived in and I myself decided you needed air or you would
both drown, so I said, 'Pull up, whatever is happening. Pull!' "
269
Durry
swelled his chest out proudly. "The rocks were my idea, missy. Me 'n'
Tarquin hurtled 'em at the beas-tie as we pulled you out."
Mariel
got slowly up and hugged them one by one. "What good friends you are, all
of you."
Later,
in the cave, they took a closer look at the little swallow. It was made of some
shining blue metal which gave off strange glints in the sunlight, shaped like a
fan-tailed swallow, wings spread wide as if it were flying. Dandin noticed a
small hole bored through one of the wingtips.
"See
this hole— what d'you suppose it's for?"
"I
don't know, maybe for something to fit into it."
"Hmm,
it'd have to be pretty thin to fit through that tiny hole."
Bobbo
pulled a thread from the lining of his velveteen longcoat. "Something as
thin as this, are you thinking, wayfarers?"
Dandin
nodded. "Yes, that's thin enough. Let's try it."
The
swallow hung by the piece of thread. It dangled there, turning slowly, then
stopped, facing the right wall of the cave. They watched it; the little bird
remained still.
Tarquin
took hold of the thread. "Here, let's see the bally old bird." He
spun it on the thread. Round and round it went, finally coming to rest facing
the same way again, the right wall of the cave. No matter how many times it was
spun it still ended facing the same direction.
The
wall on the right side of Bobbo's cave!
Durry
shook his head in amazement. "Just like the poem says, The swallow who
cannot fly south.' "
Mariel
smiled. "Aye, it flies the opposite way: north!"
Dandin
recited the last lines of the poem.
270
"His
flight is straight, norwest is true. Your fool's desire he'll show to
you."
Bobbo
held up the swallow on its thread, watching as each time it stopped turning it
pointed due north.
"This
is a thing of great magic. You could be going anywhere, in dark or fog, yet it
would guide you, see. Northwest is at the point of the bird's neck, between its
head and left wing. So you see, travelers, let the little swallow think he is
flying north, but you take the northwest course. Truly a marvelous bird, my
friends."
At
supper they sat around the fire discussing their next move. Mariel knew well
what it was.
"We
need a boat."
Dandin
left off polishing the sword. "How long would it take to build a boat?
Where would we get the timber? We know nothing of boatbuilding."
A
gloomy silence prevailed. The fire flickered warmly about the rock walls as
they sat mentally wrestling with the problem. Bobbo looked from one to the
other before speaking.
"Ah
well now, it is sad and dreary your faces are. You are my friends, I would like
you to stay here forever, but I know that your fate and search are elsewhere
and you will leave sooner or later. So listen to what I must tell you. You want
a boat; I do not have a boat, but I know where a ship lies ..."
Mariel
sprang up. "Where? Please tell us where the ship is, Bobbo."
The old
dormouse sat back, stroking Firl's head gently.
"I
saw her a few days ago; she was drifting north round the headland. A curious
ship, with not a living creature aboard her. So then I followed her along the
shore. She had neither masts nor rigging. The tide sent her up into the cove on
the other side of the headland, and I boarded her in the shallows. 'Twas a
terrible sight
271
to see,
a searat ship, Greenfang she was named, burnt out in some battle, though not
anyone aboard of her. There was no supplies, or things I could be using myself.
Ah well then. I anchored her fast to some rocks and left her there. Now I warn
you, she has neither sail nor masts, the cabins are all gutted by fire, but the
hull is sound and she has steering and a rudder. She will take you where you
want to go. I will show you her on the morrow and you can decide for
yourselves, though I see by your faces that your minds are already set on it.
Go you to sleep now, 'tis probably the last good rest you will be taking in
many a perilous day ahead. As for myself, I will bide here with my friend Firl.
I am too old for such wild adventures. Peace is all
I seek
now."
oo
By
midmorning of the next day they were riding the charred hulk of Greenfang out
upon the tide, with scant supplies, no proper accommodation and an outward
wind. Mariel held the long tiller, the metal swallow constantly pointing north
under cover of a makeshift awning. Tarquin wiped a paw bravely across his eyes,
Dandin sniffed copiously, Durry wept unashamedly, but Mariel smiled fondly at
the two small figures growing dim in the distance as they waved from the
shoreline. She would never forget Bobbo the quaint little dormouse, or his
silent friend Firl the newt and their peaceful existence in the cave amid the
tall rocks. Now the mousemaid turned to the open sea, and the unknown dangers
that lay before them.
272
Abbot
Bernard realized the value of battle-trained hares. Accordingly he allowed the
trio full rein in defending the Abbey, trusting to their military judgment.
Clary
organized most things within Redwall whilst the threat of attack was still a
possibility. He was very good at it. Sentries were posted upon the walls in a
regular roster—with the exception of Simeon, no creature was excluded. At least
one longbow archer was posted at all times, night and day, fully armed and
ready to shoot. Apart from that, the day-to-day routine was not interfered
with; creatures got on with the business of living at the Abbey, carrying out
their chores and taking their ease and pleasure when permitted. Tonight was
such a night.
The
Abbot had ordered a special supper in honor of the hares, Flagg offering to
take Thyme's watch with the longbow. Cavern Hole was the venue, tables were
laid around the walls with a splendid running buffet spread upon them. One
thing the hares did not lack was appetite. The splendid fare offered by the
famous Redwallers made the Salamandastron food seem spar-tan in comparison.
Colonel Clary found himself ushered around, plate in paw, by Sister Serena.
273
"Colonel,
perhaps you would like to try some of this deeper 'n' ever pie?"
"Deeper
'n' wot, marm? Looks delicious, I must say. Jolly strange name."
"Yes,
it's a great favorite of the moles, you know-full of turnip 'n' tater 'n'
beetroot, to use the mole
language."
"I
say, I rather like this red gravy stuff, very spicy!"
"Oh,
that's otters' hotroot sauce. You know what they say?"
"No,
marm. What do they say?"
Serena
chuckled and adopted her otter voice. "Ain't nothin' 'otter for an
otter!"
Brigadier
Thyme was being entertained by Gabriel Quill. The hedgehog was pointing out to
him the finer nuances of food with drink.
"Now
lookit this, Brig, a nice sparkly strawberry cordial. You might think it'd go
well with yonder damson shortcrust an' cream."
"Well,
what d'you think, Gabe old scout? Does it?"
"Not
on your aunty's washtub, it don't. 'Ere, you try a beaker of my cowslip an'
parsley comfort wi' that damson shortcrust. Go on."
"Mmm,
absolutely top-hole, old thing. My, it does make a difference. I say, what's
that jolly brown stuff in the tankards?"
"Good
October ale. Redwall's famous fer it, an' I'm the beast as brews it. Now, you
want to sample some o' that with cheese an' mushroom pastie—that'd make yer
tail curl a bit."
"Rather.
I've always fancied m'self with a curly tail. Hi, Rosie, how are you gettin' on
with the jolly old nosebag, wot?"
Hon
Rosie waved a ladleful of summercream dip. "Whoohahahahooh! Look at these
Dibbuns chaps doin' an impression of us, Thyme. Very droll. They're an absolute
hoot. Whoohahahahooh!"
Bagg,
Runn and Grubb had decided to take on newr
274
roles
as hares carrying longbows. They strutted about with their bows and arrows,
mimicking all the mannerisms of Clary and his long patrol.
"I
say, ol' boy, ol' thing, ol' top, pip pip an' all that!"
"Hurrhurr,
wotwotwot? Us'n's gotten gurt bows 'n' arrers, ol' bean. You'm jolly well watch
owt iffen you'm one o' they searattens, boi okey!"
"Rather,
ol' scout. Wot an 'oot. Whoohoohoohoo!"
Thyme
twirled his whiskers in a very offpaw manner. "Hmm, exceedingly comical,
I'm sure." He seated himself next to a mole who was munching away at a
large crusty pie and nodded at the fellow. "Pie looks jolly nice. What's
in it?"
The
mole, who was named Burgo, turned full face to the hare. "Woild garleck,
zurr!"
Brigadier
Thyme nearly fell off the bench as the mole's breath hit him. "Good grief,
what a dreadful pong!"
Burgo
nodded. "Tumble, baint et. Oi dearly loiks the taste, but oi can't aboid
the smell moiself, zurr."
Treerose,
the pretty young squirrel, sidled up to Rufe Brush. "Oh, Rufe, I've baked
you a special cake of nutbread and I've iced it too, with clover honey."
Rufe
stood on one paw then the other, his voice a mumble. "Oh er, very nice er,
thank you er, Treerose, er, er."
Treerose
blushed and smiled winningly. At last she was getting through to the strong
silent Rufe. "Shall we take it out into the orchard and share it, Rufey
Woofy?"
Rufe
straightened up and planked the cake back into her paws. "Take it where
y'like with Rufey Woofy. My name's Rufe Brush an' I'm due back on the walls for
sentry duty!"
He
stalked off, leaving Treerose holding the cake. She stamped her paw petulantly,
her lip beginning to quiver. Grubb slipped in and took the cake from her.
275
"Yurr,
doant 'ee cry, missy. Iffen Rufe doant like they ol' cake, oi'll scoff et, of
gel, wotwot, hurr hurr!"
oo
Mother
Mellus sat with Simeon and the Abbot. Clary had joined them and was reassuring
the Abbot.
"Not
to worry, Father. We're well able for searats. If they bother Redwall again,
we'll be ready for 'em. Though I don't think we're in any immediate danger from
the blaggards."
"Couldn't
we go out after them, Colonel Clary?"
The
hare turned to Mellus, his eyebrows raised. "Marm, go after them?"
"Actually
it's not the searats I'm thinking of, it's the oarslaves. It's pitiful really—what
sort of a life must those poor creatures lead as slaves of the filthy searats.
Couldn't we, I mean you, arrange to sort of release them and bring them back
here?"
"Now
now, Mellus," Abbot Bernard interrupted the badger. "Colonel Clary
and his patrol have been more than kind to us already, driving the searats off.
I'm sure they have other business at Salamandastron."
"Not
at all, Father. Lord Rawnblade sent us up to Mossflower to help in any way we
can against searats. We'd be failin' in our duty if we refused you anything,
especially a request from another badger."
Mellus
smiled gratefully. "You'll do it then, Colonel?"
"Well,
marm, can't promise anythin', you understand, but I'll have a word with my
troops and let you know."
Mellus
knew that Clary was going to grant her request; still, that did not stop her
reinforcing her plea.
"Every
time I think of those twenty very young slaves, the hunger, beatings and
hardship they must be enduring—it's a wonder they're not lying out there in Mossflower
dead from it all. Oh, there's your friend the squirrel too; the searats have
taken him captive."
"Tcha! Old
Pakatugg y'mean—that old
reprobate
276
prob'ly
got himself captured through his own greed, doncha know. He's an unspeakable rogue
really, sell his mother for two acorns and a loaf. Righty-ho, marm, you've made
your point. Let me go and work out a plan with Thyme an' Rosie. We're pretty
good at wheezes when we put our heads together."
Mellus
sighed heavily and shook her great striped head. "Let's hope you and your
friends do come up with some good wheezes, Colonel. As for myself, my brain is
too full of other things to think of wheezes. There's Mariel and Dandin,
Tarquin, young Durry Quill too. They've gone off to face goodness knows what
perils, questing for a bell, searching for a strange island, determined to slay
Gabool the Searat. Where will it all end? I hope those youngsters are safe,
wherever they are. Sometimes I wish that little mousemaid would have stayed as
Storm Gullwhacker instead of finding out her real name was Mariel."
Clary
halted his assault on a nearby vegetable flan. "Stap me, young Storm
Gullwhacker, eh! So that's what became of her. Mariel, much nicer name for a
pretty young gel, wot? Don't you fret, marm. That one's well able for anything.
Three good comrades with her, y'say? Stap me! What more could she want? Makes a
chap wish he was out there questin' with 'em."
Mellus
was about to enlarge upon the dangers that faced Mariel and her friends when
Clary moved on to make new friends and sample fresh delicacies.
Simeon
turned in the badger's direction. "You really are a shameless coaxer at
times, Mother Mellus."
She
bristled slightly. "I was deliberately being shameless to help those
little slaves who are in a shameful position, Simeon. What would you have me
do? Sit safe here in Redwall Abbey and not bother about it at all?"
The
blind herbalist spread his paws. "Apologies, apologies! I did not realize
you felt so strongly about the slaves. Being blind, I cannot see them, but I
suppose
277
if I
had my sight I'd shout for their rescue as loudly as you."
In the
small hours between midnight and dawn the three hares stole silently through
Mossflower toward the searat encampment, armed only with their lances. Clary
stopped the other two a short distance from the glow of the enemy campfires.
"Righty-ho,
got it all clear now. Me 'n' Rosie do the decoyin'; Thyme, you're the jolly old
rescuer. When you've got a couple of slaves, make straight back to Redwall. The
south wallgate is only bolted with a couple of dead twigs— one good shove an'
it's open. We'll keep these villains chasin' their own tails for a while, then
we'll get back to the Abbey just before dawn. Keep a lookout for us from the north
walltop, be ready with a longbow in case we're followed an' it's nip an' tuck.
Good luck, old scout. Come on, Rosie. Bob 'n' tack, duck 'n' weave. You know
the drill, wot!"
oo
Foul
tempers predominated around the searat camp-fires. Graypatch sat apart,
disgusted with the rest after their rout by five longbows on the flatlands,
just as his fire-swinger plan was beginning to look as if it might work. The
searat Captain lashed out at any rat that came near him, giving vent to his
contempt.
"Slimesloppin',
mudsuckin' cowards! Haharr, 'tis a pity that those longbows never took care of
more o' you mutinous deckscum, then I'd only have meself to think of, instead
o' a pack of seascabbed poltroons!"
The
crew lay about sulkily, not answering because they knew Graypatch was looking
to pick a fight and slay somebeast to slake his spleen.
From
over to Graypatch's left a voice called from the shadows, "Hoho, matey,
you did a fine jig with your foot afire. Shove it in yonder flames an' do us
another 'ornpipe. Go on!"
Graypatch
whirled his sword, dashing toward the
278
rats
who were lounging in the area whence the insult had issued.
"Yer
lily-livered maggot, stan' up an' say that to me face!"
Next
instant a voice called from the other side of the camp, "Maggot yerself,
stinkbreath. We're takin' no more orders from you!"
Graypatch
veered, rushing in the direction of the second voice. "Belay, I'll rip the
tongue out o' yer mouth. Show yerself!"
Another
voice called from yet a third direction, "Flop-nose! You couldn't rip yer
mother's apron!"
Graypatch
hurled himself on Deadglim and began throttling the unfortunate searat as he
pleaded his innocence.
"Gwaaark!
It wasn't me, Cap'n, I swear it. Gyuuurgh! I never said a wuuurgh!"
Frink was
Deadglim's mate. He ran across to prevent Graypatch choking his friend to
death, but Bigfang tripped him with a spear.
"Leave
them be, rat. Deadglim might show a bit of fight back!"
Fishgill
leaned across. "Who asked you to interfere, fatmouth!"
He
slapped Bigfang across the head with the flat of his cutlass. As he did,
someone else kicked Fishgill from behind.
"You
leave Bigfang alone, fleahead!"
Fishgill
turned and punched Lardgutt in the eye. "Kick me would you, weeviltail.
Take that!"
Lardgutt
drew his dagger, screaming furiously, "I never kicked yer! But you'll pay
for that punch, snot-face!"
Within
a short time the entire camp was in uproar as fights broke out all over the
place. Clary and Rosie flitted about like two fleeting moonshadows, belting
heads and roaring out in imitation searat voices.
279
"Bigfang
fer Cap'n, Graypatch is on'y a deckwal-
loper!"
"Avast,
get stuck in, buckos. Poor Deadglim's bein'
strangled!"
Rosie
whacked a passing rat on the back of his head with her lancebutt. "Take
that from Kybo, you scum. I never did like you!"
With a
screech of rage the rat grabbed a corsair's hook and went after Kybo yelling,
"An' all these seasons I thought you was my matey!"
The
fight was going splendidly until Hon Rosie could no longer hold back her
laughter.
"Haharr,
you durty decksweepin', take that! Whoohahahahooh! Oh, I say, this is super
fun, come on, chaps, scrag each other harder!"
Instantly
the fighting ground to a halt.
"Corks,
Rosie, you've torn it now, old gel. Y'need to gag that giggle," Clary
could be heard muttering in the firelight shadows.
Graypatch
left off throttling Deadglim. "We've been tricked, mates. It's those
hares! Get 'em!"
But
saying was far easier than doing. The hares were up and gone through the
night-shaded woodlands before the searats could assemble themselves to give
chase. Thyme had gone also, and with him two young shrews from the oarslave
ranks, but this would not be discovered until daylight arrived.
280
Captain
Flogga of the ship Rathelm was a hard and seasoned searat. He had served Gabool
long and well, but the old Gabool was vastly different from the one he faced
now. Flogga had taken no chances, keeping his crew fully armed and tight about
him when he landed at Terramort. They had marched straight up to Fort Bladegirt
and trooped into the banqueting hall— Flogga knew there was safety in numbers.
Now,
sitting in front of the Searat King, he was shocked at the change that had come
over the Warlord of the Waves. Gabool was gibbering mad! He was a truly
terrifying sight, his fine silk gear all stained and torn, rings and bracelets
tarnished and bent; the golden emerald-studded teeth still gleamed, though the
eyes above them were blood-red, caked and running from many sleepless nights.
The
searat Captain was frightened. Mad and disheveled as he was, Gabool looked
doubly dangerous, and there was always the risk: was he really insane, or
merely playing at it for some reason best known to himself? Gabool's mood could
switch from good humor to evil temper, from friendly camaraderie to murderous
enmity, at the blink of an eye. Not for nothing was he feared by all searats,
captains and crews alike.
281
Still,
Flogga was completely taken aback at the way Gabool addressed him.
"Haharr,
Graypatch, I knew you'd come back someday. Well well, me old shipmate Graypatch
back at Bladegirt with a full crew about him!"
The
searat Captain shook his head. "Gabool, don't ye know me? It's Flogga,
Master of the Rathelml"
Smiling
craftily, Gabool waggled a claw at him. "Haharr, so you say, matey, so you
say. But you can't fool me, Graypatch. I know who you are. Where's my ship
Darkqueen, eh?"
"Darkqueen,
don't mention that craft t' me. You've 'ad us chasin' our tails across the
waves high 'n' low lookin' fer Darkqueen. I'm beginnin' to think it's all some
kind o' game, like that treasure she's supposed to have stowed in 'er
hold."
Gabool
cocked his head to one side, both eyes roving up and down oddly. "Treasure
y'say. Have you been talkin' to Saltar, matey?" "Saltar! He's
dead!" "Dead? Saltar? Who killed him?" "You did, right 'ere
in your own banquetin' hall." "Haharr, so I did, Graypatch, so I did.
Listen matey, ferget Darkqueen. It'll be me 'n' you agin, just like in the old
days, eh?"
"But
I keep tellin' ye, I'm Flogga, not Graypatch ..."
Gabool
winked slyly. "Nah, you can't fool me. Listen, about that treasure: it was
never in the Darkqueen, I only said that to 'ave you brought back 'ere."
Flogga
blew out a long sigh. He decided to humor the mad King. "All right,
Gabool. So I'm back 'ere.
Now
what?"
Gabool
leaned close, whispering confidentially. "Hearken t' me, Graypatch. The
treasure is here, right here in Bladegirt. Only me knows where 'tis. D'ye want
me to show it t' yer?"
282
Flogga
suddenly became interested. "Aye, I'd like that, shipmate."
"Haharr.
Well, tell this lot to stay here, an' come with me."
"Oh
no, Gabool. What d'yer want to separate me from me crew for, eh?"
"Graypatch,
I thought you was a brainy one, mate. We don't want t' share all that booty
with this useless load of flotsam, now do we?"
Flogga
stared at Gabool, uncertain of what he should do, suspecting the Searat King
might be leading him into a trap, yet eager to get his claws upon the treasure.
In the end greed won.
"All
right, Gabool. It'll be just like the old days, fifty-fifty. Lead me t' the
booty, mate, but 'earken—play me false an' my dagger'll find yer throat afore
you're much older."
"Play
ye false?" Gabool sounded indignant. "You're the one who played me
false, Graypatch—but I'm givin' ye another chance, shipmate. Now get rid of
these numbskulls an' follow me."
Flogga
turned to his crew and gave them a "wait here" sign. He nodded and
winked at them, outwardly confident, but inwardly apprehensive as he strode off
after
the Searat King.
oo
Gabool
fitted the spear through the iron ring and heaved. As the stone lifted he slid
it to one side. Flogga stood in the doorway of the chamber, still wary of a
trap. The Searat King pointed to the black hole in the center of the floor.
"Down
there 'tis, me old matey. More booty than you could wink an eye at. Come an'
get your half, Graypatch—or are you afeared?"
Flogga
remained in the doorway. "I don't know ..."
Gabool
strode over and grasped his paw tightly. "Then we'll go down there
together, eh? Tell you what,
283
matey;
we'll take a run an' jump in at the same time, both o' us. Haharr, just think,
Gabool an' Graypatch, down there midst all that booty!"
Flogga
gnawed at his lip. "Together at the same time, both of us?"
"Aye,
matey. That's the way, come on. One t' be ready, two t' be steady, three t' be
off!"
Clutching
Flogga's claw, Gabool rushed him at the hole. Flogga, finding Gabool running
eagerly alongside him, felt confident. They leaped together: Flogga down into
the hole, Gabool right across it onto the other side, where he landed
chuckling.
"Hoho,
Skrabblag, I told yer I'd bring Graypatch 'ere for a visit!"
Flogga
screamed with horror. Something was rustling and clicking in the darkness. As
Gabool held a flaring walltorch over the pit, Flogga moaned in despair. A fully
grown black scorpion was stalking him in the close confines of the pit. Claws
clicking, armored hide rustling against the floor, it advanced upon him, the
venomous needle-pointed sting in its tail held high, ready to strike. Gabool
laughed insanely.
"You
remember Skrabblag, don't yer, matey? Hahah-aharr!"
Thick
fog had dropped upon the sea, and the waters ran smooth, almost waveless. From
her point at the tiller, Mariel could not make out the other end of the ship.
One thing became apparent: they were becalmed, lying on the unrippled waters in
the midst of the heavy dripping mist.
Tarquin
brought food to her side. "Absolutely dreadful this bally fog, wot?
Shouldn't bother us though, old gel. As soon as we move again at least it'll be
in the right direction—the jolly little swallow feller'll see to that."
"Right,
Tarquin. Where's Dandin and Durry? I haven't seen them for a while."
284
"For'ard
—I think that's the right nautical jargon. They've found some line an' fancy
their paws as fish-erbeasts."
Mariel
leaned on the tiller, gnawing at a cold oatcake as she stared about her into
the blank whiteness. "Funny, isn't it—the fog seems to be ten times
thicker at sea than on land. If you stare into it long enough you begin to see
all sorts of odd shapes looming up on you."
"Hmm,
quite eerie. I never liked it when I was at Salamandastron, y'know. Beastly
stuff. It's like bein' surrounded by steam from a kettle, 'cept that it's all
chilly an' clammy. Brrrr!"
"Hsst,
Tarquin. Did you hear something?"
"No,
unless it's those other two up at the front of the boat—beg pardon I mean the
for'ard end."
"Yaaaaah
look out!"
Crrrraaassshhh!!!
The
burned-out hulk quivered as the high prow of the searat galley Seatalon rammed
her amidships, heeling her high out of the water. The burnt timbers shattered
under the impact as the hulk overturned and smashed completely in two pieces.
Mariel grabbed the metal swallow before being hurled off into the fog. She hit
the waters with a dull splash. All around she could hear shouting and
confusion.
"Cap'n
Catseyes, we've struck a vessel!"
"Then
board 'er, you bilgeswillin's. See if there's any pickin's t' be had. Where
away is she now?"
"We've
rammed 'er in the fog, Cap'n. She's broke in two. Can't see a thing in this
cursed fog!"
"Is
Seatalon damaged, Fishtail?"
"No,
Cap'n. We're all right. The other one broke right easy, though. Must've been
some sort o' wreck, eh?"
"Aye,
it'll be sunk by now."
"Cap'n
Catseyes, there's two beasts in the sea!"
"Well,
hook 'em out. Don't stand there dreamin'!"
285
"Look,
it's a mouse an' a hedgepig!"
"Haul
'em aboard, pump the water outta them an'
bring
'em t' my cabin."
oo
Mariel
trod water, holding the swallow between her teeth, the Gullwhacker about her
neck weighing heavily in the sea. Cries from the searat ship died away into the
fog, and now she was alone on the deep, shrouded by the all-enveloping mists
and without her companions. Suddenly something grabbed her footpaws and pulled
her under. Kicking madly she wriggled and fought underwater. The mousemaid
lashed out, connecting hard with something. Whatever it was had let go of her.
Mariel fought her way to the surface, and emerged next to Tarquin, who was
spitting water and gurgling.
"Gwaawhg!
I must've gone right t' the bottom then. I say, was that your paws I grabbed
hold of?"
Mariel
was overjoyed to see her friend. "Tarquin, it's you!"
"I'll
say it is. Who did you expect, a fish with fur an' ears?"
"It
was a searat ship that rammed us. They've got Dandin and Durry aboard. I heard
them call it the Seatalon."
"Oh,
corks. Dandin 'n' Durry captured by searats! WhatTl we do?"
"What
can we do?"
"Which
way did this Seatalon go?"
"Over
that way, I think—though it's hard to tell in this fog."
"Then
there's only one thing for it, we'll have to swim after it and see if we can
get our friends back. Come on."
They
struck out into the fogged sea, swimming as hard and as fast as they could.
After a while, Tarquin halted, treading water as he floated.
'"Sno
use, Mariel. Whew, I'm out of breath!"
286
"Me
too. We could be going in circles in this fog."
"Then
I vote we just float here until it clears. D'you want my harolina? It makes
rather a good float."
"We'll
both use it, then."
Together
they rested their paws on the instrument. It buoyed them slightly, and they
kicked their legs slowly to keep afloat.
"Well,
this is a pretty mess we're in and no mistake."
"How
far do you suppose we are from shore, Tarquin?"
"No
idea, old scout. It's sink or swim from here on in. I say, I'm famished. You
don't happen to have any tucker on you . . . ?"
"Sorry,
all I had was that cold oatcake, and I lost that in the wreck."
"Ah
well, at least we won't make a nice fat meal for any fishes that are feelin'
peckish. I suppose there are fishes around here."
"Could
be, might be one or two big ones with huge mouths and sharp teeth ..."
"Steady
on, miss! You could scare a chap out of a season's growth, talkin' like
that."
oo
Mariel
and Tarquin lost all reckoning of distance or position as they floated for what
seemed like endless hours. Gradually the fog began to thin, giving way to
slightly choppy water and mists, which were soon dispelled by a stiff breeze.
There was not much to see — no sight of the searat galley, nor of land; they were
completely surrounded by rising waves. Helping each other as best as they
could, the two friends conserved their energy by floating, only swimming when
the seas became too rough. Mariel looked up at the sky; evening was not far
off.
"It
gets cold on the sea at night."
"Hmm,
y'don't say. It's blinkin' cold enough now. My paws have gone all dead an'
shrivelled with the salt water."
287
"Mine
too. Tarquin, I'm sorry I got you into this. I should have traveled alone. Now
Dandin and Durry are the prisoners of searats and we're not going to last long
out here."
"Oh,
nonsense, old miss mousy. I wouldn't have had it any other bally way. None of
it was your fault. We'd have come along whether you liked it or not. Now stop
that kind o' talk an' save your breath."
"You're
a good friend Tarquin L. Woodsorrel. I won't forget you."
"Should
jolly well hope not. Rosie too. Hope she thinks of old Tarkers feedin' the fish
now an' then. Oh, Rosie, you'll never find another as devil-may-care an'
handsome as me, poor old thing!"
Mariel
draped her Gullwhacker across the harolina. Her limbs were beginning to tire;
seawater lapped into her mouth and she spluttered.
"I
say, why don't you take the swallow out of your mouth an' tie it round your
neck?"
"Good
idea, Tarquin. Thank you."
"Oh
dear, there's the jolly old sun beginnin' to set."
"I'm
so tired, I could lie back in the water and go to sleep."
"Steady
on there—don't start talkin' like that. Here, I'll hold you up for a bit."
"No,
Tarquin, you need all your energy to stay afloat yourself."
"Fiddle-de-dee!
I've got energy I haven't even used yet. There, how's that, Mariel
Gullwhacker?"
"That's
fine, Tarquin. But you won't be able to keep us both up for long."
"S'pose
not, but when that time comes we'll sink together, wot?"
Clinging
to each other, they bobbed on the open sea, oblivious of the glory of the
setting sun and the many-hued sky which reflected in the waters all round.
Night closed in on the hare and the mousemaid.
288
Two
massive paws shot down into the water and grabbed them both, hauling them
effortlessly out of the night sea and onto a heaving deck.
"Woodsorrel,
I might have known it would be you!"
Semiconscious
and shivering uncontrollably, Tarquin peered up into the huge striped face of
Rawnblade.
"I
s-s-say, m'Lord, d-d-didn't know you'd taken t' b-b-boatin', wot?"
"You
young rogue, I suppose you've brought this poor mousemaid along with you just
to get her drowned!"
"Quite
the c-c-contrary, s-s-sir."
"Hmm,
we'll discuss that later, after you're both fixed up."
When
Mariel regained consciousness she was in the cabin of the Waveblade. A charcoal
fire burned in the small stove, and she was clad in cast-off searat garments.
Lord Rawnblade made her drink some heavy dark wine and eat a little dried
fruit.
Tarquin
was fully recovered. Mariel could not suppress a smile at the comical figure he
cut, dressed in searat silks with a cloak of yellow chenille draped about him.
Tarquin admired the daggers and swords he had stuffed into the wide-sashed belt
of orange satin, and earrings and bangles jangled as he twirled about
dramatically.
"Haharr,
me booties, 'tis only I, Tarquin the Terrible!"
Rawnblade
sniffed away a smile threatening to steal across his face. "I'd say awful
was more appropriate than terrible."
The
badger Lord turned to Mariel.
"So
tell me, mousemaid, what were you doing bobbing about on the high seas in
company with this addle-brained creature?"
Mariel
sipped more of the wine, feeling its
dark
289
warmth
comfort her. "Well, it's a long story, sir, but I'll start at the
beginning."
Outside,
wind keened the darkness, scouring the face of the sea as rain began to spatter
the decks. Waveblade cut her course northward, her tiller lashed in position by
the sodden Gullwhacker as the ship plowed on through the night, guided by a
small metal swallow.
290
Abbot
Bernard watched the two young shrews as they attacked the Abbey breakfast board
like hungry wolves, swigging pear cordial, stuffing plum and greengage tart and
grabbing hot elderberry muffins dripping with honey.
"My
word, Mother Mellus, those two young ones can put it away!"
"Aye,
bless them, you'd think we were facing a ten-season famine."
Simeon
checked the paw of one from reaching for acorn and rhubarb crumble. "How
many more of you do the searats have?"
"Seventeen,
I s'pose, or eighteen—aye, eighteen countin' the squirrel."
Friar
Alder turned his eyes upward, nudging young Cockleburr. "Dearie me,
imagine another eighteen like that at breakfast!"
"Boilin'
breadloaves, Friar. They'd eat us out o'
kitchen
an' Abbey!"
oo
Clary
sat in Gabe Quill's cellar, sampling the latest rosehip squash with Foremole as
they nibbled cheese and beechmast bake to counteract the sweetness of the
drink.
291
"Ahurr,
you'm say 'ee wants four of us'ns this comin' noight, zurr."
"Yes
indeed, four stout mole chaps—all good diggers, mind you."
"Hurrhurr,
baint no crittur better at diggen than us'n molers. Oi'd say Dan'1, Buxton,
Groaby an moiself. Aye, we'n's the ones."
"Righty-ho,
Foremole sir. Meet us at the gatehouse two hours after dark."
"Doan't
'ee wurry, zurr. Us'll be thurr, boi 'okey us will."
"Good
chap, knew I could count on you. Have some more of this rosehip stuff. Quite
nice, but a trifle sweet, wot?"
"No
sweeter'n rose'ips orter be, zurr. Fill 'er up iffen
'ee
please."
Gabe
Quill filled a jug from a polished cask. He set it on the table, sniffing
righteously over the remarks being made about the sweetness of his rosehip
squash.
"Try
some o' this elderflower an' larkspur cordial iffen you likes a less sweeter
drink. But while you're a-doin' that, tell me, Mr. Clary, why did you only free
two slaves las' night?"
Clary
sipped the new drink, raising his eyebrows appreciatively. "Well, Mr.
Quill, it's quite simple really. More than two at a time would be rather
awkward to cope with, seein' as how they've got to be helped every step of the
way. After all, they are in chains, y'know; bein' oarslaves, they're still
chained in twos, each creature to his galley bench partner. If we can manage
more'n two, all well an' good. We'll see how many of the poor blighters we can
bag tonight. Now, listen carefully, Foremole me old digger, here's the
plan
..."
oo
Graypatch
had been all day making the searats' woodland camp secure against intruders. He
sat on a log, checking out the new setup with Fishgill.
292
"Tripwires
hidden in the undergrowth all around the edges o' the camp, rope traps in the
trees?"
"Aye,
Cap'n. Me 'n' Frink an' Kybo rigged the rope traps. Anybeast sneakin' around
out there at night'll find themselves suddenly hangin' upsidedown from a tree.
The tripwires are all stretched tight an' well-hidden too."
"Good!
Now these oarslaves—we'll hold 'em in the center of the camp, just to one side
of the main fire. That way they'll be surrounded by the crew."
The
evening fires had been lit. All around them, searats squatted, cooking whatever
they had found during the day. Bigfang roasted dandelion roots and some small
hard apples he and Lardgutt had come across, grumbling as he watched Kybo.
"Huh,
what use is roots an' sour apples to me 'n' Lardgutt? We're searats; this
woodland garbage wouldn't feed a sick maggot. Kybo, matey, how's about sharin'
that great fat woodpigeon yer roastin', with a couple of old messmates?"
Kybo
kept his eyes on the roasting meat, his claw straying to a long rusty dagger he
kept nearby. "Get yer own rations, Bigfang. Me 'n' Fishgill an' Graypatch
snared this one while we was layin' out tripwires an' you was lyin' round
snorin' like a hog. You want meat, get out an' hunt it."
Lardgutt's
eyes strayed to the roasting woodpigeon as he absently reached into the embers
for a toasted apple, with the result that he scorched his claws. Bad-temperedly
he flung the apple from him. "Yowch! That's it! I'll starve afore I eat
that muck!"
Bigfang
looked around at other searats who had not been fortunate enough to obtain
meat. They were toasting, roasting and charring almost any kind of vegetation
they could scavenge. Bigfang spat into the flames.
"Hah!
Livin' off the fat o' the land, eh, buckos? Does this look like the berth we
was promised? Landlords of Mossflower—look at us! Grubbin' fer roots an'
berries,
293
scrapin'
about an' fightin' with yer own shipmates fer anythin' growin' outta the soil!
Why don't we attack Redwall agin, that's what I want ter know. Sittin' round
protectin' some oarslaves like they was precious booty, where's that a-goin' to
get us, eh?"
Murmurs
of agreement arose around the camp. Graypatch strode over, carrying a heavy
limb of dead oak. He threw it onto the fire, causing a shower of sparks.
Bigfang and Lardgutt were forced to jump back, beating off the fiery splinters
which landed on them, their apples and roots completely squashed and ruined
beneath the wood Graypatch had thrown on the fire. The searat Captain prodded
Bigfang viciously in the ribs with his curved sword.
"Always
the thickhead an' the rabble-rouser, eh, Bigfang. I don't know why I keep yer
alive. It's not for your brains, I can tell ye. Anybeast with half a grain o'
sense would tell yer what I'm about. Last night taught me a lesson: if those
Redwallers want to free the slaves, they've got to come an' try, see? Look at
it this ways, they're goin' to no end o' trouble to rescue slaves who they
don't even know. I've seen their type afore. Now, imagine how they'd feel if we
captured some of their own? Haharr, that'd be somethin' now, wouldn't it! Us
havin' Redwallers as hostages. It'd be like ownin' a ticket fer free entrance
to their Abbey."
Bigfang
rubbed his ribs where the sword had scraped his hide. "How do we know
they're goin' to come
back?"
Graypatch
shook his head as if despairing. "Short on brains an' long on mouth,
that's you, matey. Of course they'll come back. They're noble creatures, they
couldn't leave poor slaves in the claws of us cruel sea-rats! But this time
we've laid the traps, this time we'll catch them, an' I'll parade 'em in chains
outside their Abbey. You mark my words, those Redwallers won't be so high 'n'
mighty then. They'll be ready to listen to old Graypatch's terms, mates. Aye,
short on brains,
294
Bigfang,
just like I said. You stick with me, matey. Let me do the thinkin', and one day
we could be rulers of a whole slave army of Redwallers, hahah! Imagine that,
they could be mercenaries, spearfodder—with an army that size we could build
ourselves another fleet an' conquer Terramort for ourselves, kill Gabool an'
seize his island. Then we'd be rulers of Redwall an' Terramort, mates!"
oo
Hon
Rosie lay on her back a short distance from the camp. She twanged upon a
tripwire as she listened to Graypatch lecturing his crew. Clary and Thyme sat
with the moles, holding a whispered conference.
"Super
plan, y'know—tripwires, springropes an' hostages. I'd give the scurvy blaggard
an 'A' for alertness, wot?"
Foremole
extended his powerful digging claws. "Oi knows wot oi'd loik t' give 'im,
pesky searatter!"
Clary
was busy undoing a tripwire. "Good effort, all the same. Come on, hares,
let's undo this little lot an' set it up in a new location. Thyme, can you
manage those rope traps?"
"Certainly,
Clary old chap. I say, these searats are rather good at tying knots and
whatnot, must be with all that messin' about in boats."
"I
'spect so. How're you mole chaps feelin', fancy a spot of diggin'?"
"Hohurr
zurr, we'm frisky as frogs an' fitter'n fleas. Whurr do 'ee want us a-start,
gaffer?"
Foremole
trundled about muttering calculations, glancing from certain spots on the
ground toward the rat camp.
"Gurr'm,
let oi see naow. Root crossens thurr, thurr an' yon. Stoans a-layen yurr an'
thurr. Reckernin' fer a swift 'n' easy deep tunn'l, oi sez us'n's be hadvised
to start diggen roight yurr!" He scratched a large X on the woodland floor
with his digging claws.
Dan'1,
Groaby and Buxton went to it with a will.
295
Sentries
were posted all around the fringes of the camp. Graypatch settled down close to
the fire, his one good eye searching the woodland edge for signs of movement.
Bigfang and Lardgutt fought briefly over possession of a ragged blanket before
ripping it in half, then each lay down, trying to cover himself with the skimpy
remnant. Gradually the searats' encampment quietened down for the night, the
silence broken only by an odd crackle of burning branches on the fires.
Sentries blinked their eyes to stay awake, heads drooping as they leaned
heavily on pike and spear.
Brigadier
Thyme watched the scene from the low boughs of a sycamore some distance away.
Finally satisfied that everything was ready, he climbed down and reported back
to Clary.
"Operation Oarslave
now feasible to
commence.
Sah!"
"Good
scout, Thyme. Right, troops. Forward, the Buffs. Oh, and Rosie, try to
remember, will you, one whoop an' we're in the soup!"
"Oh,
I say, Clary, jolly poetic—one whoop an' we're in the soup. Not to worry, I've
given up whoopin' for
the
moment."
oo
A
searat named Fleawirt lay asleep facing the main fire. It was difficult trying
to sleep in open woodlands after a life of sprawling to rest in the swaying,
rocking crew's accommodation of a ship. Fleawirt awoke. His face was scorched
and burning with the fire, though his back was stiff and chilled to the bone by
the night breezes. He turned grumpily over, placing his back toward the fire.
As he did, a sharp twig stuck in his cheek. Fleawirt sat up, cursing silently
as he rubbed his injured face. Then a very strange thing happened.
Sitting
up, facing away from the fire, Fleawirt found himself looking at the oarslaves.
They lay sleeping, chained in pairs, some whimpering in their dreams, others
clutching each other tightly in slumber. Then
296
there
was a slight clink of chains and four oarslaves vanished into the ground!
Fleawirt
rubbed his eyes and yawned, half turning to He down once more. Then the oddness
of what he had seen hit him. He stood bolt upright as another two slaves
disappeared into the earth!
"Cap'n
Graypatch! Look, the slaves!"
Fleawirt's
cries aroused the entire camp. Graypatch sprang up and began shaking Fleawirt.
"What's
goin' on? Tell me!"
"The
slaves, the ground, four of 'em, then another two, the floor, I saw it!"
"Stop
babblin' like a fool. Now tell me what happened, properly!"
"Well,
I was sittin' up awake an' all of a sudden I saw four of the oarslaves just
vanish into the floor. I looked again an' another two went, right in front o'
me eyes, Cap'n. I swear it!"
The
oarslaves were wakening, yawning and rubbing at their eyes as the noise around
them grew into a hubbub. Graypatch ran among them, scattering the thin bodies
left and right, a flaring torch held high. Quickly he counted them—twelve,
including the squirrel. Fleawirt was right—six oarslaves had vanished, somehow.
He stumbled as he stepped into a small pothole, which on closer inspection
proved to be a tunnel which had been backfilled after the slaves escaped.
Graypatch sank his sword uselessly into the loose earth, stabbing at it wildly.
"It
was a tunnel! They got six slaves out through a stinkin' tunnel!"
Bigfang
strode about, nodding his head knowingly. "So, a tunnel, eh, mates—that's
how they did it. Prob'ly got some of those squirrels to do their diggin' for
them. I thought so!"
Graypatch
grabbed Bigfang by the nose. Digging his claws in tightly, he twisted with
cruel ferocity.
297
"Moles,
muckhead, not squirrels! Moles, d'ye hear
mer
Bigfang
pranced about, tears squirting from his eyes. Graypatch aimed a hard kick,
which caught him in the rear and sent him sprawling.
"Now
up on yer claws, the lot o' yer. Spread out an' get searchin'. They can't have
gone far. I want 'em back, dead or alive!"
Clary,
Thyme and Rosie appeared, just outside the clearing, "I say, slobberchops,
you shouldn't've twisted the poor chap's hooter like that. He was right, we did
use squirrels!"
"Get
theeeeeemmm!" Graypatch's voice was somewhere between a roar and a
screech.
The
searats charged forward in a mob at the three hares. Then they hit the
tripwires that had been carefully set anew. The hares melted into the woodland,
being careful to travel in the opposite direction from Foremole and his crew,
who were guiding the six slaves back to Red wall.
Graypatch
and several others who had been at the back of the charge followed the hares,
leaping over the sprawling heaps of rats who had fallen or tripped or been
pushed onto the tripwires by the momentum of their dashing comrades. Graypatch
looked back at them over his shoulder.
"Blunderin'
idiots!"
There
was an immense tug on his legs. Instantly he was swinging back and forth as he
dangled upside-down from a spring rope tied to a tree limb. His head cracked
painfully against that of Frink, who was also suspended upside down by a rope.
Back at
the camp, Bigfang had scrambled upright and was shouting, though his nose
looked like a ripe plum ready to burst.
"See,
I told you it was squirrels. I was right—the rabbit said so!"
298
Chains
clinked as hammers thudded, sending keen-tipped chisels biting through the
chains and fetters of the oarslaves. Foremole patted each one fondly upon the
head as they were freed.
"Hurr,
guddbeasts, you'm go naow an' jump in 'ee barth, thurr be clean cloathen an'
vittles aplenty when you'm warshed!"
Mother
Mellus wiped her eyes on a spotted kerchief. "You can almost see their
bones sticking out, poor little things!"
Flagg
struck the last of the chains free. "Don't fret, marm. They've got mouths
to eat with—they'll soon be fat as hogs."
Gabriel
Quill sniffed. "Speak for yourself, stream-dog!"
oo
Before
they went to the dormitories, Clary and
his
friends
sat with Foremole and the crew around the
fireplace
in Cavern Hole, drinking a nightcap of mulled
October
ale.
"Excellent
night's work, chaps. Eight down, twelve
to go,
wot?" Thyme stared into the flames. "Right you are, old
sport,
but it's goin' to get much harder each time, now
that
they know what we're really after. Much jolly well
harder."
Hon Rosie emptied her tankard at a single gulp.
"Clary,
may I?"
"Oh,
I s'pose so. Permission t' carry on, Rosie." "I say, Clary, thanks.
Whoohahahahahooh!" Dan'1 and Groaby banged their tankards down upon
the
hearth, wincing visibly at the ear-splitting sound. "Gwaw! That's et, oi'm
arf t' bed!" "Hurr, an' oi too, afore oi'm deafened fer loif!"
299
Captain
Catseyes of the Seatalon patted the new sword at his side proudly. Never had a
searat set eyes upon such a sword as this. He watched the two new oarslaves
bending their backs as they pulled in stroke with the others.
"Up
an' one, an' down an' two, Bend yer backs an' curse yer birth. Up an' one, an'
down an' two, Pull those oars fer all your worth!"
The
grating voice of the slavedriver echoed across the benches as he strode up and
down, flicking his cruel whip, reciting the crude rowing poem as he laid out
about him.
"Up
an' one, an' down an' two, Some have backs without no hide. Up an' one, an'
down an' two, Those who couldn't row have died. Up an' one, an' down an' two,
Here's a gift from me to you!"
He
lashed out with the whip. An oarslave arched his back and screamed.
300
Catseyes
nodded toward Dandin and Durry. "The two new 'uns, how are they shapin'
up, Blodge?"
Blodge
the slavedriver flicked his whip toward the pair. "No better or worse than
the rest o' them, Cap'n. Though they're still fresh an' strong, a season or so
eatin' slave slops an' the weight of that oar they're chained to should knock some
o' the starch out of 'em."
Catseyes
strode down the alleyway between the oars until he was facing Dandin. The
searat Captain drew the sword, watching the lantern lights playing up and down
the length of its wondrous blade.
"You
don't look much like a warrior mouse. Where'd a liddle fish like you come by a
blade such as this beauty?"
Dandin's
eyes blazed fire at the Captain of the Seatalon. "I am Dandin of Redwall.
That is the sword of Martin the Warrior. You are not fit to wear it, rat!"
Catseyes
nodded to Blodge. The slavedriver flailed his whip hard against Dandin's back.
The young mouse did not even flinch, he continued to glare his hatred at the
searat Captain. Catseyes laughed.
"Feisty
Hddle brute, ain't you. Well, we'll see about that."
Fishtail
the mate leaned across the rail, listening to his Captain's instructions as
Terramort Isle appeared like a tiny pinpoint on the horizon.
"Cap'n
Flogga should be there with the Rathelm. It could be dangerous fer me,
Fishtail— I'm no friend of Gabool or Flogga. When we drop anchor in Terramort
cove, I want you to go up to Fort Bladegirt an' spy out the lay o' the land.
Take most of the crew with yer, matey. I'll be all right aboard here with
Blodge an' five others. Stay well armed an' careful, keep an eye peeled on that
Gabool and learn if anybeast brought Graypatch back an' claimed the booty from
the Darkqueen's hold. Oh, an' you might have a chat with Flogga, see if he
favors Gabool, an' listen out fer any talk of the other
301
Cap'ns
formin' an alliance against Gabool. But mind what I say, matey: be careful of
Gabool—he's wild, an' crazy with it. I'll wait aboard this ship for yer return.
Got
that?"
"Aye
aye, Cap'n. Leave it t' me."
oo
The
gruff voice of Blodge rang through the galley. "Ship oars, me lucky
buckos. We'll ride in to Terramort on
the
swell."
All
around Dandin and Durry the oarslaves leaned heavily on their oars, bringing
the shafts down and locking them by wedging the ends beneath the benches, thus
leaving the oarblades sloping high out of the sea to port and starboard, giving
Seatalon the appearance of a bird with outspread wings as she drifted toward
Terramort on billowing sails.
Durry
licked his paws gently. "I feel powerful sorry for the pore child who owns
these paws. What my o' nuncle'd say if he saw his fav'rite nephew a-chained up
in some scurvy searats' galley I fears to think!"
Dandin
wiped beading sweat from his brow. "I wonder where we are."
The
little oarslave directly in front of him, a field-mouse named Copsey, provided
the answer.
"We're
coasting into Terramort. Didn't you hear Blodge? It makes no difference where
we drop anchor, us rowers stay right here, chained to our benches. That's the
life of an oarslave, Dandin."
She bent
her head against the oar and rested. Dandin patted her scarred back. "Not
if I can help it, Copsey." Wooden bowls were passed among the slaves. They
leaned toward the alleyway, each holding the big bowl in their right paw, the
smaller in the left. Blodge passed with his assistant, a small, evil-faced
rodent named Clatt. They had with them two wooden buckets, one full of boiled
barley meal, the other of water. Blodge filled the large bowls with water,
Clatt the smaller ones with barley meal. Both rats thought it great fun to slop
302
the
water or meal carelessly at a bowl so that it missed and splashed upon the
deck.
"Come
on, scum. Lively now, an' hold those bowls out straight!"
"Aye,
we're too kind to you idlers, treat you like a pair o' nursemaids, we do. Hee
hee hee!"
Using
their paws to eat the lukewarm mess, Dandin and Durry listened in to Blodge and
Clatt's conversation.
"When
I get to Bladegirt I'm gonna grab some roasted seabird an' sweet wine an' some
o' those sugary dried fruits King Gabool keeps."
"Huh,
you goin' to Fort Bladegirt? No such luck, Clatt. You're stayin' aboard with
me'n Cap'n Catseyes an' four others."
"Gerrout,
Blodge. Yer jokin' with me!"
"Cap'n's
orders, matey. Do as yer told, or else!" Blodge drew a claw across his
throat, indicating what would happen.
Clatt
threw the bucket down, its contents slopping out onto the deck. "Hell's
teeth! We may's well be oarslaves, stuck aboard this old tub all the time while
others are havin' a good leave on Terramort. It's not right, mate, I tell ye.
I'm sick an' fed up with it!"
"Nan,
you stop 'ere with me, Clatt. I think there's goin' t' be trouble up at
Bladegirt. Best we stay out of the way. Tell you what, shipmate—we'll go to the
forecastle head cabin an' make skilly, you an' me."
Clatt
brightened up at this suggestion. "An' some raisin duff. Can we make a pan
o' raisin duff?"
"Aye,
skilly an' duff. That'll gladden our 'earts. Ain't nothin' like skilly an' duff
in a snug liddle cabin."
Clatt
turned to the nearest oarslave, a very young shrew. "Avast, you
bilgepup, d'you like skilly
an' duff?" The young shrew nodded vigorously. "Yes, sir!"
"Well,
you won't be gettin' none, it's all fer me an' Blodge. Hee hee hee!"
303
Durry
Quill gritted his teeth as they strode off laughing. "I'd like to meet
that Clatt when I don't have no
chains
on one day!"
oo
The
Seatalon rode at anchor in Terramort cove as evening gave way to night. The
wind had dropped, leaving the air still and warm. Captain Catseyes leaned over
the rail, staring up to the lighted windows of Bladegirt. Blodge popped his
head out of the forecastle cabin.
"Skilly
an' duff, Cap'n. Me an' Clatt made enough fer all claws aboard."
Catseyes
left the rail, adjusting the sword of Martin so it rode more comfortably at his
side. "Thankee, Blodge. I think I will!"
00
The
weary oarslaves were slumbering chained to their oars as the hooded mouse stole
carefully into the galley-deck. He glanced around, shaking his head at the pitiful
figures. The mouse was not young anymore, but he was well set up and strongly
built. From his belt he drew several sharp three-cornered rasp files. Dandin
had been watching him through half-closed eyes; now the young mouse sat upright
as the other crept past him. Dandin caught hold of the stranger's dark cloak.
"Who are you? What are you doing here?"
The
hooded mouse held up a warning paw. "Ssshhh! I bring freedom!"
Dandin
nodded, recognizing immediate friendliness in the stranger's voice. "What
do you want me to do? Say the word and I'll help."
"Wake
the others as quietly as you can. Here, take one of these and use it on those
chains."
Dandin
accepted the file. He shook Durry and Copsey gently. "Hush now, be quiet.
Wake up the others, but do it softly."
All
around Dandin oarslaves were being wakened as he worked away with the file. It
was a good file. He
304
freed
himself then began on Durry's chains. The hedgehog smiled at him in the
darkness.
"Wait'11
I tells my o' nuncle 'bout this!"
The
strange mouse gave a low whistle, and twenty other mice entered the galleydeck.
They set about helping to release the slaves.
A small
thin harvestmouse stood up. Unable to contain himself, he laughed aloud and
threw his broken chains noisily to the deck. One of the helpers muffled the
harvest mouse in his cloak, but it was too late.
Pawsteps
sounded above, then Captain Catseyes' high-pitched voice called out:
"Who's that? Who's down there?"
The
stranger took off his cloak. Beneath it he was a broad, fit-looking fellow,
clad in a searat jerkin, though Dandin noticed that he was completely silvery
gray. The mouse bundled the cloak up and passed it to Dandin. "Who's that
calling out on deck?"
"Captain
Catseyes, the Master of this ship. Why?"
"Everybeast
back at their oars, hide the broken chains and leave this to me. Be quick
now!"
The
oarslaves seated themselves, whilst the other cloaked mice hid beneath the
galley benches.
"Cap'n
. . . Cap'n Catseyes," the strange mouse called up to the deck.
"Gabool sent me down. His Majesty has news for you ..."
Catseyes
came bounding down the companionway. Anxiously he strode up to the strange
mouse. "What news from King Gabool?"
The
strange mouse stepped close in, drawing a dagger from the back of his belt.
"Gabool doesn't know, but I brought you this!"
He slew
Catseyes with one fierce thrust.
Dandin
leaped forward. Unbuckling the dead searat's belt, he retrieved the swrord and
scabbard. More paw-steps sounded above on deck.
"Cap'n,
can we get some wine from yer cabin?"
305
"Aye,
skilly 'n' duff's better with a drop o' wine, Cap'n."
"That's
Blodge and Clatt," Dandin whispered to the stranger. "Leave them to
us when they come down."
"Right,
how many more aboard?"
"Four
besides them."
"We'll
take care of them. Get that body out of sight and sit back down as you were.
The rest of you hide."
Blodge
and Clatt came stumbling down into the half-light of the galleydeck. Blodge
peered around bad-tem-peredly.
"Cap'n,
where are yer? Ain't we goin' t' get no wine tonight?"
"Not
tonight or any other night, slavedriver!"
Clatt
gave a squeak of dismay; blocking the stairway was the stranger, backed by
twenty hooded mice. He whirled about to find himself facing Dandin. Blodge
unwound the whip from about his shoulders and raised it threateningly.
"Get back, or I'll have the hide off yer!"
Dandin
chopped the nailing lash in two pieces with a sweep of his sword. "You'll
never use that whip on another creature, rat!"
He
hurled himself upon the slavedriver, who fell back yelling hoarsely as he
grappled at his belt for his own sword.
Copsey
and Durry gave Clatt a mighty shove in the back, and he shot from the alleyway
straight into the arms of a bunch of oarslaves who were waiting, swinging
lengths of broken chain. Clatt had time for just one short despairing scream.
Just one, no more!
From
above decks the sound of four bodies splashing in the sea told the oarslaves
that the stranger and his companions had dealt finally with the remaining crew
members. Dandin stood straight, distastefully wiping his sword upon the fallen
body of Blodge.
"He
died as he lived, a cringing coward who could only strike out at helpless
creatures in chains!"
306
The
freed slaves made their way up to the deck. The stranger and
his band were loading up
with any weapons that they could
find. He nodded at Dandin "All finished down there?"
The
young mouse sheathed his sword. "As finished as it'll ever be. What
next?"
"We
take everything we can from this ship-weapons, food and clothing-then we get
off and sink her. From there we go to the caves at the other side of the
island. When the time is right we will attack Fort Bladegirt and put an end to
Gabool the Wild. Are you with us?" J
The
freed slaves looked at Dandin. He grasped the stranger's outstretched paw.
"We're
with you every step of the way and glad to be along! My name is Dandin of Red
wall. What's yours?"
The
stranger swirled his dark cloak about him, a broad, honest grin creeping across
his strong features. "They call me Joseph the Bellmaker!"
307
33
The
morning was a fine one. Blue smoke from the searat campfires drifted through
the high woodland trees, mingling with sloping shafts of sunbeam across leafy
boughs of oak, ash, rowan, sycamore, elm and beech. Soft mosses, short grass
and variegated flowers carpeted the ground, broken here and there by beds of
fern and flowering nettles.
The
beauty of it all was lost upon the searats; food was the more practical problem
of the moment. Gray-patch had argued, ranted and cajoled, but the faction led
by Bigfang and Lardgutt won the day, appealing to greed rather than conquest.
Hunger made Bigfang unexpectedly eloquent on the subject of food.
Graypatch
listened, knowing he had no real answer to Bigfang's argument.
"Shipmates,
we ain't woodland rats, we're searats. We always had plenty o' fish an'
seabirds too, besides what stores we could plunder. But here we ain't got
nothin', an' there's too many of us to be sharin' nothin'! Oh, leaves, berries,
roots 'n' fruits are fine, if y'know which are the right ones an' which ones
won't make a body sick or even kill yer. But we don't! So we're goin' to starve
if we can't get proper vittles to eat!"
308
There
was massive agreement with this statement. Graypatch shrugged.
"Well,
fair enough, Bigfang. Tell us the answer— you're so smart!"
Bigfang
had his answer ready this time. "I say we use our weapons to get food, not
to fight some Abbey or guard a lot of useless oarslaves. Split up, go in gangs,
fish the streams an' ponds, kill the birds with slingshots, arrows, anythin',
but let's get some decent grub inside of us!"
Amid
the roars of approval, Graypatch waved his sword for silence.
"All
right, all right! That sounds sensible t' me. I never had no objections to a
searat crew feedin' theirsel-ves, mateys. But there's still these oarslaves.
They're ours, and we can't let 'em be nabbed away by those Redwallers, so I
suggest we build a cage for 'em, then we can go huntin'. Avast, what do ye
say?"
Bigfang
pointed his sword at Graypatch. "You do what you want, rat. We're goin' to
get food!"
The
entire crew stopped what they were doing and watched. Bigfang had finally laid
down his challenge. Graypatch gripped his sword tight and confronted his enemy.
"So,
it's come t' this, eh, matey!"
Bigfang
circled, crouching low, sword at the ready. "I'm no matey o' yours,
rat!"
"Haharr,
I reckon you fancy yourself as Cap'n round here!"
"Couldn't
make no worse a job of it than you, smart-mouth!"
With a
roar they clashed, blade striking upon blade. The searats formed a circle for
them to fight in. Bigfang was strong; he used his sword like a club, hacking
and bludgeoning at his opponent. Graypatch was vastly more experienced; he
ducked and parried, dodging away from the main attacks, using the campfire as a
barrier.
309
They
fought in silence, none of the crew shouting encouragement to one or the other
lest the shouter back the losing beast. Dust and ashes from the fire rose in
billows as the pair battled savagely, Bigfang gaining the upper claw slightly
with his size, strength and ferocity. Graypatch countered most of the moves,
sometimes making Bigfang look awkward and ungainly, but as sword locked sword
they gritted and sweated, their faces almost touching.
Graypatch
began to realize that he was not as young and powerful as Bigfang. Fighting
desperately to keep the foe from his blind side, he felt himself starting to
tire and weaken. But experience was on his side; he kept his single eye on the
main chance. Striving wildly, he turned Bigfang so that his back was to the
fire and redoubled his attack. Bigfang was forced backward until one foot went
into the fire. He yelped in pain. Gray-patch dodged away, as if giving his
adversary a chance to recover. Bigfang looked down at his scorched foot-claws
for a vital second.
It cost
him his life. Graypatch snatched the spear that Frink was holding and hurled
it. He was too close to miss.
From
the branches of a tall beech close by, a fat squirrel sat watching. He shook
his head as he saw Bigfang fall. "Hmm, could've told him that'd happen.
That old rat's
no
fool!"
oo
Graypatch
stood with his narrow chest heaving. He glared around the circle to reassert
his authority as Captain.
"Come
on, riffraff, anyone else wanna be
Cap'n?
Speak
up!"
A
deathly hush had settled over the crew. The only sound was the crackling of the
campfire as they stood staring at the carcass of Bigfang, who only moments
310
ago had
been alive and arguing. Graypatch laid the flat of his sword against Lardgutt's
throat.
"Come
on, bagbelly. Do you fancy tryin' fer Cap'n?" Lardgutt could not even
gulp, the sword was so tight on his neck. "Not me, you're the Cap'n . . .
Cap'n!"
Graypatch
nodded approvingly, immediately changing his mood. "Right, matey. I'm the
Cap'n an' I gives the orders. So let's see plenty o' stout wood bein' cut to
make a cage fer our oarslaves. After that we'll head out into these woodlands
an' plunder all the vittles a searat can lay claws on. Now, what've ye got t'
say to that?"
Though
the tone was subdued they all replied, "Aye-aye, Cap'n."
Rufe
Brush gave a shout of delight as the fat squirrel came bounding in across the
north wall with acrobatic skill.
"Oak
Tom, you old bushrumbler! Well, curl my tail!"
They
hugged and wrestled, as squirrels do, then the normally taciturn Rufe held his
friend out at paw's-length.
"Let
me look at you, treejumper. By the fur, you're twice as fat as a badger at a
feast. What've you been doin' to yourself?"
Oak Tom
patted his vast stomach and chortled. "Yukyukyuk! Rovin' and eatin',
though mostly eatin'. Doesn't slow me down at all. I'm faster than I ever was,
young Rufe!"
Again
they fell to wrestling and hugging. Several Dibbuns had gathered to view the
performance. They called encouragement, thinking it was some sort of fight.
"Bite
his tail off, Rufe!"
"Kick
'im in 'ee gurt fat tummy, squirr'l!"
Mother
Mellus and Abbot Bernard came hurrying over. Oak Tom released Rufe and
performed several acrobatic pawsprings.
"Abbot
Bernard, how are ye, Father? Oh, look out, it's old stripy top. Bet y'can't
catch me for a bath now, Ma Mellus!"
The
badger put on a mock-serious expression, wagging her paw at him. "Just let
me catch you, Oak Tom. You were the worst Dibbun Redwall ever had to put up
with. I'll wager you've not had a bath since you left here last summer."
The
fat, nimble Oak Tom bounded up on Mellus's broad back and whispered in her ear,
" 'Course I have. Here, this is for you."
Pulling
a small package from his traveling bag, he dropped it in Mellus's paw. The
badger sniffed it appreciatively.
"Oh,
jasmine and lavender soap! Where did you get it? No, don't tell me, I'd hate to
think of one of my Dibbuns stealing."
Oak Tom
pulled a long face. The Abbot patted his head fondly.
"She's
only joking, Tom. Come and talk to me, tell me all the news of your travels.
You're just in time for lunch—we're eating out in the orchard. Summer salad,
leek and celery soup, hot rootbread and strawberry trifle to follow."
"You
must've known I was comin' back. My favorite of all: strawberry trifle.
Yahoooooo!"
Oak Tom
went hurtling away toward the orchard in a series of blurring somersaults. Runn
and Grubb watched him go.
"He
must've been a terrible Dibbun, worser'n us!" "Buhurr aye, oi
weager'ee wurr a gurt fat hinfant!"
oo
The
news Oak Tom brought was extremely serious, particularly to Clary and his long
patrol. They listened intently.
Mellus
glanced anxiously at Clary when Oak Tom finished telling what he had witnessed
at the searat
312
camp.
Clary paced about in the shade of a gnarled pear tree.
"A
big cage, y'say. Just how big, Tom?"
"Big
'n' strong enough t' hold all twelve o' them. Well made too, with thick
branches an' lashings. Very heavy, I'd say."
Clary
struck the tree with his paw. "Darn! I knew it'd come t' this,
somehow."
"What
does it mean, Colonel?"
Clary
coughed and brushed his whiskers with the back of a paw. "Oh nothin',
marm. At least, naught fer you to worry your head about. Leave it t' me. I'll
have a word with my jolly old pals —we'll sort it out. Tickety-boo—that's the
word, wot!"
Simeon
groped about with his paw until he touched Mellus's cheek. "There was a
lot of false bravado in what Clary said. I think he's worried."
Saxtus
watched the lanky figure of the hare retreating toward the Abbey. "Yes,
the more anxious hares get the lighter they seem to make of things, have you
noticed?"
Mellus
stared at the young mouse intently. "That's a shrewd observation for one
so young, Saxtus!"
oo
In the
dormitory allotted to them, the three hares sat upon the rush-matted floor.
Clary had laid out a plan of the searat encampment with various bedroom
articles. He placed a lantern squarely in the middle. "That's where the
bally cage is, chaps."
They
studied it, Thyme stroking his waxed moustache whiskers.
"Hmmm,
difficult, extremely awkward, wot! But y'say they've all gone out killin' birds
an' the like. P'raps there's a chance we could pay the confounded camp a visit
now and make a surprise sortie?"
Clary
shook his head. "No chance, old lad. Oak Tom went an' scared off all the
game in the blinkin' neighborhood. There won't be a bird or a fish for miles.
313
They'll
prob'ly be back by now, roastin' roots an' burnin' apples an' whatnot. It's a
rotten ol' standoff."
Hon
Rosie shrugged. "No way out—we're stumped!"
Clary
sighed. "There is one way, the only sure way. I knew it'd come down t'
this eventually, as soon as I saw those searats in Mossflower country I felt it
in m' bones."
They
sat looking at each other awhile, then Clary sniffed airily.
"Still
an' all, Lord Rawnblade wouldn't have us do anythin' else."
Thyme
chuckled. "Rather, old Rawney'd have a blue fit if we didn't!"
Hon
Rosie picked up her lance and began polishing it. "I say, then let's do
it, just for a lark. Whoohahah-
ahooh!"
oo
Gabool
the Wild did not bother covering up the pit anymore. He cackled madly as he
gazed in at the loathsome sight of the huge black scorpion perching on the
carcass of Fishtail, former ship's mate of the Seatalon.
"Haharrharrharr!
That'll teach Catseyes t' send scurvy traitors spyin' on me. What d'ye say,
Skrabblag?"
The
glistening arachnid clicked and rustled balefully. Gabool strode out gesturing
into the air as he conversed with himself.
"No
need for Cap'ns when there's a King! I'll show 'em, badgers 'n' bells, ships
'n' searats, Cap'ns 'n' Kings. Haharr, round an' round they run, a-chasin' each
other through my head, but Gabool will win in the end!"
He
swept into the banqueting hall, where the assembled searats watched in
astonishment as he stood, claws on hips, talking to the great tarnished bell
which dominated the center of the floor.
"Go
on, ring yer way out o' that one, hearty! Oh, you'll sing fer me one day. Ring,
ring, Gabool the King!"
He
whirled upon the two crews. "An' what're you all gawpin' at, pray? Nothin'
t' do, nothin' to report?
"The
Seatalon's been sunk in the cove!"
Not
bothering to see which rat had spoken, Gabool dashed to the window.
"Hellfires! That's two vessels in as many days, first Darkqueen an' now
Seatahnl"
"That
wasn't Darkqueen, Lord, it was Rathelm, Cap'n Flogga's ship."
Gabool
stroked his long, unkempt beard. "Darkqueen, Rathelm, same thing. There's
Waveblade, Nightwake, Crabclaw, an' Blacksail, all t' come in. Let me know the
moment they anchor."
After
he had left the hall the gossip ran rife.
"Gabool's
crazier'n a scalded beetle!"
"Don't
let him fool yer, matey. He could still recall what ships he's got out at
sea—aye, an' their names, too."
"I
tell yer he's bats, chattin' away to a bell, pretty as y'please."
"Well,
crazy or not, this is the place where all his booty's hid. Cap'n Flogga told me
that."
"Aye,
an' where's Flogga now?"
"An'
Fishtail as well. I've seen nary a sight o' him since we came here."
"I
say let's wait'll the rest o' the fleet's in, then we'll see what the other
Cap'ns have t' say about all this rigamarole."
"Wait—what
else can we do but wait, shipmates? Both our vessels are sittin' on the bed o'
the cove down there. Somebeast scuttled 'em; they're sunk!"
"Gabool's
changed. See his eyes? They're red like blood. He's actin' strange, mates
—runnin' round this place filthy as some ol' tramp. That was never his way. I
don't mind tellin' yer, I'm scared."
"Anyrat
who isn't is a fool, matey. But we're stuck 'ere, so we better make the best of
it. Any vittles in the kitchens, I wonder?"
315
Tarquin
kept for'ard lookout, Mariel took the stern, Rawnblade stood at the tiller,
steering a course off-line with the little swallow's flight as it dangled on
its thread beneath the awning.
Mariel
left off scanning the horizon to stare at the impressive figure of Lord
Rawnblade Widestripe. He resembled some giant stepped out of legend, clad
partially now in helmet and breastplate, the sword Vermin-fate resting beneath
one paw as he steered with the other. Spray glistened, dewing the shaggy fur,
as his keen dark eyes gazed out across the seas, brows lowered as if he were
pondering some mystery known only to badger Lords. This then was the creature
for whom her father had cast and made the great bell; she could think of no
nobler or worthier owner for her father's masterpiece. Her father, Joseph. The
name meant everything to Mariel: security, love, guidance and a comradeship
between parent and child that was more like having a best friend than a father
at times . . . his humorous twinkling eyes and ready wit.
"I
say, old gel, have y'gone asleep back there? Ships ahoy and astern!"
The
sound of Tarquin's voice brought Mariel back to reality.
Three
sets of sails had appeared on the horizon in their wake, and Lord Rawnblade
gave swift instructions. Without questioning his authority, Mariel and Tarquin
took up their positions whilst the badger Lord concealed himself in the cabin
below.
The
three vessels Nightwake, Crabdaw and Blacksail were traveling back to Terramort
in loose convoy, though now they sensed Terramort was reasonably near they
broke formation and began racing to see who could anchor first in the cove.
Captain
Hookfin of the Blacksail held the tiller steady as they ran before the
southwest wind, tacking occasionally to keep his craft on course. He cursed as
316
the
Nightwake drew level, with her master Riptung at the helm. "A cask of dark
wine I beat ye back, Riptung!"
Riptung
swung the tiller over recklessly, causing him to veer. "Haharr, not in
that ol' tub y'won't, matey!"
With
superb skill and daring, the corsair Grimtooth plied his craft between them
both. "Hoho, I'll show ye how a real searat sails, mates, an' I'll drink
that wine to teach ye both a lesson in searatship!"
The
Nightwake was now closest to Mariel and the Waveblade as the three ships bore
onward, all oars pulling and sails at full stretch.
Riptung
wiped spray from his eyes and looked across. From the distance all he could see
was a very small steersrat and an extra-lanky lookout, both decked out in the
tattered finery of searats.
"Ahoy,
Waveblade, where have ye come from?" Riptung called out.
The
small steersrat indicated back across her left shoulder, but did not shout a
reply. Riptung understood.
"South,
eh. We wer down that way, must've missed yer. Are you on for a race back to
Terramort, cask o' wine fer the prize?"
The
small rat shook its head, jiggling the tiller and shrugging.
Riptung
nodded. "Rudder trouble, matey? Where's Cap'n Orgeye?"
The
lanky one on lookout pantomimed sleep, resting his head on the foredeck rail
and pointing below.
Riptung
laughed aloud. "Haharr, lazy ol' Orgeye, snorin' like a hog. Too much
wine, eh?"
The
lanky one did a stagger and held his stomach and forehead at the same time.
Riptung smote the tiller, laughing uproariously.
"Scupper
me, the drunken ol' blubberfish. Ahoy there, tell 'im when he wakes that he
missed a chance o' winnin' a big cask o' wine."
3*7
The two
searats waved back as the ships drew away, racing pell-mell for Terramort,
Riptung shouting tidings of Orgeye to the other two Captains, who shook their
heads with merriment.
Rawnblade's
huge head poked out of the cabin doorway. "Have they gone?"
Tarquin
blew out a long sigh of relief. "Aye, m'Lord, but it was a close thing.
Any nearer to us and the game would've been up; they would have seen we weren't
bally searats."
Mariel
leaned back against the tiller, wiping her brow. "Whew! See that? It isn't
seaspray, it's sweat. How they could ever have taken me and Tarquin for a
couple of scurvy searats, I'll never know."
Rawnblade
strode up on deck. "We'll furl in the sails and let them get in to
Terramort well ahead of us. Up you go, Woodsorrel. I'm too heavy to be climbing
masts, and Mariel's needed on deck."
Tarquin
took a look at the swaying mainmast billowing with sail. He threw a paw across
his eyes and staggered giddily.
"Oh,
corks. Do I have to climb up that great swayin' thing an' fold all those windy
old bedsheets? Do I really, sir?"
Rawnblade
pointed a stern paw to the topmast. "Up, Woodsorrel, up!"
Tarquin
spat on his paws but made a last-ditch plea to a passing gull. "I say,
birdie old bean, just furl a jolly old sail or two as you're passin', there's a
good chap."
The sea
gull flew heedlessly on. Rawnblade stood with his hefty paw still pointed into
the rigging. "Up!"
Tarquin
nervously scaled the mast, calling out to the sea gull, who had decided to
hover overhead and view the performance.
"Yah
rotten ol' featherbag, bet your mum was a cuckoo. Oh golly, if Hon Rosie could
see me now she'd split her fur laughin'."
318
34
At that
precise moment Hon Rosie had never been more serious in her life. She stood in
a small wooded area, just out of sight of the searat camp. With her were Clary,
Thyme, Rufe Brush, Oak Tom and the pretty squirrel Treerose. The hares were
armed to the teeth— lances, bows, arrows and a dagger apiece. Clary was talking
to the squirrels.
"Now
you know the drill, chaps. As soon as I shout out t' you then you come runnin',
get the slaves away pretty darn quick an' head north, take a loop south an'
straight back to the Abbey. I've left that big otter chappie Flagg a note—he'll
know what t' do. Don't forget now—whatever happens, keep the bally slaves goin'
full speed an' get 'em back to Redwall posthaste, wot!"
Rufe
Brush clapped Clary on the back. "Got it. Keep the slaves goin' till we're
safe back home, right? But what about you three?"
Thyme
tested his bowstring. "Don't worry about us, laddie buck. We'll be right
as rain, won't we, Rosie?"
"What,
oh er, rather! Get the little thingummies back to the wotsit and leave the rest
to us. Tickety-boo an' all that!"
Clary
glanced at the noon sky. "Time to go, troops!"
Rufe,
Tom and Treerose shook paws with the three
319
hares.
Clary sent them off. "Get round the back of the camp an' wait for my
signal."
"Righto.
Goodbye an' good luck, Thyme."
"Toodle-pip,
old scout. Chin up."
Treerose
waved. "Goodbye, Rosie. See you back at the Abbey."
Rosie
nodded. "'Course you will, pretty
one. On
your
way now,"
When the
squirrels had gone,
Colonel Clary
inspected
his patrol.
"Very
smart, top marks, good turnout, wot!"
Thyme
brushed his moustache one last time. "No excuse for sloppiness, my old pa
always said."
They
nocked shafts onto their bowstrings and strode off toward the searat camp,
talking softly to each other.
"Make
me proud of you now, troops."
"Goes
without sayin', Clary. We'll give Rawnblade somethin' to talk about while we're
at it, wot!"
"I
say, Clary. Is it all right if I laugh 'n' hoot a bit once the show gets under
way?"
"Permission
granted, Rosie old gel. You chuckle as
much as
y'like."
oo
The
searats were milling about the fires, shoving and pushing as they tried to get
cooking space. There had been no fish or meat taken, as a result of Oak Tom's
activities in the area. However, they had found a good supply of wild pears and
apples, and plentiful dandelion roots. Now they cooked the fruits, telling each
other that there would be good hunting tomorrow when the birds and fish
returned.
The
oarslaves sat miserably in their long wooden cage. It was exceptionally strong,
being made from thick green branches lashed together with rope. The young
creatures gazed longingly out at their captors, knowing the only food they
would receive was the waste and scraps after the rats had glutted themselves.
Pakatugg
pushed his face against the wooden bars.
320
He had
grown thin and gaunt in captivity, suffering the kicks and curses of searats.
He bitterly regretted tracking the Darkqueen in quest of plunder. Now he sat
staring through his prison at the woodlands beyond, thinking of his secret den
far away, the cool green light from the shading trees, the mossy rocks and
trickling stream . . .
Quite
suddenly Pakatugg saw the three hares of the long patrol! They were striding
grim-faced through the searat camp, making for the captives in the cage, fully
armed with lance and dagger, each with a shaft drawn tautly on a longbow. The
squirrel watched them silently, his eyes wide with disbelief. The hares ignored
the noisy crew of searats as they marched purposefully forward.
The rat
called Fleawirt was first to see them as he turned from the fire. "Hey!
Where d'yer think yer go — "
Wordlessly
Thyme turned and slew him, the heavy oak arrow knocking the startled searat
back fully three paces. Pandemonium broke out. Before the rats could grasp what
was going on, another two fell, pierced by shafts from Clary and Rosie. As
swiftly as they loosed the arrows, the long patrol had fresh ones stretched
upon their bowstrings.
"Get
them!" Greypatch bellowed, drawing his sword. "Don't just stand
there, kill 'em!"
Shaking
the numbness of surprise from him, one called Shoreclaw plucked his spear from
the ground and raised it. He was so close that Clary's arrow passed through him
and wounded another standing behind. Rosie dodged a spear as the trio quickened
their pace. She sent her arrow zinging into the snarling face of Kybo, cutting
off the scream that issued from his mouth. Now the hares sent out the
blood-chilling war cry of Salamandastron; it rang out above the clamor.
"Eulaliaaaaaaa!!!"
They arrived
at the cage, still sending arrows from
321
the
formidable longbows thudding into the horde of advancing foe rats.
Pakatugg
shoved his paw through the bars. "Give me a dagger and I'll cut the
ropes!"
Clary
tossed him a freshly sharpened knife from Redwall's kitchen. "What ho, you
old villain! Chop away at the back of the cage, would you."
A spear
took Thyme in the right footpaw. Gritting his teeth, he wrenched it out and
hurled it back, wounding its thrower. "Ah well, no more runnin' for me
today, wot?"
Rosie
stopped a charging rat with her lancepoint. "Hate to remind you, old
thing, but we didn't come here to run."
Clary
whacked out fiercely, breaking a leg with the heavy yew bow. "Famous last
stand, wot? Go out in a blaze of glory an' all that. Right, chaps. Another
quick volley, an' give 'em a shout t' let 'em know we've
arrived.
Fire!"
Three
arrows flew from the longbows into the seething rat pack.
"Eulaliaaaa!!!"
Pakatugg
slashed frenziedly at the remaining rope lashings in the back of the cage. The
bindings parted and a section of the woodwork fell away. The oarslaves huddled
dumbly in a group. He pushed through them, tugging at the back of Clary's belt
through the front bars.
"I've
done it, part of the back's fallen down!"
Colonel
Clary winced as an arrow took him in the shoulder. "Wait'11 the squirrels
arrive, old thing, then follow 'em. Take all the slaves an' stick close to
them, no matter what."
Clary
threw back his head and yelled, "Rufe, Tom, Treerose! Now now now!"
Thyme
was kneeling. Wounded in both footpaws, he bravely held his bow horizontally,
firing as rapidly as his dwindling quiver of arrows permitted. Glancing
322
back,
he saw the three Redwall squirrels herding the timid oarslaves out through the
broken cage into the woodlands. Rosie was throttling a struggling rat on her
bowstring as Clary held off the mob with a lance held in each paw.
"Mission
accomplished, eh, Rosie old scout!"
"Rather!
Whoohahahahahooh!"
Standing
at the back of the crew, Graypatch ran around belaboring with the flat of his
sword as he roared hoarsely, "Get into 'em! Come on, yer sluggards, rush
'em!"
Frink
took aim and skillfully threw a long dagger. "Got 'im! I've wounded the
big 'un in the ribs!"
The
grin of triumph froze on his face as an oak arrow found him.
Thyme
tugged at Clary's leg. "Out of arrows, old sport. Get me up on me pins an'
give me a lance!"
Pakatugg
assisted in getting Thyme upright. Clary glared at him.
"Where
did you come from, mister? You were supposed to escape with the rest. I won't
stand for insubordination, y'know!"
Armed
with a searat cutlass and spear, the squirrel growled dangerously. "I'm
stoppin' here, see. Don't like searats—dirty vermin beat me an' made sport o'
me. Nobeast does that to Pakatugg. I'll teach 'em!"
Rosie
flinched as a sword caught her high on the cheek. "Good for you, Paka,
y'nasty old rogue, give 'em vinegar!"
Flinging
their empty quivers and longbows into the faces of the rats, the long patrol
brandished daggers and lances. Charging forward, they carried the battle
straight into the ranks of the enemy, with Clary calling out aloud, "Nice
day for it, wot!"
Thyme
staggered forward. "Summer's my fav'rite season, old lad!"
Hon
Rosie clapped Pakatugg on the back. "Let's give
323
'em one
last shout, for Salamandastron an' the jolly old Abbey."
"Eulaliaaaa!
Redwaaaaaaall!"
Accompanied
by an old squirrel, the long patrol threw themselves into the howling mob of
searats.
oo
Not
just Flagg, but every creature in Redwall Abbey stood out upon the north
ramparts, scanning the path in the pale moonlight for signs of movement. Mellus
and Flagg were armed with longbows; lanterns flickered all along the walltop in
the hushed silence. Simeon the blind herbalist stood with the Abbot and the
Dibbuns, their bedtime forgotten in the tense, waiting atmosphere. Simeon's
voice was barely above a whisper, but it could be heard by many as he addressed
the Abbot.
"What's
happening out there, Bernard?" "Nothing, old friend. It's very quiet
and still down there."
"Hurr,
be they a-cummen yet, maister Simmen?" Simeon patted Grubb's velvety head.
"Only if you're very good and stay quiet, little mole." "Oi be
vurry soilint naow. Hussshhher!" "Whatever possessed them to go on
such an insane venture?" Mellus
murmured to Flagg. "Six of ours
against all that rotten horde. And to think it was I who urged Colonel Clary to
rescue the slaves in the first place."
Flagg
shook his head. "No, marm, it weren't you. Clary had it in his mind to do
the deed anyway. He left me a scroll tellin' all. I burned it in the kitchen
stove as he wished me to. So don't blame yerself, marm. They were sworn to
fight searats from birth; it was their destiny."
oo
Minutes
stretched into hours as the Redwallers waited, straining their eyes along the
north path, sometimes expectant at a sign of movement, only to have their
324
hopes
dashed by the realization that it was merely a shadow as clouds scudded across
the moon, or the rustle of breeze-stirred foliage.
The
Dibbuns had finally fallen asleep. Sister Sage covered them with blankets from
the gatehouse as they lay huddled together in the northwest corner of the
walltop.
Saxtus
and Sister Serena carried a caldron of leek and celery broth from the kitchens,
followed by Friar Alder and Cockleburr, laden with wheat farls.
Gabriel
Quill stared toward the eastern horizon over the treetops of Mossflower.
"Be dawn in two hour, I reckons."
Foremole
was slurping soup rather noisily from a wooden bowl when Simeon placed a
restraining paw on him. "Hush, I think I can sense something."
The
Abbot held up his paws for silence all around. "What is it, Simeon?"
The
blind mouse leaned out across the battlements, his whiskers quivering slightly.
"Metal, I thought I could hear metal . . . Yes, there it is! Any signs on
the path?"
"None
whatsoever."
"Sssh,
there it is again, over there on the woodland edge—metal. Wait . . . it's
chains, I can hear chains!"
Saxtus
sprang up between the battlements with a whoop. "Hurrah! It's them, I can
see Rufe Brush leading the slaves out of Mossflower onto the path. Hi,
Rufe!"
Flagg
acted speedily. "Marm, put an arrow to your bow and stand beside me here.
We'll keep them covered. Saxtus, Foremole, Gabe, you'll find spears down by the
main gate. Take twenty with you and escort them back in. Keep your wits about
you an' your eyes open. Hurry now, they may be followed by searats!"
oo
Without
further event the last eleven slaves made it into the safety of Redwall Abbey.
As the chains were
325
being
cut from their wasted limbs, the Abbot questioned the three squirrels who had
taken part in the rescue. Treerose and Oak Tom were crying; even the normally
tough Rufe Brush broke down and wept bitterly as they related what they had
seen at the magnificent last stand of the long patrol.
"They
didn't stand a chance, yet they came through the center of that searat camp
laughing and joking. They were completely surrounded!"
Oak Tom
was pale, his voice low and trembling. "I never thought that was what they
meant to do, but it was the only thing they could have done to free the slaves.
What makes it all so strange is that they knew what would happen, how it must
end!"
Treerose
accepted a spotted handkerchief from Fore-mole. "Oh, they were so brave!
Rosie smiled at me and said she'd see me back here. Oh, Father Abbot, why did
they do it?"
Abbot
Bernard shook his head gently. "Who knows, child, who knows? Certainly
none of us at Redwall. We are infants in the ways of war. Colonel Clary and his
hares were complete warriors. Their seasons were numbered from birth—they knew
this was the day their fates were sealed."
Saxtus
hung his head. "Yet they knew they were helping Redwall and bringing
liberty to the slaves, so they went to meet their destinies smiling and joking.
I was wrong about the hares and I'll always remember that when I make judgments
about other creatures."
oo
Simeon
and the Abbot went back to lock the main gates
before
turning in. Dawnlight was beginning to flush
the
skies.
"Triumph
and tragedy in the one night, old friend." The Abbot kicked away a stone
which was hindering
the
closing gate. "Right, Simeon . . . Hey, you two,
come in
here. Right now!" Bagg and Runn came strolling through the gateway
326
in
their nightshirts. Abbot Bernard wagged a stern paw at them.
"You
two rascals should be fast asleep in bed. What are you doing out here on the
path, may I ask?"
Bagg
rubbed his eyes sleepily. "Wavin' g'bye to Flagg an' Mum Mell's."
Throwing
the gate back open, the Abbot hurried out onto the path. "Flagg and Mother
Mellus? I can't see them. Are you telling whoppers?"
Two
heads shook vigorously.
"No,
Father Habbit, sir. Honestly!"
"They
went up that way an' into the woods." Runn pointed north.
"An'
they was carryin' those big bows an' lots of arrers too!"
327
35
Gabool
unsheathed his sword and glared suspiciously at the three Captains who had
stridden into Fort Blade-girt at the head of their crews.
"What
are you three doin' here? What d'yer want?"
"You
told us to come back here, Gabool."
"King
Gabool. You call me King, d'ye hear. Anyway, what news?"
"No
news. Graypatch an' that dratted Darkqueen have vanished from the seas—no sign
of 'em anywhere."
Gabool
tugged absently at his matted beard. "That's no news. I've taken care of
Graypatch an' Darkqueen long ago. Belay, have you three swabs been sinkin'
ships in Terramort cove?"
"Ships,
what ships?"
"Two
of 'em, haharr, but never mind that. Have ye heard the bell? What about the
great badger, did yer clap eyes on him?"
Riptung
looked from Hookfin to Grimtooth. All three raised their eyebrows and shrugged.
They watched as Gabool went across to the bell.
"See
that! They don't hear ye, so why should I?"
"So
it's right, he's mad as a gaffed fish," Riptung whispered to Grimtooth.
328
Gabool
spun round. "Avast, don't you three start plottin' behind me back!"
Riptung
took a cask from one of his crew. He banged it down upon the table, stoving its
head in with the hilt of his sword. "Nobeast's talkin' about yer, King
Gabool. Come an' share a beaker o' this wine that I won!"
Grimtooth
strode to the window. He stood drinking his wine and looking out to sea, then
turned, laughing, to the others.
"Hoho.
Lookit, mates, 'ere comes the Waveblade, sailin' inter the cove like a stranded
sardine. Haharr, I'll wager ol' Orgeye's still in his bunk snorin'."
They
crowded to the windows to watch. Hookfin tugged Riptung's sleeve urgently.
"Did you leave any watch aboard yer vessel, matey?"
Riptung
swung a claw back over his shoulder. "No, they're all up 'ere with me.
Why?"
Hookfin
pointed down at the three ships. "Then who's movin' those vessels out ter
sea?"
Riptung
drew his sword and faced Gabool. "This is one o' your tricks. What's yer
game?"
But
Gabool did not hear the angry Captain, he was staring wild-eyed at the hulking
figure that paced the deck of the Waveblade, distant but unmistakable.
"Aaaaah!
It's him, it's the badger!"
Immediately
the three searat Captains and their King started bellowing orders to the packed
hall.
"Get
down t' the cove, stop the Blacksail puttin' out t' sea!"
"Kill
the badger. I'll make any rat a Cap'n who slays him!"
"Stop
the Nightwake, some scurvy slob's tryin' to steal her!"
"The
badger! Kill the badger, shipmates!"
"Get
after the Crabdaw, buckos. Bring 'er back t' me!"
"Whoever
kills the badger is a rich rat, you got Gabool's oath on that!"
329
Mariel
stared at the three searat ships as Wavebladc sailed into Terramort cove.
Rawnblade swung the tiller, navigating between them.
"Strange,
they've just arrived yet they're going out again."
Tarquin
shaded his eyes and peered across. "Aye, an' those aren't searats who are
sailin' them. What d'you think's goin' on?"
"Ahoy
there, Mariel!"
The
mousemaid gasped. There standing on the shore of the cove, waving at her, was
Dandin. She jumped up and down, waving back.
"Dandin,
Dandin! Stay there, we're coming ashore!"
They
plunged over into the shallows and waded onto the beach.
Dandin
hugged and patted Tarquin and Mariel, who in their turn squeezed him tightly,
ruffling his whiskers and patting his paws as if they could not believe it was
really him. Smiling happily (and sniffling a little), Dandin managed to
extricate himself from the welcoming huddle.
"I
thought you were dead, I was certain you'd been drowned, though there wasn't
much time to think about that with the fix me and Durry found ourselves in. I
tell you, don't ever become an oarslave, it's worse than being captured by the
Flitchaye!"
When
the reunion was finished and Lord Rawnblade had been introduced, Mariel looked
about. "Where's Durry?"
No
sooner had she spoken than, in company with two hooded shrews, Durry came
pounding down the path to the cove. The young hedgehog looked very dashing,
wearing a broad leather belt with several daggers bristling from it and a hood
on his head.
"Oh,
Durry, you do look a proper swashbuckler and no mistake!" Mariel laughed.
However,
Durry Quill was in no mood for banter. Puffing and blowing, he waved back over
his shoulder.
330
"Phew!
Quick, 'urry up, there's about five 'undred searats 'ot on me trail. They're
comin' after you, I think. Mikla, Flann, get that ship out to sea. I'll take
these friends to the caves. Hurry!"
The two
shrews Mikla and Flann waded out to the Waveblade to take her out of the
searats' reach with the other three ships.
Mariel,
Tarquin and Rawnblade followed Durry and Dandin as they raced off in the
opposite direction to Bladegirt, toward the sheer rocky coast which veered up
on the west side of the cove.
00
The
searat frontrunners, with Riptung and Hookfin in the lead, came rushing down
the path to the shore of the cove.
Riptung
threw his sword down in frustration. "Hell's tail! They're too far out,
we'll never get to 'em now!"
Hookfin
raced about on the shoreline, searching for a dinghy to pursue his ship in.
"Thunder 'n' blood! Ain't there nothin' we can give chase in?"
An
enterprising rat called Felltooth stripped off his more cumbersome weapons,
thrust a dagger in his headband and entered the water.
"Waveblade's
not too far out, Cap'n Riptung. May'aps we can swim to 'er an' use 'er to bring
back the other three ships!"
Riptung
retrieved his sword. "That's the way, matey. Some of yer go with 'im. Any
good swimmers?"
Seven
searats gripping daggers in their teeth waded into the sea.
Hookfin
pointed in the direction of the crude trail which led up into the high rocks.
"Look, it's the badger!"
Dandin
glanced down to the yelling hordes racing across the shore to the rocks.
"We've been spotted, here they come!"
Lord
Rawnblade set his back against a rock, raising
331
the
sword Verminfate in both paws. "Get running, I'll stop them!"
Dandin
stood in front of the upraised sword. Rawn-blade was beginning to breathe
heavily, his eyes glazing over as he watched the searats below. The young mouse
took the badger's paw.
"There's
no need for you to stay. Come with us. They'll never find us —you'll see!"
The
badger Lord took considerable moving, all four tugging and pushing him farther
up the trail and behind an overhanging outcrop of rocks, where they were out of
sight of the rats. Durry went across to a big craggy boulder. He pushed it,
moving it easily to one side. Tarquin gasped in astonishment at the tunnel that
yawned before them.
"Golly!
That's jolly clever, Durry—a secret tunnel. How did y'manage to move that
whackin' great boulder with one single shove?"
Durry
swelled his chest out. "I ate a good breakf'st."
Dandin
laughed. "Take no notice of that little fibber. Come inside and I'll show
you how easy it is."
They
filed into the tunnel, Rawnblade stooping to get his great size through the
opening. Dandin was last in. Quickly he set flint and tinder to a dry brush
torch and passed it to Mariel. "Hold this and watch."
Leaning
out of the cave entrance, Dandin gave the boulder a light push and sprang back.
The massive rock tottered slightly and rolled back into its former position,
blocking the tunnel entrance. He took a wedge of ship's timber and slammed it
tight against the bottom of the boulder. "There, that'll stop anybeast
moving it. The whole thing works on a fine balance, you see. Now stay quiet and
listen!"
oo
Hookfin
and a bunch of searats rounded the rocky outcrop. Before them the winding trail
ran upward into the high hills, completely devoid of signs of life. The searat
Captain looked hither and thither without suc-
332
cess.
"This is the way they came. I'd stake me oath on it. Where've the scurvy
blaggards got to?"
"They've
vanished, Cap'n!"
"Stow
yer gab, biscuitbrain. Nobeast just vanishes. They're round 'ere somewheres—I
know it."
"Well,
my old dad used ter say that badgers were magic beasts. Maybe they 'ave
vanished, Cap'n!"
Hookfin
aimed a kick at the speaker. "Huh, your ole dad must've lived up a tree
with a branch growin' through both ears. Don't talk such bilgerot. No, they're
round 'ere, I can feel it."
"May'aps
they're be'ind that big boulder, Cap'n."
This
remark did not improve Hookfin's temper.
"Aye,
an' mayhaps I'll beat your brains out agin that great boulder if yer make another
stupid suggestion. Spread out an' look around."
As they
searched, one searat close to the boulder nudged his mate. "Can you smell
burnin', matey?"
"No,
but it'll probably be Cap'n 'ookfin's old brainbox tryin' ter figger out where
the badger went. Heeheeheehee!"
"You
two over there, stop sniggerin' an' start searching or I'll lay me sword blade
across yer backs!"
00
Rocking
back and forth with silent mirth, the creatures in the cave listened to the
searats outside. Even Rawnblade had to stifle a few chuckles. Finally Dandin
took the torch and went off down the winding rocky tunnel.
"Come
on, we can't stop here all day listening to those buffoons."
The
tunnel sloped gently downward. Mariel stared at the rough rock walls in the
flickering torchlight as she followed Durry Quill. "Where are we going,
Durry?"
"Down
to the main cave, missy. That's where us Trag warriors meet."
"Trag,
what's that supposed to mean?"
Durry
Quill flourished a fearsome dagger, muttering darkly, "Terramort
Resistance Against Gabool. Trag
333
see, first letter o' each word. You'll like
our Chief though, he knows you very well."
Mariel
was mystified. "Knows me? How?" Durry smiled in the shadows as he
answered, '"Cos he's your daddy, Joseph the Bellmaker!"
Dandin
felt the torch snatched from his grasp as Mariel dashed past. She disappeared
down the winding tunnel, leaving them groping in the darkness as the
mousemaid's voice echoed about them at a screaming
pitch.
"Father!
Fatheeeeerrr!"
cxo
It was
an immense cavern, high above the tidemark on the sheer rock coast, facing the
open sea and well lit by the summer sun. Free creatures, former oarslaves and
Fort Bladegirt drudges, sat about on rocky ledges, cleaning and preparing weapons,
cooking over fires and readying meals. All activity ground to an immediate halt
as the mousemaid came hurtling down the tunnel into the cavern.
Heedlessly
dropping the flaring torch, she threw herself into the paws of Joseph, hugging
him fiercely as her tears flooded into the silver-gray fur of his broad
shoulder.
"Father!
Oh, Father! I always knew I'd find you again
someday!"
Joseph
the Bellmaker held his only child, the pain and anguish of many long days and
nights turning to unbounded joy as a happy smile lit his strong face, banishing
the glistening dew which threatened to spill from his proud eyes. "Mariel
. . . Mariel my little maid, how you've grown! I never knew all this time
whether you were alive, but in my heart I refused to believe that you were dead
and I always knew you'd return somehow, my little Mariel!"
The
others stumbled out of the tunnel, Durry Quill dabbing tenderly at his swelling
snout, which he had banged against the rock walls in the darkness.
334
"Well,
wait'll I tell my ol' nuncle, dashin' off an' leavin' a young 'og in the dark
like that. Ain't you got no feelin's, missy?"
oo
That
night the fires blazed merrily in the cavern of the Trag warriors, huge
platters of shrimp and shellfish were served, with wild oat and barley bread,
hot from the rocks it had been baked on, casks of preserved fruits taken from
searat ships were opened and a fine barrel of daisy and dandelion beer tapped.
The friends sat around as Joseph related his story.
"Gabool
pushed me from a high window of his banqueting room. Luckily for me I did not
strike the rock-face on the way down. I hit the water hard and was knocked
senseless; I was weak and ill from being starved and imprisoned, otherwise I
might have stayed conscious. The sea must have washed me around the headland,
and I came to jammed against a reef on a small inlet somewhere up the coast of
Terramort. That's where I was found by that fellow." Joseph pointed to a
vole who was seated on a rock ledge sharpening a sword. The vole stood up and
bowed to them, introducing himself by name, "Tan Loc." He sat down
and resumed sharpening the sword.
"Tan
Loc is a fellow of few words," Joseph continued. "He broods a lot.
His whole family were slain by searats when he was taken captive. He lives for
only one thing: to meet the murderer, Hookfin, Master of the Blacksail. But
back to my story. Tan Loc and I helped each other stay alive. We could not
afford to be seen— it would have meant certain death —so we stayed on this side
of the island, surviving as best we could. One day we discovered this place and
its tunnels—I will show them to you in due course. The tunnels were a new lease
of life to us. They led to places all over the island, so we could travel
anywhere and remain unseen. Some nights we would steal supplies from the ships,
weapons too, and other items which would be
335
of use
to us. We soon came across others, house slaves from Fort Bladegirt who had
managed to escape, sometimes oarslaves, thrown on the beach because they were
too sick and weak to pull an oar anymore. In time our numbers began to swell.
That was when we decided to form Trag, Terramort Resistance Against Gabool.
Soon now we will be strong enough to attack Bladegirt in force, though our
numbers would never equal the searat horde up there at the moment. Still, we
will fight them and try to rid the earth of Gabool the Wild. We may not have
the numbers, but we have the courage and determination."
Lord
Rawnblade stood up, both paws resting on the crosshilt of his destroyer
Verminfate. "I am sworn to kill Gabool. He is mine!"
Joseph
touched the long knife at the back of his belt. "Then you will have to be
quick, Lord Widestripe. I made an oath to slay Gabool when the house slaves
told me he had drowned my Mariel with a rock and a rope tied about her neck.
That oath still holds!"
Mariel
leaped up, the Gullwhacker swinging wide. "First there, first served!
Gabool's life is mine to take. I am Mariel Gullwhacker, I claim the
right!"
Tarquin
leaned over to Dandin. "What about you,
old
feller?"
Dandin
drew the sword slowly. "This is the blade of Martin the Warrior. No
creature that is evil can stand against it, least of all Gabool!"
Tarquin
and Durry held a hasty whispered conference, then they both jumped up, issuing
their separate
challenges.
"This
'ere is my scraggin' dagger, an' I'm goin' to scrag that scurvy Gabool good 'n'
proper. I'm on'y a young lad, but I swear it by my ol" nuncle Gabe's best
October ale!"
"Well,
you'll have t' scrag away pretty fast, old chap, 'cos if Joseph has got the
blighter with his long knife, Milord Rawnblade has paid the rotter a visit with
that
336
great
log cleaver and our Mariel has been to see the scoundrel with her Gullwhacker,
then along comes the bold Durry Quill with his scraggin' dagger, well, tell me
this: what chance is an honest chap like meself goin' to get to brain the
beggar with my jolly old harolina, wot? Listen, you lot, stop bein' so
confounded greedy and let me be first to knock out a tune on the villain's
noodle."
The
sight of Tarquin striking a noble pose, harolina at the ready, caused the
entire group to dissolve into helpless laughter.
oo
Gabool
was in no mood for laughter. The maddened Searat King dashed furiously around
his barred and bolted room, slashing at phantom badgers as they stole out of
the shadows to confront his bloodshot eyes, shrieking and thrusting wildly at
the specters created by his tormented brain.
"Haharr,
I'll finish ye all. I'm Gabool the King of all Seas!"
Bongl
Bongl Bongl Bong\ Bongl
He rent
curtains and wallhangings; sparks showered from his sword as it clashed on the
stone walls.
"Cursed
noise, I'll send yer to Hellgates an' beyond!"
oo
Down
below in the banqueting hall, Riptung, Hookfin and Grimtooth laughed drunkenly
as they flung hard apples across the tables at the great tarnished bell in the
center of the floor.
"Haharr!
Listen, Yer Majesty, it's yer old matey the bell a-speakin' to yer. It wants t'
know where you've hid the booty. Haharrharrharr!"
The
crews joined in the laughter as they pelted the bell with apples.
Boom!
Bongl Booml Bongl Booml Bongggggl
337
A pale
dawn sun high above Mossflower Woods watched impassively as the otter and
badger searched for the searat camp, longbows at the ready.
Flagg
strained his ears for sounds of movement. "It's no good, marm. We
should've asked the squirrels which way t' go."
Mother
Mellus sat down upon a fallen limb and rubbed her eyes. "Perhaps you're
right, Flagg. My old senses aren't what they used to be. If we don't find it
soon we'll have to change direction."
The
otter joined her on the limb. "Tell you what, marm. We'll take a liddle
rest and then try a different path anyway. By the fur, I'm tired. Missin' a
full night's sleep never did me much good, even when I was a cub. Aaaahhhh! Sit
down on the grass 'ere an' put yer back against this limb awhile. There now,
ain't that a little better?"
Mellus
relaxed, settling her head back against the moss-covered limb. A big bumblebee
droned lazily past on its quest for nectar, in the distance a songthrush
warbled blithely its hymn to the coming summer day, somewhere close by a
grasshopper that had strayed from the flatlands chirruped idly. The warmth of
the rising sun beat steadily down upon the two weary
338
friends.
As sleep stole up and took their tired senses unawares, the longbows slipped
from their paws, and their eyes drooped shut.
oo
A small
spider was starting to weave her web from the tip of a longbow to Flagg's nose.
He twitched his snout, flicking at it drowsily with his paw as the voices
intruded upon his dream.
"Somewheres
around this way she was. I swear I saw 'er, matey!"
"Well,
stow yer gab an' keep that spear ready. Y' can't take no chances with this
scurvy rabbit. I could swear we've killed 'er three times a'ready. Tread easy
now—is that 'er?"
"Where?"
"Layin'
among those fern things, goggle eyes. Look, can't y'see?"
Flagg
came awake, collecting his senses as he listened to the searats.
"Take
no chances this time, mate. Sneak up, an' both of us in fast with the spears,
hard as y'can, ten times apiece. See she doesn't jump away agin."
"Aye,
did ye ever see anythin' like that leap she made out of the camp? Right over Graypatch's
'ead, an' 'er all cut t' pieces too!"
The
urgency of the situation hit Flagg like a thunderbolt. Sitting up silently, he
placed a paw across Mellus's mouth and shook her awake. The badger saw
something in Flagg's eyes that made her go completely still. He gestured
forward with his paw, whispering one word. "Searats!"
Stealthily
the two friends stood up, fitting arrows to their longbows.
The two
searats were standing some distance away, their backs to the hunters as they
sneaked in upon a bed of fern, spears raised, ready for the kill. Flagg and
Mellus drew back the shafts upon their bowstrings to
339
full
stretch. The otter nodded to Mellus, and she called out in a loud gruff voice,
"Ahoy there!"
The two
searats turned in the direction of her voice as the arrows left the longbows
with a vicious twin hiss. Both rats fell instantaneously, the sharp oak shafts
standing out of their necks a half-length.
Regardless
of nettle and bush, the otter and the badger crashed through the woodland into
the bed of ferns. They stood aghast at the wounded, scarred, bloodstained form
of Hon Rosie lying on the ground. She pulled herself up onto one paw, smiling
crookedly through her ripped and battered face.
"H-hello,
you ch-chaps. 'Fraid they've k-killed me . . . Wot . . . !" Collapsing
back, the brave hare lay stretched among the ferns.
Mellus
was down beside her, ripping up her garments, bandaging, wiping blood from
Rosie's face and massaging her paws as she instructed Flagg. "Have you got
a knife?"
"Yes,
marm—one of Friar Alder's best. Is she dead?" "No, not quite. There's
a chance. Cut some poles-no, wait, use the longbows. Chop some vines, anything.
We'll use our belts . . . Got to make a stretcher. Here!" She ripped off
her belt and threw it to Flagg. The helpful otter took off his own.
"Gotcha, marm. Leave it t' me!" He set about his task swiftly,
glancing urgently back to where Mellus was busy with Rosie among the ferns.
"You can't die, d'you hear me, Rosie? Wake up! If you die, I'll kill you!
Oh, I'm sorry dear. Live! Live for Clary and Thyme. Live!"
oo
Rufe
Brush and Oak Tom headed the party that had set out from Redwall at dawn. They
were all heavily armed and determined to help Mellus and Flagg against the
searats. Cutting off the path, they entered the woodlands. Tom and Treerose
swung off into the foli-
340
age to
scout ahead. Gabe Quill brandished a big bung mallet angrily.
"I'll
searat 'em, the filthy vermints!"
Rufe
turned to him. "Keep your voice down, Gabe . . . Owch! Watch where you're
pokin' that lance, Burgo. Pooh! Are you chewin' wild garlic again?"
"Burr,
aye, zurr. Found some o' the pesky stuff o'er yonder. Oi carnt aboid the smell
tho' I dearly do luv ets taste. 'Pologies 'bout 'ee larnce, zurr."
"Chuck
ee larnce aways," Foremole whispered in Burgo's ear. "You'm cudd slay
emenies with thoi breath!"
"Over
here, straight ahead," Oak Tom called out from a high hornbeam. "It's
Mellus an' Flagg bearin' a stretcher."
The
Redwallers flocked around Rosie, gabbling questions at her rescuers.
"Is
she dead?"
"Coo
deary, she'm bad cuttup!"
"Where
did you find her, Flagg?"
"Any
sign o' Clary or Thyme?"
"D'you
think she'll live?"
Mellus
silenced them with a growl. "Stop all this silly chattering. We must get
this hare to Redwall as speedily as possible. You squirrels, will you get back
to the Abbey as quickly as you can. Tell Sister Serena, Simeon, the Abbot and
Sister Sage to have all their medicines ready and a room in sickbay cleared out.
Right, off you go!"
The
three squirrels went off through the top terraces of the woodlands like greased
lightning. Ready pawys gripped the stretcher, steadying Rosie as the group
broke into a fast trot.
oo
Graypatch
limped badly from an arrow that had pierced his leg. He gazed around at the
smashed cage, the smoldering embers of last night's fires and the carcasses of
dead searats that littered the ground like fallen
leaves.
They were piled in a heap in the middle of the camp. He prodded the lifeless
forms with his sword. Somewhere beneath that heap lay two hares and a squirrel.
The searat Captain shook his head and slumped down upon a rock.
"Three
hares and a squirrel did all this?" he murmured disbelievingly.
Deadglim
shambled over. He leaned on a broken spear, nursing the place where his left
ear had been. "Eighteen left alive, Cap'n. Well, it would be a score, but
two went after the hare that got away."
Graypatch
massaged his leg, wincing. "Eighteen, is that all!"
"Aye,
Cap'n. What's yer orders?"
Graypatch
stared into the surrounding forest. He had come to hate Mossflower country; the
whole thing had been a catalogue of disaster since they arrived. He had stolen
the Darkqueen and set sail from Terramort with a crew of a hundred able-bodied
searats, and now he was sitting in this landlocked hell of greenery with only
eighteen left.
"Tell
the crew to pack up, lock, stock 'n' barrel. We're pullin' out o' this stinkin'
place. I'm goin' to find the Darkqueen, get 'er seaworthy an' sail out to the
open sea, where we can breathe again!"
A slow
smile formed upon Deadglim's coarse face. "Aye-aye, Cap'n Graypatch. I'll
do that with pleasure,
sir!
Treerose
paced the corridor outside the sickbay.
Abbot
Bernard came out with a basin and a stained towel. "Ah, Treerose. See if
you can get some clean warm water and a fresh towel for me, pretty one."
Treerose's
voice betrayed great anxiety. "How is Rosie, Father?"
The
Abbot wiped his paws on his wide sleeves, a smile creasing his kindly face.
"D'you know, I didn't believe it at first, but she's going to be all
right. Thanks
342
to your
warning, the creatures who got her here so fast, and the marvelous skills of
Simeon and Sister Sage. Yes, Treerose, she's going to be around for quite a
number of seasons yet to come. So you stop that crying now and get me fresh
water and a clean towel."
Mother
Mellus came out to stand in the corridor with the Abbot. "What was all
that about, Father?"
"Oh,
nothing really. It just surprises me how overnight that young squirrel has
changed from a spoilt brat into a really nice helpful creature."
Mellus
patted the Abbot's frail back. "Hmm, then we must be doing something
right, the way we bring our young ones up at Redwall, eh!"
The
Abbot bowed gallantly. "The way you bring them up, Mellus."
Saxtus
lay on his back in the strawberry patch with the Dibbuns. Bagg and Runn
chattered incessantly as they decimated the latest crop of ripe fruit.
"Have
all the searats gone now, Sax'us?"
"Suppose
so. We haven't seen them for a while."
"An'
they're not comin' back to 'ttack the Abbey again?"
"I
hope not. Why d'you ask?"
"Oh
nuts! I wanted 'em t' come back so I could fight 'em!"
"No
you don't, little one. We've had enough fighting and killing. Isn't it much
nicer lying here filling your tummy with strawberries in the sun?"
"Mm,
s'pose so, but I can't get at the biggest 'n' juiciest 'n' squashiest
ones."
"Why
not?"
"'Cos
you're lyin' on 'em. Hohohoho!"
Saxtus
got up slowly, feeling the cold juice running down his back. "Well, thank
you for telling me so soon!"
Grubb
plonked himself down and began stuffing
343
strawberries
three at a time. "Oi sees 'ee winds blowed all 'ee strawbly trees away
agin."
Sister
Sage was creeping from the sickbay with Simeon on tip-paw. They had done all
they could with the hare's dreadful injuries; now they decided it was best that
she sleep and recuperate. The hinge squeaked as Sister Sage opened the door.
Rosie
opened one eye and peeked through the bandaged slit. "Never died after
all, wot . . . good . . . show!"
Simeon
leaned on Sister Sage's arm. "Incredible! Totally unbelievable. I've heard
of cats having nine lives, but that Rosie, she's the limit!"
Sister
Sage shut the door as quietly as possible. "Or the absolute bally limit,
as Colonel Clary would have said."
344
37
"Do
you know where we are now?"
Mariel
and Rawnblade shook their heads. They were completely lost on their guided tour
of the tunnels of Terramort.
Joseph
pointed ahead. "Go up there —careful now because it's the end of this
particular tunnel—and you'll see a couple of gorsebushes. Just part them and
tell me what you see."
As they
carried out his instructions, Mariel drew in a sharp breath. "It's Fort
Bladegirt, right across on the next hill!"
Joseph
nodded. "I can take you to another branch of this same tunnel that brings
you out on the other side of the fort, or yet another which will bring you out
at the back of Bladegirt. Well, does it give you any ideas?"
"A
three-pronged invasion?"
"You
took the words out of my mouth, Lord Rawnblade. Anything else you'd like to
see?"
"Yes,
Father. I'd like to see these other two exits. I'm beginning to get a few ideas
myself."
"Hmm,
I thought you would. Come on then, follow me."
Down
below in the main cave, Dandin, Durry and Tar-345
quin
were making friends with the freed slaves of the Trag society. A young shrew
and some of his companions sat questioning them. "Where do you come
from?" "Redwall Abbey in Mossflower country." The youngster
gazed at them with shining eyes. "Redwall Abbey, Mossflower country. Does
it look as nice as it sounds?"
Tarquin
strummed his harolina. "You can bet your fluffy bedsocks it does, young thingummy.
Here, Dandin, give me a trill on your whistle while I tune me jolly instrument
up an' I'll tell 'em all about it."
Dandin
tootled away on his ancestor's flute until between them he and the hare had a
rollicking air going. The Trag members tapped their paws on the rocks to the
infectious music as Tarquin sang.
"On
the old brown path from north to south
Is a
place you'd love to stay in.
Come
one, come all, to old Redwall,
And
hear what I am sayin'.
There's
an orchard there that's fat and fair
With
apple, berry, plum and pear.
There's
a pond with fish and all you'd wish
To
grace a supper table dish.
They've
a nice soft bed to rest your head,
Or
sleep beneath the trees instead.
If you
meet the Abbot then be sure to shake him by
the
paw.
On the
old brown path from north to south It's peaceable an' free where Our Abbey
stands amid woodlands, I'm sure you'd love to be there!"
There
was loud cheering, and Tarquin was requested to sing the ditty twice more.
Durry leaped up and danced with a vole and a dormouse. Afterward they sat about
talking. Redwall was the chief topic of discussion
346
among
the freed slaves, most of whom had never known or could not remember a place
they called home.
"Do
you have lots of nice things to eat at Redwall?"
"My
spikes y'do! Summercream woodland puddens, deeper 'n' ever pies, strawb'rry
flans, blueberry scones, raspb'rry muffins, cheeses you couldn't count, an'
cordials, teas, wines an' October ale that me 'n' my ol' nuncle Gabe makes in
our cellars!"
"And
every creature is free there, Mr. Woodsorrel?"
"Free
as the air, young feller, peaceful as the flowers that grow an' happy t' wake
up among friends each dawn, wot!"
"Will
you take us there, Dandin? Oh, please say you will!"
Dandin
held up his paws. "Of course. You have my promise on it, though Mother
Mellus'll probably grab you all and bathe the lot of you on sight!"
A small
hedgehog sat enraptured with every word he had heard. "Mother! You mean
they have a mother there? I can't remember having a mother. D'you think she'll
be my mother too?"
"What's
your name, young 'un?"
"Barty.
That's my sister Dorcas. She's younger than me, I think."
Durry
patted their soft unformed spikes. "You can live with me an' Nuncle Gabe.
I'll teach 'ee t' be cellar 'ogs."
00
When
Joseph returned with Mariel and Rawnblade a full meeting was called. Freed
slaves crowded into the big cavern.
Rawnblade
expressed surprise at the numbers. "Quite a sizable army, Joseph. I didn't
think there was so many."
The
bellmaker indicated a crowd packing the ledges at the rear. "Our Trag
warriors who stole three of the searat ships have brought us many oarslaves who
wish to join us. All of these have been landed from the three
347
ships
we captured. There must be close on a hundred new arrivals, though we are still
far below in numbers compared to the searats."
Mariel
stood alongside her father. "Not to worry, we've got their ships. It's the
rats who are trapped on this island and not us. Besides, we'll have the
advantage of cover and surprise. Lord Rawnblade, would you like to outline our
plan?"
The
badger took a charred stick from the fire and drew upon the rockface.
"This is Fort Bladegirt. We will attack tonight when they are sleeping.
These three tunnels come out into the hills both sides and behind the fort.
Mariel, you and your friends will lead one-third of our force to attack from
the left. Joseph my friend, you will lead the other third from the right, that
way they will be under pressure from both sides. My Mariel will tell you what
to do."
Mariel
took over, flattered that such a warrior as the Lord of Salamandastron was
consulting her judgment, recognizing in the mousemaid a fellow warrior spirit.
"Use
bows and slings. Don't attempt to climb the walls into the courtyard. Stay well
hidden and use the ground above the tunnel entrances—that way we can send
arrows and stones down at them—but remain silent, don't give the searats any
noisy or standing targets to fire back at, and keep slinging rocks and firing
arrows as hard as you can. Tarquin, once the rats are occupied in fighting us
on both sides you will attack the front gates of the courtyard. Take the rest
of the force with you, and make as much noise as possible. You will have a
battering ram to smash away at the gates with. We will besiege them from three
sides. Tarquin, your squad will be armed with spears, bows and long pikes. Got
that?"
"Understood,
old scout. What happens then?"
"I
come from the back!" Lord Rawnblade explained. "I will pick my
moment—it will be when most of the searats are defending the front gate from
your battering
348
ram.
Outside the tunnel at the rear of the fort is a big boulder on the hillside. I
will send it down the hill to smash through the rear courtyard wall. Joseph,
the moment you see the boulder start to roll, bring your force down from the
right to back me up. Mariel, you bring your creatures down from the left to
join Wood-sorrel. I'm banking on the rats doing an about-turn and coming to
face me. If the ram hasn't battered the gates down, you must prop it against
them and use it as a ladder. Well, that is the plan: first they'll be attacked
from the left and right, then from the front and back. Once we are inside the
courtyard we can force our way into the fort itself, then it's good luck to
whoever finds Gabool."
By
unanimous decision the plan was voted a good one.
Joseph
stood to have a final word with the occupants of the cavern. Gray-furred as he
was, the bellmaker stood tall in their eyes, the suffering and indignities he
had put up with etching his strong face, righteous vengeance ringing out from
his voice like the sound of his own great bell.
"Hear
me. This is the time I have waited for; we will rid the earth of searats for
all seasons to come. No more are you slaves, you are the fighters of Trag. If
victory is ours tomorrow, we have ships to sail away from this accursed island.
Let us leave this place deserted, as a monument to the death and misery it has
caused to creatures everywhere!"
When
the wild cheering had died down, the two small hedgehogs Barty and Dorcas
called out. "We're going to Redwall Abbey to live!"
Rawnblade
picked them both up, one in each huge paw. "If I know the good creatures
of that place . . . you're all going there!"
The
cavern echoed and re-echoed to the wild applause of Trag warriors, none of them
knowing what
349
the
morrow would bring, but each one fervently wishing his or her desire to go and
live in the fabled Redwall.
350
Graypatch
and his band were lost.
They
stumbled about in the vastnesses of Mossflower Woods, not knowing which
direction to take next. Each place they arrived at looked the same as the spot
they had started from.
Oak Tom
sat high in a chestnut tree, watching them. He tested the point of his lance
and shook his head. "Wouldn't leave 'em in charge of a Dibbuns' spring
outin', any of 'em!"
Deadglim
slumped wearily on the ground. "Belay, Cap'n, you sure you know the right
course fer Darkqueen?"
Graypatch
turned on him and vented his temper. "I did when we started out, but you
wetnosed idiots a-wanderin' here an' yon scroungin' fer vittles have set me off
course. I'm as lost as the rest o' yer, an' it's your fault, not mine!"
Dripnose
threw himself down beside Lardgutt. "Yah, what's the use? I'm stayin' 'ere
until somebeast finds the right way!"
Graypatch
sat down with him, his voice dripping sarcasm. "Oh, you are, are yer? So
be it. I am too, matey. This way nobeast'll find the Darkqueen an' we'll all
sit right 'ere an' rot!"
351
Fishgill
came up with a suggestion. "Cap'n, why don't we split into three groups?
We could each set course a different way, mark the trees as we go an' all make
our way back 'ere when somerat finds Darkqueen."
Graypatch
thought about this for a moment, then stood up. "Fishgill, matey, that's
the first decent idea to come out o' this load of lunkheads. Right, you take
five an' go thataways. Dripnose, up on yer claws, take five an' head the other
way, over there. I'll take the other five an' go straight ahead. Don't ferget
an' use your blades to mark the trees, otherwise you'll be lost forever in this
hellridden forest. Right, let's get goin'."
Oak Tom
watched them go before leaping down to scar false routes widespread on the
treebark with his lancepoint. The squirrel carefully noted the direction taken
by Graypatch and his party, then set out after the five led by Deadglim.
Pushing through the brambles and tripping over tree roots, Deadglim and his
rats unwittingly made their course south, back the way they had come,
completely lost and in their confusion taking a bumbling path toward Redwall
Abbey.
"Turn
round and follow Fishgill!"
Lardgutt
pointed into the leafy canopy. "It's a voice from up there."
Deadglim
clawed nervously at his sword. "What d'yer want from us?"
"I'm
from the Abbey," the mystery voice called back to him. "We don't want
you attacking us again. You're headed for Redwall if you keep on in this
direction. Turn round and follow Fishgill. He's traveling in the direction of
your ship Darkqueenl"
Lardgutt
carried on south, calling up in a sneering voice, "Aaahh, you could be
trickin' us. I think this way's the right way!"
The
javelin hissed down from the branches, slaying him on the spot.
352
This
time the voice was loud and menacing. "Take my word for it, fools die!
There are many of us up here. Turn round and follow Fishgill, if you value my
advice!"
Deadglim
did a swift about-turn. "We're going, look, we're going! Leave us alone
and we won't be back!"
A
mocking laugh rang out through the trees. "Go then. Quickly!"
Oak Tom
plucked the javelin from Lardgutt's carcass as the pounding paws of Deadglim's
party receded into the distance. Before nightfall they would join Fishgill's
party, in the Flitchaye territory. Oak Tom took one look back to the south,
where his friends Rufe Brush and Treerose would be giving Clary and Thyme a
decent burial at the deserted searat camp. Setting his jaw grimly, he took off
through the woodlands on the trail of Graypatch and the remaining five.
oo
The
searat Captain did not know whether to be delighted or disappointed. He stepped
out of the foliage and onto the path, leading north with his companions, having
traveled in a huge semicircle.
"Well,
at least we're clear of all that tangle fer a while, mateys. Maybe now we can
get some proper bearin's."
A rat
named Stumpclaw strained his eyes northward up the path. "Ahoy, Cap'n.
There's a ford up ahead. I can see the sunlight on its waters!"
Relief
flooded through Graypatch's body. He sat down by the side of the path, a tear
forming in his single eye.
"If
it's water it'll run to the sea, mateys, an' it'll take us to Darkqueen if it's
the right stream. Stumpclaw, take these buckos an' scout the lay o' the water,
will yer, matey. Ole Graypatch is weary, I'll be restin' me bones 'ere awhile
till you get back."
On a
spruce bough not too far distant, Oak Tom sat watching.
Graypatch
let the summer sun play on his face as
353
he lay
back and relaxed. The stream must lead up to Darkqueen, and then down to the
sea. Maybe a few more dawns would see him in command of his own ship once more,
running south before the breeze, away from Mossflower and the seas where
Gabool's vessels hunted.
Sleep
was just about to embrace Graypatch when loud screams rent the still air.
Silently Oak Tom trailed him as he made his way cautiously to the ford. Using
the trees to the side of the path as cover, Graypatch sneaked up to within a
short distance of the water.
Iraktaan
stood over the carcass of Stumpclaw, his vicious beak dripping red.
"Iraktaan kill. Kraaaaak!"
Behind
him in the swift-running weed-streaked waters of the ford, the bodies of the
three who had made it to the water bounced and bobbed in a grotesque parody of
life, though it was only the ripping jaws of the pike shoal which moved them.
Graypatch
cut east into the woodlands, avoiding the killer heron and following the course
of the stream, voicing his thoughts aloud as he went.
"I'll
find the Darkqueen, sure as eggs is eggs. Foller the stream—that's all ye do,
matey, foller the stream. Haharr, I'll sit aboard me ol' ship an' wait fer the
others. No chance Graypatch is goin' t' get lost amid all that forest agin. No
sir!"
As the
sun grew hotter Graypatch knelt to drink from the stream. He sucked long and
noisily, feeling the cool flow of fresh water crossing his chin. Suddenly
lifting his face clear of the stream, the searat Captain felt his neck hairs
rising. Without turning he knew there was somebeast behind him. A vague blur
showed on the surface of the swift-running water, masking the stranger's
identity.
Instinctively
the searat's claw reached for his sword. "Who are yer?"
The
stranger's voice was as cold as north wind on
354
wet
stones. "My name would mean nothing to you, rat!"
Graypatch
played for time, slowly inching the sword from his belt. "What d'ye want
with me, then? I mean yer no harm."
A blow
from a lance butt sent him sprawling into the stream. He stood up in the
shallows, spluttering. His face was a mask of vengeance. Oak Tom stood on the
bank, lance held loose but ready.
"The
time for your reckoning is due, searat. Now you must pay for the lives of two
hares. Tell me, how does it feel, standing there without your crew to protect
you?"
Graypatch
swallowed hard, his own voice sounding squeaky in his ears. "Leave me
alone, I only want ter get out o' here. Let me go and I won't bother ye
anymore. I just want t' get to the sea!"
Oak Tom
raised the lance. "Then you shall go to the sea!"
Graypatch
had his sword free now, but the squirrel's face was so full of vengeance and
rage that the searat's natural boldness and cunning deserted him completely.
The sword fell from his nerveless claws into the water as he turned and ran
with the flowing stream.
oo
It was
fully three days later that Graypatch made it to the sea, floating faceup with
Oak Tom's lance standing out from his corpse like a mast with no sail. The two
gallant hares of the long patrol had been avenged and Redwall Abbey was freed
of further trouble. All with one swiftly thrown lance.
oo
Two
hours after dawn next day, set up by a full Redwall breakfast, the creatures of
the Abbey began to set their home right again. Fire damage was repaired, crops
and orchard tended back to their former fruitfulness, the pond was weeded and
cleared of charred fire-swingers,
355
and the
main gate had a team attending to it, armed with carpenter's tools and headed
by Saxtus.
"Brother
Hubert, Cockleburr, lend a paw with this new timber, please. Baby Grubb, I
won't tell you again; put that hammer down."
"Burr,
oi wants t' nokken 'ee nailers in, Sax'us."
"Well
you can't, you're too small. Ah, Foremole, will you and your crew start sawing
here—this part where the bottom of the gate is heavily charred. That's it,
about there!"
"Yurr,
Burgo, Drubber, do 'ee 'old gate still whoile oi saws."
Saxtus
picked up some large clout nails. "Baby Grubb, drop that hammer. This
instant!"
"Gurr,
go boil yurr 'ead, bossy ol' Sax'us!"
"Owowowooch!
Come here, you little ruffian!"
Grubb
hid behind Sister Sage, who was pushing Hon Rosie's wheelchair. Saxtus hopped
about, clenching his paw.
Sister
Sage remonstrated with Grubb. "That was a very naughty thing to do,
Dibbun."
"Arr,
but maister Sax'us tol' oi t' drop 'ee 'ammer."
"Maybe
he did. Still, it was no excuse for dropping it on his footpaw."
"Hurr,
may'aps it weren't, tho' 'ee do darnce noicely, doant 'ee?"
Hon
Rosie held her ribs and winced as she chuckled. "Whoohahahooh! You're an
absolute savage, young Grubb!"
Grubb
climbed onto the chair and sat upon Rosie's lap. "Yurr, Sax'us daresn't
get oi naow, miz Rose."
oo
Simeon
felt the smooth grain of the newly planked oak. He pressed his nose against it
and breathed in deeply. "That will make a stout door. Pity it loses its
fragrance with the seasons and the weather, Bernard."
The
Abbot led him away to the shade of the threshold
356
wallsteps.
"I feel that everything is going to be all right now, Simeon."
"Good,
your senses are improving, my friend. I too can sense something."
"Oh,
something I've missed? It's not that mole Burgo and his wild garlic again, is
it?"
"Haha,
no. I sense that we should do something about continuing construction on our
bell tower. I've been meaning to tell you, I had a wonderful dream last
night."
"Sshh!"
the Abbot interrupted. "Don't mention Dandin or the others. Here comes
Mellus. She looks in a happy mood this morning—let's try and keep her that way.
Good morning, Mellus. Another beautiful day."
The
badger nodded. "It was, until I spotted those two wretches over there.
Bagg and Runn—look at them, covered from nose to tail with green gatehouse
paint. I'll scrub the hides off the pair o' them!"
She
took off at a trot, chasing the two green perils of Red wall.
"Sometimes
I think she's only happy when she's got dirty Dibbuns to hurl into
bathtubs!" Simeon whispered in the Abbot's ear.
357
39
Late
the previous night six searats had been posted on guard duty by Captain
Riptung—Felltooth and the rats who had swum out in vain pursuit of the
Waveblade. Felltooth was not the most popular searat at Bladegirt, a fact that
his mates kept reminding him of.
"Please
sir, Cap'n sir, can I swim out an' bring that naughty ship back? Yer great
turnipbrain, there was no chance o' catchin' Waveblade an' you knowed it."
Felltooth
defended his unsuccessful action indignantly. "Ah, sharrap! I was tryin'
t' get that craft back fer the likes of you 'n' me, matey. Don't yer realize,
we're marooned on Terramort now!"
"Aye,
well nex' time let some other dopes do the swimmin' an' you keep yer trap shut,
cabingob. Ideas an' decisions is fer Cap'ns—that's why they're Cap'ns,
see!"
The
crack of the rock was audible in the darkness as it struck the speaker. He
dropped without a sound. Felltooth leaned over him.
'"Ere,
are you all right matey? Yaaaagh!"
An
arrow had gone right through Felltooth's ear. He straightened up and ran for
the fort, screaming aloud, "Attack! Attaaaaaack!"
Still
half-asleep, the searat horde were rousted out
358
by
Hookfin, Riptung and Grimtooth. They hurried into
the courtyard surrounding
Bladegirt, snatching
weapons
as they went.
"Stir
yer stumps, y'dozy layabouts. We're
under
attack!"
"Come
on, out there, every ratjack of ye. Move!" "Pick up
those weapons. Never mind
yer fancy
clothes—yer
goin' to a fight not a dance!"
00
High in
the rocks Dandin and Mariel drew back their bows, glancing along the line of
Trag warriors as they drew bowstrings tight in unison. Durry Quill nodded.
"Now!"
The
arrows zipped off like a flight of angry wasps, straight down into the teeming
courtyard, where even despite the night they could not miss among the large
numbers of milling rats. As the archers dropped down to fit more shafts to
their bows, a line of warriors behind them stood up whirling slings. Again
Durry nodded. "Now!"
The rocks
hurtled down, chunking into the searats below.
oo
From a
lower floor window Gabool the Wild grabbed hold of a passing searat, hauling
him in bodily over the sill.
"What
in the name of Hellfangs is a-goin' on out there?"
"Majesty,
we're bein' attacked!"
"I
can see that, idiot! Who is it doin' the attackin'?"
"Sire,
I don't know, but we're bein' cut down by arrows an' rocks from both sides,
left an' right!"
Gabool
hauled the unfortunate off with him toward the banqueting hall. "It's the
badger—I know it is. You stay outside the door an' sing out t' me as soon as
y'see the badger. Hear?"
The
terrified searat nodded dumbly, though no sooner had Gabool gone into the
banqueting hall and
359
w
slammed
the door than the young searat sneaked off back to the courtyard, where a
hard-slung rock put an
end to
all his fears.
oo
On the
far hill Joseph was marshaling his troops to snipe from two different
directions of the hillside, causing great confusion among the searats. They
would turn to fire their bows in one direction, only to be hit from behind as
they did.
Riptung
ran up and down the courtyard in the dark, laying about with the flat of his
sword as he yelled out, "Up there in the hills to yer left, dolts. Can't
yer tell by the way those arrows W stones are comin' in? 'Ere, gimme that bow,
you!" He snatched the bow and arrow from a bewildered rat. Pulling the
shaft taut on the bow, he held it as a row of archers ducked down. Riptung let
the arrow fly as the slingbeasts stood up, and was rewarded with a faint cry
from high on the hillside.
"See,
that's the way to get 'em! Now get down behind the wall and use yer tiny
brains. Up an' down! Quick like, same's they're doin' to us. There ain't that
many of 'em, judgin' by their volleys."
Gradually
the three Captains got the searats into some semblance of fighting crews, using
all their cunning in reply to the surprise invasion.
Dandin
caught a stray searat who had moved out of the wall cover. He glanced anxiously
at Mariel. "Where's Tarquin got to?"
As if
in reply a cry rang out from below. "Eulal-iaaaaa!"
Whump\
. . . Bump\ . . . Thud\
The
battering ram had begun its work on the front gates. Tarquin had his forces
screaming and yelling as they charged with the ram.
"Trag!
Trag! Trag! Eulaliaaaa! Trag! Trag! Trag!"
The
massive treetrunk, still matted with earth and
360
grass,
pounded its blunt head against the quivering timbers of the gates.
Grimtooth
dashed around to Riptung. "They're smashin' the gates in, matey! Take your
force from this side an' stand 'em off. I'll get Hookfin to do the same!"
Soon
the searats were massed halfway between the fort building and the gates. They
fired arrows upward in a curving arc. The shafts fell on the ram crew, slaying
several with their first volley. Tarquin ordered his archers to return fire.
"Give 'em blood an' vinegar, chaps. Fire!"
Gabool
could see only the sea and the rocks below from the big banqueting hall window,
but he darted around the slit windows on the other walls, the noise of battle
ringing in his ears as he peered out at the dark shapes scurrying below.
Dashing to the slit window on the far side, he stared out at the back hillside
in horror. The badger had emerged from somewhere high upon the hill and stood
there like some giant out of the worst nightmare, framed against the night sky,
battlesword stuck in the ground beside him, clad in warhelm and breastplate.
Gabool
stood framed in the big window, screaming threats and challenging the enemy who
had haunted his waking dreams so long. But Rawnblade was only concerned with
the task of the moment. Setting his paws against the vast boulder, he sucked
air into his lungs, feeling his mighty chest swell against the metal
breastplate. He pitted his weight and strength against the monolithic ball of
rock; it budged slightly, then settled back. This time the badger threw his
back against it, digging his blunt claws and wide footpads hard into the earth.
He crouched and grunted with exertion as sweat trickled across his striped
head, forcing his bulk into the boulder. This time it moved out of its
depression in the stony soil. Feeling the mass move, Rawnblade attacked it with
primeval ferocity.
361
Roaring
and bellowing, he hurled all his weight into the side of the formidable stone,
sinew and muscle bunched as flesh hit rock. The boulder began to trundle away
like some dread juggernaut, slowly at first, then gathering speed on the
sloping hillside. Lord Rawnblade seized his battlesword. Throwing back his head
he howled the war cry of Salamandastron to the night sky.
"Eulaliaaaaaa!"
The
boulder crashed through the hill gorse, spinning and bouncing, a mighty stone
ball of destruction, with the badger Lord charging in its wake. With a thunderous
rumble it smashed through the wall, sending an explosion of sharded masonry
high in the air. Either side of it sections of wall fell like wheat before a
scythe. Several rats guarding the back wall stood paralyzed with fright as
Rawnblade came bounding through the dustcloud in the shattered breach, followed
by Joseph the Bellmaker and a chanting mass of Trag warriors.
"Trag!
Trag! Trag! Redwaaaaalll!"
The
rats at the main gates stopped shooting arrows. They turned to see what was
happening at the back wall.
Riptung
dashed through them. "Come on, they've burst through the walls back
there!"
Reluctantly
the searat archers turned to face the latest peril, Hookfin and Grimtooth
shoving and pushing them toward the foe.
"Push
'em back, or we're done for, mates!"
"There
ain't that many of 'em, we've got 'em outnumbered, buckos. Charge!"
Spurred
on by desperation, the rats clashed with their attackers. Steel clashed against
steel as both sides met like two waves crashing together. The bigger, more
powerful searats in their barbaric finery did not intimidate the young Trag
fighters, who threw themselves upon their hated oppressors with insane
ferocity, hacking and cleaving as the melee swayed back and forth;
362
but the
rats were experienced skirmishers, each searat and his mate taking one Trag
warrior between them, slashing and stabbing from back to front. Soon it became
evident that Joseph's force would be routed, without reinforcements.
Rawnblade
was fighting his own fight. The Blood-wrath had come upon him, his one aim was
to get inside Bladegirt to find Gabool. Oblivious of Trag difficulties, he
fought his way toward the fort, seeing nothing through the fiery red mist that
engulfed his eyes but the building which contained his sworn enemy. Searats
flew before the blade of Verminfate like butterflies caught in a gale.
oo
Outside
the main gates they heard the noise as the back wall was broken by the boulder.
Within moments the searat arrows stopped raining over upon them. Mariel, Tarquin,
Dandin and Durry lifted their heads and listened. The pounding of receding paws
and the shouts that followed told them the battle was being joined inside.
Durry
did a little dance of impatience. "Use the ram as a ladder. Quick,
quick!"
Mariel
weighed up and cracked and splintered gates. "No, there's twice as many of
us now. Let's see what we can do against these gates. Right, Tarquin!"
"All
paws now, every Tragjack of you, grab the ram. One, two, hup!" the hare
roared out in his best parade ground voice.
Rank
upon rank of willing paws gripped the battering ram, lifting it high above
their heads with a rush of strength and energy. Tarquin shouted out commands
from the front.
"Righto,
chaps. Back up. Back, back, back—a bit more! Come on, you lot on the end, stop
bunchin' together and back up. We need a good long run to gain momentum, wot!
That's it, laddie buck. Back, back . . . Ah, that's more like it. Halt!"
363
Mariel
stood with Dandin and Durry at the front of the ram, gazing down the long run
toward the gates. Tarquin joined them, throwing his shoulder under the log and
lifting it high.
"Listen
up now, chaps. When I give the word, altogether, fast as y'can. Ready . . .
Chaaaaaarge!"
Dust
pounded and flew from under the thundering paws. Eyes wide and mouths agape,
screaming and yelling bloodcurdling cries, the army of rammers with the log
swaying madly above their heads tore onward to the gates in one single mad
rush.
Whakkarraboom!!!
There
was no sound of splintering timber, just a tremendous whump\ Door, timbers,
locks, bars and bolts, even the two impressive stone gateposts, were knocked
flat as if hit by a thunderbolt. Carried on in the momentum of the heroic
charge, the rammers clattered across the fallen gates and over the courtyard,
the battering ram still held high.
Swept
on in the rush, with the blood singing through his eardrums like a high-pitched
siren, Durry Quill yelled aloud, "Eeyahoooo!"
The
battering ram hit the rear of the searat hordes, scattering them like ninepins.
Over the clamor of battle Joseph laughed in relief. The reinforcements had
arrived in a spectacular manner.
oo
Riptung
knew the tide had turned. He strove madly to group a fighting force about him,
but the searats ignored his cries, each fighting with the strength of despair.
The searat Captain whirled his curved sword with long-born expertise, taking
out a vole and a field-mouse, only to find himself confronted by Dandin. The
blade of Martin the Warrior flashed in the young mouse's paws as he closed in
to attack. Riptung parried, frantically backing to get creatures between
himself and the cold-eyed swordsmouse. The searat tried every move and trick he
knew, but his assailant kept coming
364
on,
battering the curved corsair sword aside ferociously until he had Riptung
backed up to the wall. Above the clash of battle Riptung swung his sword high
for a downward slash, screeching in Dandin's face, "You'll never take me
alive!"
Dandin
slew him with a strong upward swing. "I don't want you alive, rat!"
Hookfin
saw that the battle was lost. He sneaked away before the total rout of all the
searats, skirting the edges of the fray until he found the section of the back
wall that the boulder had smashed through. Without a backward glance he slipped
out onto the hillside, with a sigh of relief that died upon his lips. Sitting
in front of him on a rock was the impassive vole Tan Loc. Hookfin froze.
Drawing his long sword, Tan Loc whetted it against the rock, speaking in a flat
voice without even looking at Hookfin. "I've been waiting for you."
oo
Back at
the battle, Joseph found himself fighting for his life. A searat was choking
him from behind as Grim-tooth swung his cutlass in front. The bellmaker parried
each thrust as he fought to shake off the rat, who clung behind him like a
leech. Grimtooth slashed furiously, knowing the death of a leader might turn
the tide of battle back in favor of the searats. He smiled grimly as the
gray-haired mouse began to weaken, and closed in for the kill.
"Redwaaalll!"
Mariel
leaped off the back of a falling rat, swinging her Gullwhacker. Grimtooth
turned. Catching the full force of the blow between his eyes, he dropped like a
log. Durry Quill took the strangler from behind with a rock from the wall
debris.
Tarquin
fought his way through to them, a broken lance clutched in his paws.
"One
more good sally an' they're finished, chaps, I say, wot!" He turned this
way and that, bobbing up
365
and
down. "Where's me old boss got to? Anybeast seen Lord Rawnblade?"
Mariel
struck off into the melee. "No. Come on, let's find him!"
They
were joined by Dandin as they dodged around skirmishing groups.
The
steps up to Fort Bladegirt were littered with dead searats. Durry picked his way
between them, pointing with his dagger at the big oak door, which had been
hacked almost to splinters and hung crazily on one hinge.
"Ha!
Betcher Rawnblade did this wi' that great tree-chopper o' his."
Mariel
strode past Durry into the building. "We'll see who gets Gabool!"
366
Saxtus
gazed out from the ramparts of Red wall. The sun cast cloud shadows onto the
path and across the greenery of the woodlands; fleecy clouds scudded across the
sky on a warm breeze. The days of summer season were numbered now.
Simeon
joined him, his paws feeling along the battlements until he came in contact
with Saxtus. "The autumn will arrive soon, Saxtus." "How did you
know what I was thinking, Brother?" Simeon chuckled and patted Saxtus's
paw. "I didn't, it was just an educated guess. Creatures often think I
have wondrous powers, but it's just experience and observation. Though I do
sense that you have more reason than the change of seasons for standing up
here. It comes to me that you are watching the road. Would I be wrong in
supposing that you are awaiting the return of certain friends?"
Saxtus
searched the blind herbalist's wise old face. "You are right, of course,
but it doesn't take a genius to know that. Dandin and Durry were my best
friends — Mariel too, for the short time she was with us. I had a dream, you
see, the night before last. It was of a great battle, I saw them fighting with
searats, like the crew
367
who
attacked our Abbey, but there were many many more than that."
"Was
it through Martin the Warrior that this dream came?"
"Ah,
now you do surprise me. What makes you say that, Simeon?"
"Oh,
we are old friends, the spirit of the Abbey and I. Martin has visited me more
than once in the land of sleep. You must always heed his warnings. What did you
see of this battle?"
"It
was not very clear. I saw an old gray mouse, quite a big fellow. He was being
attacked by two searats. I cried out in my dream for Martin to help him. Mariel
and Durry Quill rescued him. There was lots of fighting, a great battle —
things weren't very clear though, and it all faded after a while, Martin
too."
"I
say, yoohoo! You two up there, what's the matter? Don't you want to try my
seedcake?"
It was
Hon Rosie waving from her wheelchair. Friar Alder and Cockleburr were pushing
it, both their faces pictures of strained patience.
"We'll
talk about this another time," Simeon whispered to Saxtus. Turning in the
direction of the wheel-chair, he waved. "Seedcake, did you say? I used to
be a fair cook at making that myself. Hold on, we'll come down and try some.
Give me your paw, Saxtus."
00
Lunch
was being served in Great Hall. As they entered, Mellus nudged Foremole,
murmuring in a low voice, "Here's another two victims being brought in to
sample the dreaded seedcake. What Rosie made it with I don't know."
"Burr,
you'm can say that agin. Oi near broken moi diggen claws just picken up a
sloice, marm."
Rosie
leaned from her chair, scanning the table. "I say, where's me jolly old
seedcake gone? You haven't scoffed it all, have you? Well, that's the bally
limit. I suppose I'll have to bake another."
368
"Er,
no seeds left, marm," Friar Alder interrupted swiftly.
Cockleburr
tugged the Friar's sleeve. "Perishin' pud-dens, Friar. There's a great box
of seeds at the back of the floursacks, I found it meself this m — Oof!"
Alder
elbowed his assistant sharply in the stomach and carried on smoothly. "Oh,
those seeds, you mean. They've got damp and were beginning to sprout, I was
meaning to leave them out for the birds. Oh dear, not a single seed in the
kitchens or the storerooms. What a shame!"
Underneath
the table, Grubb and Bagg were using the remains of the seedcake as building
blocks. "We'll have to get miz Rosie more seeds if we wanna make a model
of the Abbey," Bagg grumbled as he looked about for more.
"Hurrhurr,
Froir Alder'11 scrangle 'ee iffen you'm mention et."
"I
s'pose so. I heard 'im say to the Habbit that he hopes miz RosieTl get better
afore she kills us all wi' seedcakes."
oo
Saxtus
wandered through to watch some creatures working on the great Abbey tapestry.
Brother Hubert was supervising the design from sketches he had found in the
gatehouse. He tossed a hank of light brown thread to Sister Serena.
"This
color should suit if you're starting the face of the Warrior."
Saxtus
sorted a thread out of a slightly darker tone. "Excuse me, Brother, but I
think this shade is the correct one."
Hubert
held it up to the light, inspecting it carefully. "Hmm, you could be right,
Saxtus, but how do you know that this is the color of Martin's face?"
"I
sort of sensed it."
oo
Lord Rawnblade Widestripe strode through the
369
entrance
hall of Fort Bladegirt, the sword Verminfate sending out showers of sparks as
he clashed it against the stone columns leading to the main stairway.
"Gabool,
it is I, Rawnblade the badger. Show yourself!"
The
rumble of the badger Lord's challenge echoed back at him from empty chambers
and deserted corridors as he mounted the stairs, his keen dark eyes searching
everywhere. Rawnblade sniffed, but the odor of searat permeated the air
throughout and he could not distinguish the scent of his enemy. Kicking aside
the debris of cast-off clothing, useless weaponry and stale food the rats had
left behind, he ascended the wide stone stairs.
oo
Heedless
of whether the rats had won or lost the battle, Gabool listened to the sounds
of the badger ringing through his fort as he nerved himself up for the
confrontation he knew would inevitably come. Gripping both sword and dagger,
the Searat King ranged about his upper chamber, holding a muttered conference
with himself.
"Hahaar,
I'll sleep tonight. Once I'm rid of the badger, I'll destroy that useless bell.
Aye, that's it! Kill the badger an' roll the bell off the high cliffs inter the
sea. What'll be left to worry me then? I've seen 'em all off—Graypatch, Saltar,
Bludrigg. Look out, badger. You're next, an' the bell to follow yer! Then
they'll see who's the Ruler of Terramort—me, Gabool, King of Searats. I'll
build a new fleet, each craft bigger an' faster than Darkqueen. They'll scour
the coasts for slaves, fine silks, wine an' the best of prime vittles. Haharr,
Gabool won't need no bell to announce hisself; they'll know who I am wherever
they see my ships hove in an' hear me name."
"Gabool,
you spawn of Hell, where are you?"
The deep
thunder of Rawnblade's voice
vibrated
370
upward
from the banqueting hall. Gabool pressed an ear to his room door.
"Keep
searchin', badger. I'll lead you a merry dance before I'm done with yer. Gabool
ain't feared of a stripe-dog no more. Oh no, matey!"
oo
Rawnblade
stood before the great bell. It was exactly as he had imagined it. Only a
bellmaker with the skills of Joseph could create such a wonder. His hefty paw
stroked the stained and discolored surface of the brazen object as he walked
around it, reading the mysterious badger hieroglyphics near the belltop,
smiling with satisfaction at the message only a badger Lord could interpret.
"That
is yet to come. . . . But meanwhile!"
Rawnblade
smashed a wooden stool with one blow of his sword. Picking up a severed stool
leg, he began belaboring the bell.
Bongboo
m bo ngaboombo ngbong!
As he
struck the bell, Rawnblade breathed upon a section of the metal and rubbed it
clean. He continued to smite the great bell, harder and louder.
Boombongboomboombongbooooongggg!
Peering
at the polished section, the badger watched Gabool enter the banqueting hall
and begin creeping up on him, sword raised to strike. Rawnblade stopped beating
the bell and turned slowly.
"So,
you like my music, eh, rat?"
Gabool
leaped forward, his sword flashing down like lightning. Rawnblade swung his
battlesword sideways, the power of the sweep knocking Gabool's blade flying; it
clattered into a corner. The searat stood helpless, his paws deadened by the
numbing force of the blow. Rawnblade nodded to the curved sword lying on the
floor. "Pick it up and have a proper try!"
Mariel
came dashing into the banqueting hall with Jospeh, Tarquin, Dandin and Durry.
The mousemaid
swung
her Gullwhacker, shouting, "Stand and fight, rat!"
Gabool
cackled harshly. "The bellmaker's brat, eh? Go away, mouse. I've killed
you once. You're naught but a ghost!"
Mariel's
jaw tightened as the Gullwhacker whirled above her head. "You're wrong,
seascum. I'm no ghost! I beat you once and I'm going to do it again, this time
for good!"
From
the corner of her eye Mariel saw the badger Lord move to attack.
"Gabool's
mine, Rawnblade!"
The
badger turned his head in her direction. As he did, Gabool plunged the dagger
into his chest and sped through a door on the other side of the room. As the
door slammed they ran to the badger Lord. He was standing straight, with the
dagger protruding. Before anybeast could speak, Rawnblade pulled the dagger out
and tossed it aside.
"Nearly
grazed my fur when it pierced the breastplate—not bad steel for a searat
dagger!"
Tarquin
was tugging and shoving at the door. "Blighter's locked it!"
"Out
of the way, Woodsorrel. Hurry!" Tarquin barely had time to leap aside as a
stroke from Verminfate split the door in two halves. Lord Rawnblade kicked them
flat.
"Don't
interrupt me next time, mousemaid!"
The
stairs in front of them spiraled downward. Keeping one paw against the side
wall, they hurried around
the
dizzying curves.
oo
Gabool
slammed the door closed and barred it. Chuckling to himself, he moved an old
carpet from a corner of the room and spread it over the hole in the floor.
Standing on the far side of it, he went into a crouch, claws stretching
forward. Soon he heard his pursuers arriving. There was a rending crash and the
door swung
372
lopsidedly
on a single hinge. Rawnblade thrust it aside as he stepped into the room,
brandishing his sword. He glanced about at the bare walls.
"The
running's over, rat. There's nowhere for you to
g°-"
"Aye,
so 'tis." Gabool sneered. "You're well backed
up by
your friends and fully armed too. I thought badgers were true warriors. Why
don't yer throw down that great doorcleaver an' meet me in paw t' claw combat,
searat fashion. Or are yer just a great cowardly stripedog?"
The red
mists of Bloodwrath clouded Lord Rawn-blade's eyes as he flung his sword aside
and came at Gabool with a mighty roar.
"Eulaliaaaa!"
For an
instant Gabool's blood froze within him at the sight of the huge badger
charging forward. Then Rawnblade stood on the carpet. He plunged down into the
hole with a sharp bark of alarm, falling flat on his back at the bottom of the
pit. There was a scuttling noise and Rawnblade shouted aloud, "Stay
away!"
Mariel
and her companions hesitated in the doorway.
The
massive black scorpion rattled out at breathtaking speed. It was on Rawnblade
before he could move. His eyes went wide with horror at the sight of the
loathesome beast perched on his breastplate. Clicking claws held menacingly
wide, it began to bring the venomous barbed sting on its tail up over its back
to strike at the badger's unprotected face.
Suddenly
some unseen force galvanized Rawnblade into instant action. His paw shot up,
grabbing the scorpion by the curve of its tail, and with a mighty bellow he
jumped upright. Whirling the evil creature around, he flung it swiftly from the
pit. The black scorpion shot up at an angle, striking the ceiling and dropping
down—straight into the face of Gabool the Wild.
From
the doorway they watched in horrified fascination as the searat leaped
frenziedly about the room,
373
feebly
struggling with the angry creature locked onto his throat with both claws. It
covered his face, muffling the gurgled screams as the lethal tail sent its
hooked sting slamming over the top of his head into the base of the skull,
whipping back and forth as it stabbed in a maddened frenzy.
Rawnblade
heaved himself out of the pit in time to see Gabool fall to the floor, his
limbs twitching spasmodically as poison flooded through his crazed brain. The
King of the Searats shuddered one last time and died, his body arched back like
a straining bow.
Dandin
rushed into the room as the scorpion turned its attention to Lord Rawnblade.
The young mouse swung the sword of Martin the Warrior.
Once!
Twice! Thrice!
The two
halves of the terrible creature toppled awkwardly back into its pit, still
clicking and striking with its poisonous tailsting.
Rawnblade
shuddered. He rubbed his paws together vigorously, as if trying to cleanse
himself of the scorpion's touch.
Tarquin
addressed his harolina consolingly. "Well, me old twanger, you never got
to brain Gabool, after all. Matter o' fact, none of us did. What a shameful
waste of such jolly good weapons!"
Joseph
put a paw around his daughter's shoulders. "Evil destroyed evil, and good
triumphed. Come on, Mariel. Let us leave Terramort. The nightmare is
over."
Mariel hugged
her father fondly.
"Let's go to
Redwall!"
oo
Four
ships lay ready to sail from the cove at Terramort. Captain Durry Quill stood
at the helm of Waveblade, renamed Gabriel after his favorite
"nuncle." Captain Tarquin L. Woodsorrel now commanded the Hon Rosie,
formerly the Blacksail. Captain Dandin rested his paw on the tiller of
Nightwake, renamed the Abbot Bernard. The Crabdaw had been restored to her
former name,
374
Periwinkle,
at the wish of her new Captain, Joseph the Bellmaker. He stood proudly with
Mariel and Rawnblade on her swaying deck, watching the crew of former oarslaves
tying down the final lashings of the great bell. Above them a huge hole gaped
in the seaward side of Fort Bladegirt, where the bell had been lowered to the
Periwinkle's deck. Dark smoke curled from the breach in the fort as Rawnblade
nodded his head in satisfaction.
"I've
never used fire on anything in my life, but I was glad to put the torch to that
evil building. It will never burn away its memory, but maybe someday in the
seasons to come the wind and rains from the seas will scour its blackened
stones clean."
Joseph
patted the deckrail. "Good old Periwinkle. Remember when we first set sail
in her, Mariel? Now we can complete that voyage and deliver Lord Rawn-blade's
bell to Salamandastron, where it belongs."
But the
badger Lord had other ideas. "No, friend Joseph, this bell must go to
Redwall Abbey, and I will tell you the reason why. When I was down that pit
with the scorpion on me I was in the grip of Bloodwrath and did not know what
was going on. The creature would have killed me. However, I was saved by Martin
the Warrior. It was his spirit that entered me and enabled me to act so
quickly. He saved my life, so I must repay him."
Dandin
touched the hilt of the sword. "Good old Martin! So it was he wrho really
slew Gabool—or was it him through you, sir, or was it just a bad-tempered
scorpion? We'll never know. What do you say, Mariel?"
"I
say, here, take this little swallow and hang it where my father can see it.
Give me your sword. You won't need it for a moment."
Armed
with the sword of Martin the Warrior, the mousemaid stood high on the bowsprit
and shouted her orders to the little fleet.
"Hoist
anchors and set all sails! There's a running
375
tide
and fair wind to take us to the shores of Mossflower country and Redwall!"
The
great bell gave out a mighty boom as Rawnblade struck it. The sound echoed
around the headlands, mingled with the joyful cheers from hundreds of free
creatures as the breeze filled the sails and carried the four vessels out onto
the seas in golden summer sun-light.
376
The
seasons turned and autumn arrived in due course. Though Saxtus and his friend
Simeon kept up their vigil on the ramparts of Redwall, there was still no sign
of the returning travelers. The Abbey orchard was now in burgeoning
fruitfulness, and each day the crop gatherers were busy with ladders, long poles
and industrious energy as they picked and basketed the plums, apples, damsons,
pears and berries of many different varieties. The kitchens were working at
full capacity, cooking, preserving and storing the fruits. Gabriel Quill's
cellar was also a hive of activity; cordials, wines, squashes and October ale
were being squeezed, brewed and fermented. The days of autumn continued fine
and warm, though darkness started to draw in earlier. Peace and plenty had
returned to the Abbey; every creature was happy.
Well,
nearly every creature . . .
The
three little Dibbuns, Bagg, Runn and Grubb, were totally dissatisfied with
their lot and feeling highly mutinous. Two, three, sometimes even four
scrubbings a day were commonplace for them during harvesttime. They had been
caught in different color changes by Mother Mellus and the good Sisters who
cared for them, purple from blackberries, crimson from redcur-
377
rants,
yellow from greengages, green from gooseberries and generally filthy from
climbing trees, falling into bushes, being covered in dust from the cellars, or
appearing coated in oven grime and ashes from the kitchen ovens.
Besides
being sent to bed early for cheeking some venerable Abbey dwellers, the three
miscreants were now being instructed in sewing by Brother Hubert, so that they
could repair their own ripped clothing. Hubert had also hinted darkly that they
would soon be attending gatehouse school and Abbey history study.
This
news was the final clincher, being met with awful scowls and rebellious
mutterings, and culminating in the terrible trio swearing a deathly oath
underneath a dormitory bed, where they were hiding from their latest misdeeds.
They were leaving the Abbey the very next morning to seek their fortunes far
afield, or as Grubb succinctly put it, "Sumplace where gurt beasties doant
keep scrubben an' barthen us'ns!"
Dawn
came soft and misty with warm sunlight, turning the low-lying shrouds of mist
from white to pale yellow. The three Dibbuns let themselves out by the north wallgate
and trundled up that path, rustling the carpet of brown leaves brought down by
autumnal night winds. Each of them had a kerchief bulging with food swinging
from a stick across his shoulder, and their mood was decidedly carefree as they
strode out with a will.
"Wait'11
ol' Ma Mell's finds us'ns are gone. I bet she shakes 'er head an' says 'oh
dearie me' a lot then, eh?"
"Heeheehee,
she won't 'ave nobeast to chuck inna tub an' scrub no more."
"Hurr,
oi 'spect she'll scrub Gab'1 an' Froir an' the Habbit. Serve 'em roight!"
"An'
we'll be far, far 'way an' all mucky f'rever. Hahahaha!"
"An
we won't go t' bed no more an' learn hist'ry off Bruvver Hoobit."
378
"Burr
aye, an' woant they all be a-cryen fer us. Boohoohoo, 'ee'll say, whurr be all
they luwerly Dibbuns a-gone?"
"Aaahhhh,
will they? Never mind, we'll come back when us'ns are big 'uns, eh?"
"Oh
aye, an' we'll spank 'em all an baff'em an scoff every thin'!"
"Hurrhurr,
that'll teach 'em a lessing!"
oo
Late
breakfast turned into early lunch as they sat at the side of the path, telling
each other what tyrants they would be when they returned to the Abbey fully
grown. Suddenly Runn squeaked with fright. The three Dibbuns sat petrified at
the sight of a giant armored badger who had strolled up out of the mists.
With a
strange light in his dark eyes, he swung his massive sword high and placed it
into the carrier straps on his back. The badger knelt down, bringing his
wide-striped head close to their terrifed faces. His voice was growling, deep,
but gentle as he could make it.
"Well
well, what have we here, three marauders lying in wait for poor honest
travelers?"
"U-u-us'ns
be oanly Dibbuns, zurr."
"Dibbuns,
eh? A likely story. You look more like bloodthirsty rogues to me. All right
then, supposing you are Dibbuns, where are you from?"
Bagg
found his tongue. "Please sir, Redwall Habbey, sir!"
Rawnblade
lifted them carefully in his hefty battle-scarred paws. "Redwall Habbey—I
think I may know that place. You'd better come with me. I'll soon find out if
you're telling me the truth."
oo
The
badger made his way through the hordes of Trag warriors eating breakfast at the
side of the path. He halted by a wide flat wooden cart with a great bell upon
it. The three Dibbuns sat gazing at their reflections in the burnished metal
surface of the bell as they perched
379
upon
Rawnblade's paws, their legs swinging over the big blunt claws. Lord Rawnblade
lowered them toward Dandin and Durry, winking at the two friends as he did.
"I've
just captured these three searat Captains. They were waiting down the way
apiece, probably to ambush us and steal our bell."
Dandin
and Durry played along with the badger.
"It's
as well you did. They look like born killers to me."
"Aye,
these searats are all the same, y'know."
Grubb
tried reasoning with his captors. "Oh gurra-way, oi'm a moler an' they be
two hotterfolk. You'm be Dan'in an' maister Quill, oi knows 'ee!"
Rawnblade
burst out laughing. "Hohoho! Well said! We'll take you back to Redwall
with us."
Bagg
held a paw to his snout, confidentially whispering to Rawnblade, "I
wouldn't if I was you. Ma Mell's will chuck you all inna tub an' scrub you
sumfink awful!"
00
The
orchard workers had halted for a midmorning break and jugs of cider and slices
of plumcake were passed around.
Mother
Mellus searched around the berry bushes worriedly. "Anybeast here seen
three Dibbuns, Bagg, Runn and Grubb?"
Saxtus
stood up helpfully. "Do you want me to go and look for them?"
The
badger plumped down wearily next to Simeon and accepted a beaker of new cider.
"I'd be most grateful if you did, Saxtus. I've run my aching old bones
ragged searching for those three rips."
As the
young mouse trotted off on a tour of the Abbey grounds Mellus refilled Simeon's
beaker.
"What
a fine young creature our Saxtus is. I remember he wasn't any great trouble as
a Dibbun, always a
380
fairly
serious and obedient little thing. Not like some I could name."
The
blind herbalist smiled. "You're a proper old fraud, Mellus. You wouldn't
know what to do with yourself if all our Dibbuns were quiet, serious and
obedient. It makes the seasons happier having a few little pickles
around."
Having
searched in the most likely hiding places, Saxtus mounted the wallsteps and
scoured the ramparts. Starting at the south wall, he worked his way along to
the east battlements, covering every recess and niche, each moment expecting to
come upon the three little ones hiding in some favorite corner. He had hidden
up here many a time with Dandin and Durry when they were small; all the best
secret hideouts were known to him.
Saxtus
could feel anxiety beginning to gnaw at him. He had searched every possible
place and still there was no sign of the missing trio. He leaned his back
against the northwest walltop corner, looking down into the Abbey grounds,
mentally ticking off each place he had covered. The three little ones were
definitely missing, but there was no need to upset Mother Mellus yet— they
might still be somewhere in the vicinity. Saxtus turned to look up the path.
For a moment he could scarcely believe his eyes, he felt his whole body begin
to shake and tremble with excitement. Paws twitching and teeth chattering, he
blinked and rubbed his eyes to reassure himself he was not witnessing a mirage.
He was not! He stood for some time, exerting all his willpower to gain control
of himself.
oo
Refreshment
time was over in the orchard. Picking up their baskets, the harvesters were about
to go back to work. Saxtus's voice rang out level and loud from the ramparts.
"Father
Abbot, Mother Mellus, bring everybody with you. Come up here and look at
this!"
Mellus
and the Abbot, with Simeon between them, rounded the corner of the Abbey
building, a crowd of Redwallers following them.
"Saxtus.
Hi, Saxtus, what is it?"
"Have
you found the Dibbuns, Saxtus?"
The
young mouse turned and called back to the swelling band of Redwallers,
"Come up here, this is very important, I think you should all see
this!"
Now
every creature in the Abbey was striding across the lawns, from the orchards,
kitchens, Great Hall, Cavern Hole, dormitories and gatehouse, overcome with
curiosity.
"I
hope it ain't more searats, marm!"
"In
the name of all fur, what is it?"
"Hoi,
Saxtus, what's all this about?"
But
Saxtus had turned his back on them and was staring out at the path from the
north, ignoring their shouts.
Mellus
quickend her pace. "Ooh, he was always very aggravating as a Dibbun was that
one!"
oo
Every
creature in the Abbey was now ranged along the wall staring dumbfounded at the
sight before them. It was Gabriel Quill who broke the silence. Scrambling up
onto a battlement, he waved his paws wildly as he shouted, "They've come back!
Oh, Durry me heart, it's me, yer ol' nuncle Gabriel!"
The
hedgehog's call seemed to trigger everything. A mighty roaring cheer rose from
the walltops; caps and aprons were flung in the air as the Redwallers danced up
and down, waving and cheering at the top of their lungs, stamping their paws
and howling pure joy to the skies.
"They're
back! Oh look, they're back! Hooraaaaaay!!!"
On the
path the horde of Trag warriors with the great
382
bell in
their midst ground to a halt at Rawnblade's signal.
Mariel
stood atop the bell. She loosed her Gullwhacker and began swinging it in
circles above her head.
Tarquin
winked at her. "Go on, old gel, let 'em know you jolly well did it!"
The
mousemaid swung the heavily knotted rope down with both paws.
Boooooommrnmmml
The
deep melodious sound echoed out across the brown and russet woodlands in the
fine autumn morn.
"Eulaliaaaaa!
Trag! Trag! Trag! Redwaaaaalll!"
The
answer to Red wall's cheers rent the air as the warriors roared out their
battle cry. Sitting on top of Lord Rawnblade's war helmet, Grubb joined paws
with Bagg and Runn, who were perched on the badger's shoulders. Between them
they yelled as loudly as any battle-hardened soldier.
Abbot
Bernard stood in front of the open gateway, paws tucked into wide habit
sleeves. His voice quivered noticeably as he addressed the four travelers who
stood with Lord Rawnblade at the head of the army.
"You
have come a very long way to be at Redwall Abbey. . . . Welcome home!"
383
Extract
from the writings of Abbot Saxtus:
The
seasons turn slowly with the earth, Redwall stones grow aged and mellow, and I
thank fortune that we live peacefully within our Abbey. The old ones are still
with us, I am happy to say: Joseph, Simeon, Hubert and old Abbot Bernard. I sat
with them this afternoon, on the rickety remains of the wooden bellcart in the
orchard. We talked of bygone times as we lounged about in the warmth of this
long summer. Bagg, Runn and Grubb brought us dandelion and burdock cordial to
drink. You would not believe what big, well-mannered otters the twins are, and
Grubb, always ready with a joke and a smile, he never changes, I know because
he put otter hotroot in my beaker. Bernard and his friends were recalling the
Feast of the Bell Raising. What a day! Mariel's father was so proud wrhen we
named the bell after him, the ]oseph Bell, though he would not sit at the head
of the table—no, Joseph insisted on sitting with Tarquin and his wife, Rosie.
Ah, that was a feast my stomach still remembers. Cellarmaster Durry Quill and
his assistant Old Gabriel produced the finest October ale I ever drank, Friar
Cockleburr
384
made a
bell-shaped fruitcake as big as the Joseph Bell itself, Friar Alder and his
Trag trainees did us proud too—there were more trifles, tarts, puddings,
salads, cheeses and breads than you could shake a twig at. Oak Tom and his
wife, Treerose, say that the feast might have lasted a whole season had it not
been for Flagg the otter, Rosie and Tarquin and Mellus and Rawnblade. My word,
you should have seen those creatures eat, you would have thought they were
facing a seven-season famine!
Well,
the bell was finally raised, though a lot more things happened during the three
days of that feast, I can tell you. Lord Rawnblade explained the badger symbols
around the top of the bell to us all. Would you believe it, they told of the
coming of the bell to Redwall, even predicting its name, Joseph. The badger
rulers of Salamandastron are truly mysterious beasts. Someday I may take a trip
there to study the mountain and its caves. Rawnblade gave permission for Rosie
and Tarquin to range the lands freely, and they have formed an organization
called the Fur and Foot Fighting Patrol. Last I heard they had twelve members,
all their own young ones. Rufe Brush did a strange thing on the third morning
of the feast, he took the sword of Martin the Warrior, strapped it to his back
and climbed to the roof of the Abbey. Yes, right up to the very top of
Redwall—what a climb! Rufe placed the sword on the arm of the weathervane and
tied it there; what a curious thing to do. Brother Simeon told me that Rufe had
been spending a lot of time staring at our grand tapestry of Martin, so it
occurs to me that our warrior may have visited Rufe in his dreams. Rufe Brush
is now our bellringer, still as strong and silent as ever. I am very close to
Rufe. He is a true friend to me, always ready to step in and settle disputes,
though they are few and far between at Redwall. I think Bagg will become the new
Foremole. The old fellow spends his days drink-
385
ing,
eating and playing with the Dibbuns; he is a great favorite among the little
ones. I miss Dandin and Mariel very much, and sometimes I dream of them. They
went off, you know. The peaceful Abbey life was not for them, they said. One
morning we awoke to find they had gone south in search of adventures. Joseph
merely smiled and said that they would return someday, but Mother Mellus moped
about for half a season; she loved that pair very much. Sometimes I wish that I
had not been born with a sense of duty and my serious nature. I would have
liked to travel with them, but it was not to be. When Bernard stepped down,
everybeast immediately called for me to take on the robe of Father Abbot. What
could I do? Wherever my friends Mariel and Dandin are, my heart is with them.
May the way be fair before them and good fortune attend them both.
I am
sitting on the bell tower steps as I write. It is cool and shady in here, quiet
too. The roof and all of the woodwork, stairs and doors and beams are made from
the timbers of four ships that were dismantled by the side of the ford which
crosses the path to the north. Some of the wood was used to build a bridge over
the ford, to protect travelers from the pike that swim in the waters there. I
have only to look up and I can see the great Joseph Bell overhead. It is truly
the pride of our Abbey, a thing of great beauty. Ah well, Rawnblade rules
Salamandas-tron and I must rule here. I love my Redwall Abbey, it is a place of
peace and plenty. Soon my friend Rufe will come to ring the bell for
suppertime. There will be lots of good things to eat and drink in Cavern Hole,
and I will sit in my great chair, surrounded by all of my dear companions,
Dibbuns playing beneath the table, Mellus, Sage and Serena, old as they are,
still shooing the little ones to bath and bed, and me, discussing with the
ancient Simeon what I can sense
386
about
the earth, the seasons and the feelings of other creatures. He says I am
becoming quite good at it. Old Abbot Bernard will just chuckle into his
elderberry wine and recall that Simeon used to say that about him. So I hope
you will forgive me, my friends. I must go now and attend to my duties as
Father Abbot.
There,
I've done it again! Bumped my head on that great knotty thing hanging at the
end of the bellrope. I'm always doing that, I must learn to duck my head.
Though I think I do it purposely, because that piece of rope reminds me of a
little mousemaid named Storm who turned up at our Abbey one summer. Have you
guessed what the rope is? Then you must have been taking lessons from Simeon.
It is the weapon called Gullwhacker. Before Mariel and Dandin went, they tied
it to the end of the bellrope as a reminder to other creatures for all the
seasons to come that this was how they brought the great Joseph Bell home to
Redwall.
387